CORNELL UNIVERSITY LIBRARY Cornell University Library The original of tiiis book is in tine Cornell University Library. There are no known copyright restrictions in the United States on the use of the text. http://www.archive.org/details/cu31924029155816 BM560 .029"" ""'""'">' '-'''™^ ''^'9ii?iiiii?i!?lS!iiii!fiir*'''P °* "i^ synagogue; olin 3 1924 029 155 816 The ''Ark" (conlaiiiiiig the Scrolls of the Lai\}) opened (Sec p. 310) Frontispiece The Religion and Worship of The Synagogue The Religion and Worship of The Synagogue An Introduction to the Study of Judaism from the New Testament By Period W. o. E. OESTERLEY, Jesus CoUege, Cambridge: and B.D. G . H. BOX, M.A. Late Scholar of St. John's College, Oxford ; Sometinu Hebrew Master at Merchant Taylor^ School. London. NEW YORK CHARLES SCRIBNER'S SONS 153.157 Fifth Avenue 1907 Preface. In planning the present volume the writers have endea- voured to keep in view the requirements more especially of Christian readers and students. For long the need of a popular Handbook dealing with Judaism in a com- prehensive way, in a manner adequate to the theme and to the attainments of modem research, has been patent. It is becoming more and more widely recognized that in the light of the new knowledge that has resulted from the study of comparative religion, Judaism, particularly in its earh^r phases, occupies a position of unique importance, especially for the elucidation of Christian origins. In such a study, it is true, Judaism not only proves illuminating, but is itself illuminated. But it remains unfortunately true that Judaisrn has not yet come to its rights in this department of knowledge. Too many students seem still to imagine that the serious study of the Jewish Religion can be left on one side altogether. To Christian theologians, whose interests are absorbed in the investigation of the beginnings of Christianity, the study of Judaism as a living whole — as a vital organism with a soul and genius of its own — is also of supreme importance. We feel bound to express our conviction that the failure to appreciate this aspect of the matter has beeij responsible in the past for much one-sided and defective exegesis of. the New Testament. It is true, learned treatises to illustrate particular themes of Christian interest — as, e.g., the various " Lives " of Our Lord — have been written from time to time, and some of these are of great and enduring value in particular ways. But a collection of Jewish illustrations formed with tlie express object of pointing a particular theme is VI PREFACE not a presentment of the Jewish ReUgion. It still remains true that in order that such illustrations should be seen in their true bearings, and rightly appreciated, they must be viewed against a background where Judaism is realized as a Mving whole. But besides the student of comparative religion and the Christian theologian, there is a third class whose needs ought to be considered in this matter; we mean that large and growing class of intelligent readers who take a human interest in all that is human for its own sake, and to whom the fact that Jews and Judaism occupy so conspicuous a place in the modern world must make its appeal. We would fain hope that the present volume will be found useful by and adapted to meet the needs of those readers who may happen to peruse it because of their interest in Judaism as one of the great living religions of the world to-day. We have been speaking so far of non-Jewish readers. It is for such that this volume is planned. The needs of Jewish readers are already adequately supplied by manuals written by co-religionists. In any case, we should not have presumed to expound to them the tenets of their own religion. But the needs of non-Jewish Christian readers are different. Whether we have suc- ceeded in our present enterprise or not, such a Handbook as is here attempted must necessarily be the work of non-Jewish hands. Our aim in writing this volume has been not to make original contributions to knowledge, but to expound ascertained facts. We hope we have succeeded in pre- senting an adequate Outline of Judaism as a whole, in its development from the New Testament Period down to modem times. English readers we fear have, as a rule, very imperfect notions as to the later phases of the Jewish Religion. They have little or no conception of the richness of its development, the extent and character of its literature, or the greatness and splendour of some PREFACE Vii of its later achievements. This doubtless is largely due to the fact that it has never been clearly presented to them as a whole. In too many instances the treatment of the theme has been partial and one-sided, and therefore inadequate. So far as the book can lay claim to any originahty at all, it is an originality in the method and mode of present- ment. If we have succeeded in setting forth a clear and intelligible and just outline of Judaism we shall be content. In expounding what seem to us to be the most important relevant facts we have availed ourselves freely of the work of various scholars of recognized eminence, both Jewish and non-Jewish. This has been made clear and will be apparent to the reader.* At the head of most of the chapters in Parts I and II a special bibUography has been appended. This in each case is intended to suggest the most important works (accessible to English readers) which are available for the more detailed investigation of the particular sub- ject. No attempt has been made to render these lists exhaustive. It will be obvious that the book attempts to cover a very wide range. We can hardly hope to have travelled over so vast an area without mishap or stumbling. Doubtless some room or need for re-adjustment in details will soon be made apparent. We could indeed have wished to deal at greater length and more adequately with certain points of importance — as, for instance, the Kabbalah, and the Pharisees. On the latter point, in particular, much might even now be written. But the time is hardly yet ripe for a full discussion of the important issues. This may profitably be postponed till the facts can be more fully presented. * Among Jewish scholars we are more particularly conscious of indebtedness to the work of Prof. Schechter, and among Christian scholars to that of Schiirer, Dalman and Weber. VIU PREFACE There is one other point of importance on which the writers desirfe to lay special emphasis. Rich as Rabbinical Judaism has been in its later phases, it yet (so it seems to us) represents an essentially attenuated hne of develop- ment. It is but one off-shoot from a larger stem. It sprang from a larger and richer Judaism which, to a greater extent than is sometimes supposed, held within itself the forces which afterwards diverged as Rabbinism and Christianity. The common meeting-ground where these forces can be seen exhibiting themselves in com- bination (greater or less) is the field of the Apocryphal and Pseudepigraphical Literature of Judaism. Here Christian scholars and theologians have been most actively at work within recent years, and to their labours we have endeavoured to do justice both in Part I and Part II. A joint work, such as this volume is, necessitated, of course, a certain division of labour. The actual work of writing has been about evenly distributed between the two authors. But each has revised the work of the other, and both assume a joint responsibility for what is here set forth. The writers desire to acknowledge with gratitude the courtesy of the Editor of the Treasury for allowing the substance of two articles (by Mr. Box) to be utilized here (see Treasury, Oct., 1904; March, 1906); to the Editor of the Churchman for a similar courtesy in respect of an article (by the same writer) which appeared in the September number of this year ; and, lastly, to the Rev. Dr. Hastings who has kindly allowed two articles by the same writer on the Jewish Prayer-Book, which appeared in the Expository Times for April and May, 1904, to be in substance embodied in the relevant chapter here. In this connection we would press upon our readers the desirability of each securing a copy of the Jewish Prayer-Book for themselves. It can be procured (in Hebrew and EngUsh) for one shilling (published by PREFACE IX Eyre & Spottiswoode). We have constantly referred to it in these pages on the assumption that it would (as it easily can) be in each reader's possession. The writers rejoice in taking this opportunity of gratefully acknowledging their immense debt to Jewish scholarship and learning, — ^not only so, but they also feel it incumbent upon themselves to record how much good they have gained both mentally, and, they trust, spiritually,, from their study of the religion of the Synagogue. They are convinced that Judaism and Christianity are mutually essential to each other, and that just as the two faith? are complementary and belong together, so the advocates of each can only be true to their respective faiths by extending the right hand of fellowship to each other. The writers feel that they will not be misunderstood in saying this ; they recognise the fundamental differences between Judaism and Christianity, they know as well as most people the obstacles which stand in the way of union between Jew and Christian, they profess themselves to be definite and convinced Churchmen, but this does not preclude them from — it is rather the cause of their — - respecting the convictions of those from whom they differ; nor does it prevent them from contributing, in however humble a way, their quota towards hastening the glorious consummation which will one day come about when all will be one. W. O. E. O. G. H. B. St. Michael and All Angels, 1907. Contents. PART I. INTRODUCTORY. CHAPTER I. GENERAL HISTORICAL SURVEY. PAGE- Historical Importance of the Babylonian ExUe — Ezra, the " Founder of Judaism " — Prophetical Ideas regarding the Meaning of the Exile — The Results of the Exile on the Jewish Community — Rise of Greek-speaking Communities — Apocal3rptic Writers — ^Rabbinism and Christianity — Jewish Communities in Europe ..... I CHAPTER n. QUESTIONS PRELIMINARY. The Influence of Environment upon the Development of Re- ligious Belief — The Semitic Origin of the Jews — The Racial Characteristics of the Jews ; Religiousness ; Enthusiasm ; Optimism ; Perseverance ; Business Capacity ; Self- Assertiveness ; Exclusiveness ; Cosmopolitanism . . lo CHAPTER III. THE SOURCES OF JUDAISM. The Torah (" Law ") ; the Prophets ; the " Writings " — The Apocrypha : Historical and Pseudo-Historical Books ; Prophetic Apocrypha ; Didactic Apocrypha ; Apocalyptic Literature in the Apocrypha — Pseudepigrapha : Pseudepi- graphic Legends ; Pseudepigraphic Poetry ; Didactic Pseudepigraph ; Pseudepigraphic Apocalypses — Rejection of Pseudepigrapha by Pharisaic Judaism .... 26 CHAPTER IV. THE SOURCES OF JUDAISM (CONTINUED). The Targums — ^The Oral Tradition (the Talmudical Literature) — The Oral Law Generally — The Mishnah — TosepUa — Baraithas — The Talmuds — Apocryphal Appendices — Com- mentaries on the Talmud — Compendiums of the Talmud 44 XU CONTENTS CHAPTER V. THE SOURCES OF JUDAISM (CONCLUDED). PASS The Midrashim : Midrash Halakah and Midrash Haggadah — The Halakic Midrashim — The Haggadic Midrashim on the Pentateuch and Five Scrolls — The Homiletic Midrashim on the Lections — Other. Midrashim — Characteristics of the Midrashic Literature — New Testament Illustrations — The Prayer -Book — Ashhenazim and Sefardim-^Via.yex-'Book Compilations — Appendix : Later Sources . . .74 CHAPTER VI. HISTORICAL SKETCH OF THE DIVISIONS WITHIN THE JEWISH BODY. The Dispersion — The Pharisees — The Sxaribes — ^The Sadducees — The ^ssenes — The Karaites — The Chassidim — ^The "Reform" Jews in PART II. DOGMATIC JUDAISM. CHAPTER VII. THE LAW (" TORAH "). The Torah the final Revelation of God for all Time — Salvation only through the Torah — The Legalistic Element in Jewish Piety — Israel the People of the Torah — Christ and the Law — The Oral Tradition . . . . -135 CHAPTER VIII. THE JEWISH CONCEPTION OF GOI^. The Unity of God — The Nature and Attributes of God — ^The Relation of God to Israel and to the World . . .15* CHAPTER IX. INTERMEDIATE AGENCIES BETWEEN GOD AND MAN. Quasi-personification of Attributes proper to GcA—Metatron — Memra—T\ie Holy Spirit— BoiA /ioi— The Shekhinah—Th& Name — Bearing of these on Christian Doctrine . .169 CONTENTS XIU CHAPTER X. THE JEWISH DOCTRINE OF THE MESSIAH. PAGB Belief in the Messiah one of Growth and Development — Mes- sianic Teaching in the Apocrypha — Messianic Teaching in the Pseudepigrapha — Contrast between Pharisaic and Jewish- Hellenistic Teaching — The Teaching of later Judaism . 196 CHAPTER XI. ESCHATOLOGY. The Kingdom of God — The Eschatological Drama ; World-Epochs ; The War of Gog and Magog ; The Fate of the Gentiles ; The Purification of the Land ; The Ingathering of Israel ; The Rebuilding of Jerusalem — The Future Life — Gehenna — Paradise ......... 311 CHAPTER XII. THE JEWISH DOCTRINE OF SIN. The Comprehensive Character of the Subject — The Teaching of the Old Testament — Perplexing Character of the Teaching in Apocrypha and Pseudepigrapha — Rabbinical Teaching — The Doctrine of the Jetser hara' — The Doctrine of Zecuth — Fundamental Difference between Jewish and Christian Teaching — Modern Jewish Teaching on the Subject 229 CHAPTER XIII. THE JEWISH DOCTRINE OF BAPTISM. The Original Signification of the Jewish Rite — Did Jewish Baptism partake of the Nature of a Sacrament ? — Old Testament Baptism Sacramental in Character — Tebilah not a Sacrament — Essene Baptism Sacramental . .255 PART III. PRACTICAL RELIGION. CHAPTER XIV. THE EDUCATION AND LIFE OF THE JEW. What is a Jew ? — Early Years — Education of Children — Cheder and Religious Instruction — Hebrew and Yiddish — Bar Mitzvah — Higher Instruction 265 XIV CONTENTS CHAPTER XV. THE EDUCATION AND LIFE OF THE JEW (CONCLUDED). PAGE Marriage and Divorce — The Religious Position of Women — The Home — Death and Mourning ..... 284 CHAPTER XVI. THE SYNAGOGUE AND THE SACRED YEAR AND CALENDAR. The Synagogue ; its Arrangement, ; Oificers ; Services — Arrange- ment of Calendar — Dates of the Festivals and Fasts — The Jewish Era ........ 309 CHAPTER XVII. THE PRAYER-BOOK. The General Character of the Prayers — Influence of Sacrificial Worship of the Temple on the Synagogue Liturgy — The Benedictions and the " Eighteen Blessings " — The Sfiema' with its Benedictions — Kaddish and Prayers for the Dead — ^Arrangement of the Prayers generally . . -327 CHAPTER XVIII. THE SABBATH." The Sabbath not a Burden — The " Hallowing " of the Sabbath — The Weekly Lesson from the Pentateuch and the Prophets — The Sabbath Rest from Labour, etc. .... 344 CHAPTER XIX. THE FESTIVALS. Passover : the Preparation ; the Seder or " Home Festival " ; the Passover Sjmagogue Services — Pentecost : " The Counting of the Omer " ; the Festival — Tabernacles — Dedication — Purim 355 CHAPTER XX. THE SOLEMN DAYS AND FASTS. The New Year and Day of Atonement — The Blowing of the Shofar — Meaning of the New Year Celebration — Significance of the Day of Atonement to Modem Jews — Services on the Day of Atonement — The Fasts — Significance of Fasting — Private and Public Fasts . . . . . .381 CONTENTS XV CHAPTER XXI. SOME MODERN RELIGIOUS RITES AND CUSTOMS AMONG THE JEWS, AND THEIR ORIGIN. PACE Circumcision — Redemption of the First-born — The Dietary- Laws — Kapparath - Schlag — Peyoth — Phylacteries — Praying- Shawl — Swaying the Body — The Marriage Chuppah — The Door-post Symbol ....... 407- Illustrations. The " Ark " (containing the Scrolls of the Law) opened Frontispiece The Reader at the Desk (or Bema) . . facing page 134 The " Hagbahah " or Elevation of the Scroll of the Law .... ., „ 150 The Search for Leaven . . . ,, ,, 210 The Passover Table Spread . . ,, ,, 358 In the Booth (Feast of Tabernacles) . . ,, ,, 36* The Procession of the Palms . . ,, ,, 372 The Blowing of the Shofar or Cornet . . ,, ,, 384 Index ........... 427 Index to Bibliographicai,, Apocrypha and Pseudepigraphic References ......... 439 Abbreviations and Short Titles op Books. Bousset = Die Religion des Judentums im neutestamentlichen Zeitalter (1903), (2nd edition, 1906). Dalman Words — The Words of Jesus (Engl. Transl. 1902). E. Bibl — Encyctopadia Biblica, ed. Cheyne and Black. E. Brit — Encycloptedia Britannica (gth edition). Friedlander — The Jewish Religion (2nd edition, 1900). Hastings' DB = Dictionary of the Bible, ed. Hastings. Hastings' DCG — Dictionary of Christ and the Gospels, ed. Hastings. HjP — A History of the Jewish People in the Time of Jesus Christ, by E. Schiirer (English Translation 1890). Holtzmann — Neutestamentliche Zeitgeschichte (2nd edition 1906). JE — Jewish Encyclopeedia. JQR — Jewish Quarterly Review. Kautsch = Die Apohryphen und Pseudepigraphen des Alien Testaments, ed. E. Kautsch. PEFQS = Palestine Exploration Fund, Quarterly Statement. PRE — Real-Encyhlopadie fur protestantische Theologie und Kirche, ed. Herzog and Hauck. PSBA — Proceedings of the Society for Biblical Archaology. RE — Realencyclopddie fur Bibel und Talmud. Singer — The Authorized Daily Prayer -Book of the United Hebrew Congregations of the British Empire, ed. Singer (6th edition 1900). Weber = Judische Theologie auf Grund des Talmud und verwandter Schriften (end edition 1897). The Religion and Worship of the Synagogue. PART I. INTRODUCTORY. CHAPTER I. General Historical Survey. Historical Importance of the Babylonian Exile — Ezra, the " Folinder of Judaism " — ^Prophetical Ideas regarding the Meaning of the Exile — The Results of the Exile on the Jewish Community — Rise of Greek-speaking Communities — Apocalyptic Writers — Rabbinism and Christianity — JewisI^ Communities in Europe. Both politically and religiously the Babylonian Exile marks a crisis in the history of the People of Israel. In a sense it is the climax of their history, for with it the national existence came to an end. With the destruction of the Jewish State all that remained of the Israel of old was dissolved. But on the ruins of the old a new Israel was to arise. For just as the Exodus resulted in making Israel a nation, so the Exile and its consequences became the appointed means for transforming the nation into a Church. Hence- forth we have to deal, not with a single people living its confined but intense national life within the narrow limits of Judgean Palestine, but with a religious com- munity widely (and, as time proceeded, ever more widely) diffused ; whose centre (or rather centres) lay outside Palestine ; and among whose units Palestinian Judaism only slowly and gradually assumed a pre-eminent place, which it was destined ultimately once more to lose. 1 2— (2417) 2 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP The advent of Cyrus as deliverer had, it is true, excited the hopes of the more patriotic of the Jewish exiles to the highest pitch. They looked for a second Exodus — this time from Babylon ^ — and for the establishment of Israel in the Holy Land on the basis of a new covenant, and in a form fitted to express the lofty conceptions that had been developed of the covenant-people's vocation and destiny.^ These aspirations find their sublimest expression and most gorgeous setting in the discourses of the " Great Unknown " prophet of the Exile, who is commonly designated the Deutero-Isaiah (Isaiah, Chaps. 40 foil.). In the immediate result, expectation, as we know, was only very imperfectly fulfilled. In the minds of the more ardent the reality must have produced disillusion- ment ; while others could only look to the future for the longed-for consummation. Meanwhile the Jeru- salem community lived on in obscurity and weakness, and as yet gave little promise of what was to come. " All seems on a reduced scale, as compared with the past. Zechariah was the chief prophet, Nehemiah the chief man of action, in an epoch which their con- temporaries spoke of slightingly, but mistakenly, as ' a day of small things.'" ' One great and distinguished figure, however, emerges in the person of Ezra, who occupies a unique place in the history of Jewish religion. Ezra, in fact, may justly be described as the " founder of Judaism." Before proceeding to summarize the characteristics of the age subsequent to Nehemiah it will be well to state briefly, (i) the prophetic ideas regarding the meaning of the Exile, and (2) its actual results on the Jewish community. (i) According to the prophets the destruction of the Jewish State was due to the sin of the people. The prophets, 1 Cf., e.g.. Is. 42>« ff. ; 52". » Cf. Is. 42",' ; 49. » Hay Hunter, After the Exile, I, xvil. RESULTS OF THE EXILE 3 who have been well called " the conscience of Israel " exhibit a keen and intense sense of national sin. Accord- ingly Israel is judged aftei' a (relatively) ideal standard. An instance vividly iUustrating the prophetic conception of the destructiveness of moral evil can be seen in Jeremiah 42'"2«. Further, the fall of Judah was the triumph of Jehovah. The Jehovah of the prophets was the moral ruler of the world Who " was exalted in judgment . . . sanctified in righteousness " (Is. 5^^). While other gods shared the ruin of their people Jehovah alone " rose the higher over the ruins of Jerusalem." Far different was it with the Jehovah of the mass of the people and their prophets. He was but the national deity of Israel, and had succumbed before the gods of Babylon.^ (2) The results of the Exile on the Jewish Community were stupendous. It denationalized religion. It has justly been pointed out ^ that, in principle, the separation between the State and the Church had already been effected in the Book of Deuteronomy. But in practice Deuteronomic principles met at the outset with serious obstacles in the way of their realization. The last of these disappeared with the destruction of the State. " The death of the people was the birth of the individual, and the ruin of the State the rise of the Church." Ultimately, as we shall see, the new religious forces that were developed embodied themselves in new forms. The first to seize and enforce the lessons of the Exile was the prophet Ezekiel, " the first dogmatist of the Old Testariient." He laid the theological foundations of the structure which Ezra reared.* The immediate effect of the catastrophe of 586 B.C., * See further Davidson, The Exile and Restoration, ch. ii. ' e.g., by Comill, Der Israelitische Prophetismus, pp. 83 ff. (6th Ed.). » Cf. the Chapter referring to Ezek. in Comill, op. cit. ch. iv, pp. 117 ff. 4 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP when Temple and City were destroyed, must have been keenly felt by all the survivors. In spite of the fact that the exiles in Chaldsa were allowed to live together in clans and famihes, many doubtless lost heart and faith, and merged themselves in the surrounding heathenism. Those who remained faithful were almost without hope. " They were Ijdng under a sort of vast interdict ; they could not celebrate any sacrifice or keep any feast ; they could only celebrate days of fasting and humihation,* and such rites as had no inseparable connexion with the Holy Land." Among the practices whose importance as signs of a common religion was enhanced during this period were the observance of the Sabbath and the rite of circumcision. Meetings on the Sabbath Day, during which it may have become customairy to read selections from the prophetic writings, appear also to have grown up during the Exile. The achievements of the century which ended with the age of Nehemiah cannot be better summed up than in the words of the eloquent author of After the Exile « : " Within these hundred years . . . the teaching of Moses was established as the basis of the national life, the first steps were taken towards the formation of a Canon of Scripture. Jewish society was moulded into a shape which succeeding centuries modified, but did not essentially change. During this period, the Judaea of the days of our Lord came into being. Within this period, the forces which opposed Christ, the forces which rallied to His side, had their origin. This century saw the rise of parties, which afterwards became sects, under » Such were the fasts of the loth, 4th, 5th and 7th months (cf. Zech. 8"), commemorating the commencement of the siege of Jerusalem (loth of Tebeth), the breach made in the wall (17th Tammuz), the destruction of the Temple (9th of Ab), and the murder of Gedaliah (3rd of Tisri), all still observed by the Jews (see ch. xx). According to Jewish tradition both the first and the second Temple were destroyed on the same day (9th of Ab). * Vol. I, p. xvi. FURTHER RESULTS OF THE EXILE 5 the names of Pharisees and Sadducees. It laid the foundations of Rabbinism. It fixed the attitude of the Jews towards the Gentiles. It put the priesthood on the way to supreme authority. It gave birth to the Samaritan schism." Nothing is more significant of the altered balance of forces that inevitably grew out of the changed conditions of Jewish hfe than the position of the Davidic royal house in the restored community. The last member of the old royal family to occupy a position of power and importance at Jerusalem appears to have been Zerubbabel, who for a time was Governor (or " Pekah "). But while the importance of the old Davidic line dechned, that of the High Priest correspondingly advanced. Indeed, it is probable that the latter came to be recognized as the official representative of the community by the Imperia Power. It is true that for a brief space the Palestinian Jews won and enjoyed political independence in the brilliant days of the Maccabees. But this is only one of those exceptions that piove the rule. National inde- pendence was then only secured when the religious elements among the people were goaded into revolt by persecution ; and the latter quite willingly acquiesced in the re-establishment of foreign control over secular affairs, when religious liberty was again guaranteed. In fact it was ultimately recognized that the political independence won by the Hasmoneans was really only a " brilliant aberration " from the true course of the Church-nation's historical development. ^ ' It is true, the party of the " Zealots " became powerful in the first century a.d. in Palestine, and were really responsible for the revolt against Rome, which ended in the destruction of Jerusalem a.d. 70, and this party was, of course, a pohtical party in the sense that it was anti-Roman, and objected to all foreign domination ; . the same remark applies to the Bar-Kokba revolt ( 1 32-1 35 A.D.) when the most famous Rabbi of the period, Akiba, committed himself to a definitely anti-Roman attitude and paid the penalty with his hfe. But in both cases strong protests were 6 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP The period subsequent to the acceptance of the Law by the Jerusalem community (b.c. 444, probably) is, strictly speaking, the period of Judaism. The ideas that characterize the system of Judaism wiU come up for discussion later on. Perhaps one of the most striking, and one that later received manifold expression, is the idea of the separateness of the Jew from the heathen. The period that falls between Nehemiah's second visit to Jerusalem (B.C. 432) and the birth of our Lord is one of many-sided importance. Though it is often neglected, it may be truly said that without some know- ledge of the history, political and religious, which during these centuries so profoundly affected Jewish life and thought, not only the New Testament, but also a con- siderable portion of the Old, cannot be at all adequately understood. Under the action of Greek culture and civilization, which were widely diffused with the conquests of Alexander, as well as by the subsequent rise of Roman political power in the East, Palestine, in common with the rest of the ancient oriental world, was transformed. The internal and external life and growth of Judaism itself were profoundly modified ; parties and movements, religious and political ideas and ideals, were slowly developed and gradually assumed the form with which the pages of the New Testament have made us familiar. Perhaps the most striking evidence of these influences on Judaism, during this period, is the rise of the large and powerful communities of Greek-speaking Jews which, after the commencement of the Greek epoch had come into existence in various portions of the civilized world outside Palestine, and within the confines of the Roman Empire (The Dispersion).^ How large a part this element made by otlier eminent Jewish authorities, and ultimately a non-political attitude was accepted as the true expression of Judaism. 1 Cf. S. John 73" : " Will He go unto the Dispersion among the Greeks and teach the Greeks ? " THE JEWISH APOCALYPTISTS 7 subsequently played in facilitating the rapid diffusion of Christianity is well known ; take for instance the eloquent fact that the books of the New Testament, at least in their canonical form, assumed a Greek dress.^ The Judaism of Alexandria — the Judaism of Philo-- was, of course, very different from the Pharisaic orthodoxy of Jerusalem. And, no doubt, the broader and less exclusive type of religion that characterized the Alexan- drines fixed the type of religion that prevailed in the Jewish communities of the Roman Empire generally. S. Paul may have been brought under the influence of this spirit in his early years at Tarsus, though he did (for a time) become a " Pharisee of the Pharisees." In fact it is possible that on the soil of Palestine itself a school of religious thought of a distinctly higher spiritual type than the current Pharisaic orthodoxy may have been active in the last two centuries B.C., and that the leaders of this school were the great Apocalyptic writers, some of whose work has survived in the Apocalyptic literature (e.g. the Book of Enoch) . If, as has recently been maintained, ^ the great Apocalyptists, rather than the orthodox Rabbis of Jerusalem, were the religious leaders of large sections of the people — " the people of the land " *— and if the preaching of John the Baptist was really a movement that took its rise among the 'am ha- arets, then we are brought face to face with the highly interesting fact that there was within Palestinian Judaism a sort of Jewish preparation for Christianity.* It is ' In fact, the New Testament books, in point of language may be regarded as belonging to the extensive HeUenistic hterature of the Jews which included the Jewish-Greek version of the Old Testament known as The Septuagint. * See M. Friedlander's epoch-making book, Die religiosen Bewegungen innerhalb des ludentums im Zeitalter Jesu (Berlin, 190S). * " People of the land," Heb. 'am ha-areis, almost a technical term in Rabbinical hterature. * In the first two chapters of the Third Gospel we may very probably see a sketch of this type of Jewish piety in the typical 8 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP important to remember that Judaism, as it existed before the destruction of Jerusalem, was much more complex ^nd richer in content than it afterwards became when Rabbinism secured its final triumph. Rabbinical orthodoxy was only one among other elements before a.d. 70. Doubtless the rise of Christianity had some influence in fixing the ultimate result ; Christianity must have largely absorbed the more liberal elements of the Jewish Dis- persion. Henceforth, after a.d. 70, Judaism is essentially bound up with the Rabbinical expression of it. Thfe centre of the Rabbinic schools was at first Palestine, where under the Jewish patriarchs the Jewish com- munity were to enjoy for a period a certain amount of prosperity (2-4 cent. a.d.). Here the earliest codification of the oral Law, the Mishnah, was written (c. 190 a.d.) by Judah ha-Nasi (the " Prince "). The Mishnah formed the basis for discussion in the Rabbinical schools both of Palestine and of Babylonia ; for, it must be remembered. Babylonia was still the centre of a large Jewish population. The results 'of these discussions in Palestine and Babylonia were embodied in the Talmud of Jerusalem (completed c. 5 cent, a.d.) and the Talmud of Babylon (completed c. 6 cent. a.d.)^. A word may be added on the rise of Jewish com- munities in Europe. The fact that such existed at a comparatively early period in Greece and Rome is already familiar from the New Testament. When the Roman community had its origin is unknown, but in any case it was well established by the time of S. Paul. If, as seems not improbable, the Emperor Hadrian deported some Jewish colonists to the neighbourhood of the Rhine after the suppression of the Bar-Kokba revolt (135 a.d.), we can see in this fact figures of Mary and Joseph, Simeon and Anna, and Zacharias, all doubtless looking for a spiritual (as opposed to a merely national) redemption to be effected by the " consolation of IsraeL" » See further ch. v. THE STUDY OF JEWISH HISTORY 9 the origin of the rise of the great central community of Jews which spread over Middle Europe, including Poland, and which was called later the community of the Ashkenazim.i We are thus brought to the full stream of European Jewish History, and so into the domain of all that can be called Modem in its application to Judaism. ^ See ch. v. Additional Note. — The Study of Jewish History with which the present volume is not directly concerned, is all-important for the right understanding of Judaism generally. The main relevant facts can be gathered from several useful works. The following, which are accessible in English, may be enumerated here : — i. Between Nehemiah and the New Testament : Jerusalem under the High-Priests by E. Bevan, London, 1904 ; From Exile to Advent by W. Fairweather, Edinburgh, 1905. ii. The New Testament Period : History of the Jewish People in the time of Jesus Christ (EngUsh Translation, 5 vols.) by E. Schiirer, Edinburgh, 1890. The Jews under Roman Rule, W. D. Morrison, London, 1890 (strongly recommended). The Life and Times of Jesus, the Messiah, by A. Edersheim (2 vols., 7th Ed.), London, 1892 ; also abbreviated edition in one volume. iii. History of the Jews generally : History of the 'Jews, by H. Graetz (English Translation, 5 vols.), London, 1892. History of the Jewish Nation, by A. Edersheim (New Edition), London, 1896. Jewish Life in the Middle Ages, by I. Abrahams, London, 1896. Out- lines of Jewish History, by Lady Magnus, London, 1898. The following volume will also be found very useful, I. Abrahams, A Short History of Jewish Literature (from a.d., 70-1786), London, ^906. CHAPTER II. Questions Preliminary. Thb Influence of Environment upon the Development of Religious Belief— The Semitic Origin of the Jews— The Racial Characteristics of the Jews ; Religiousness ; Enthusiasm ; Optimism ; Perse- verance ; Business Capacity ; Self-Assertiveness ; Exclusiveness ; Cosmopolitanism. I. The Influence of Environment upon the Development of Religious Belief. It is a truth which is probably insufficiently reahzed that early religious conceptions and practices have been to a large extent (under God) evolved, moulded, and either stereotyped or modified, by physical surroundings. This has had its effect upon the rehgion of the Jews, for, although the religion of Israel was so distinctive and unique from the very beginnings of the nation's history, it is certain, nevertheless, that its ancestors practised a faith which was, in its main characteristics, common to the Semitic race.^ " The positive Semitic religions had to establish themselves on ground already occupied by older beliefs and usages ; they had to displace what they could not assimilate, and whether they rejected or absorbed the elements of the older religion, they had at every point to reckon with them, and take up a definite attitude towards them. No positive religion that has moved men has been able to start with a tabula rasa, and express itself as if religion were beginning for the first time." * '^ Jos. •24* : " Thus saith the Lord God of Israel, your fathers dwelt on the other side of the flood (i.e., the Euphrates) in old time, even Terah, the father of Abraham and the father of Nachor, and they served other gods." Cf . also verses 14, 15. ' Robertson Smith : The Religion of the Semites (New Edition), p. 2. 10 INFLUENCE OF ENVIRONMENT 11 Moreover, we have overwhelming evidei^ce in the Bible itself that from the wanderings in the wilderness right up to the Babylonian Captivity there was an ever- recurring tendency to revert to an older — a polytheistic — form of worship. Clearly, therefore, this ancient worship exercised considerable influence upon the religion of Israel ; and it is no exaggeration to say that no one of the religions of Semitic origin, among which not only Judaism, but Christianity itself is to be reckoned, can be fully understood without inquiry into the older traditional religion of the Semitic race.^ It is no part of our present intention to prosecute such inquiry here, but a reference to the older faith will be necessary in several cases, because (as wiU be seen in a later Chapter) a number of the religious practices of modem orthodox Jews go back in their origin to a period of remote antiquity, and, if religious customs and practices are to be properly understood, they must, whenever possible, be traced back to their origin. In its beginnings the Israelite religion was greatly influenced by environment, physical as well as social ; in its most modem developments the influence of environment has been very marked. Take as an instance the eloquent fact that the Jewish people, who within historical times, down to the time when the Mishnah was compiled,^ were essentially an agricultural people, have under stress of political and social circum- stances almost entirely ceased to be so ; this has been the case for the greater part of the Christian era.* As is * Robertson Smith : The Religion of the Semites, p. 3. 2 Whole treatises of the Mishnah are devoted to purely agricultural subjects ; the first division of the Mishnah has the general title ^eyaj'm ("Seeds "), and the second treatise in this division, Peah (" Corner "), deals with the regulations concerning the corner of the field (Lev. 19*, " ; 2322 ; Deut. 24^*-^^) and with the rights of the poor in general. Cf. JE viii, 617. ' See Abrahams' Jewish Life in the Middle Ages, chaps; xi, xii (London, 1896). 12 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP well known, the Jews of modem times have been mainly engaged in various forms of trade ; quite recently, however, a gallant attempt has ; been made to revive agriculture in the Jewish colonies of Palestine. This influence of environment upon religious belief and teaching is naturally as strong upon individuals as upon communities ; and when such individuals are great teachers and leaders of men, the influence becomes limitless in its workings. A striking instance from the Bible may be given. After Moses, the most notable exponents of the religion of Israel were the prophets ; but each prophet stamped his presentation of belief with a marked individuality ; this is most conspicuously evident in the prophetic teaching on the Personality of God, which is the central core of aU religion. Each prophet emphasizes some special characteristic of God, and the individuality of each prophet's teaching finds its highest expression just in that particular personal attribute of God upon which he specially lays stress. Amos was a shepherd ; it was a rough life which he led among the wilds of Southern Judaea, far from the cultured centres of town life, with its luxury, and sin, and easy-going belief in a good-natured God ^ ; with its feasting and revelling and constant round of enjoyment.^ To Amos life was serious ; nature, as he saw it, was stem ; and his conception of the God of nature was in accordance with what he saw. To hini the thunder and lightning, wind, storm and tempest, which he so often witnessed in all their fierceness and awe-inspiring grandeur on those lonely hills, were but manifestations of God's anger with His sinning people, an anger which was demanded because God was just. And the teaching » For an illustrated account of these, English and German, see Views from Palestine and the Jewish Colonies photographed and described by J. Raflfalovich and M. E. Sachs, published for the " Chovevi Zion Association " in London (undated). 2 Amos 5". ^ Amos 6*-«. GREAT HEBREW PERSONALITIES 13 of Amos dealt mainly with the wrath of God. The stem, hard life, and surroundings of the Judaean herdsman were not without their influence upon his thought, and therefore upon his words and teaching. Or, to take one other instance, Isaiah, as far as can be gathered, was probably related to the royal house, and was, at any rate, in frequent contact with the court and king ; he often witnessed, therefore, earthly pomp and circum- stance. Was it that which first taught him to think about a heavenly court, and how infinitely greater God's majesty and glory must be ? Certain it is that he is the great exponeiit of the sublime majesty of God; what better instance of this could be referred to than that superb picture in the sixth chapter of his book, which begins : "I saw the Lord sitting upon a throne, high and lifted up, and his train filled the temple." It must not be supposed that later Judaism is destitute of great personahties among its exponents and teachers ; the contrast between Isaiah and Maimonides, or Moses Mendelssohn, may, perhaps, at first sight strike the Christian reader with a painful shock of surprise, but, all the same, the latter loom very large in the Jewish consciousness, and have exercised a profound and far- reaching influence over Jewish development. If the heroes of later Judaism are not of such imposing propor- tions, or cast in such a heroic mould as the great prophets of Israel, this but serves to illustrate the point under discussion ; the latter times have not exactly been heroic, the environment of the Ghetto has not exactly been comparable in power and possibility with the free and spontaneous energy generated by political independence and real national existence.^ Therefore, just as the teaching of individuals is impressed and coloured by their life and surroundings, so the religion of a nation — which it has to teach the world — ^is influenced by national characteristics, and ' See further chap, iii, § vii. 14 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP modified by the varying conditions under which the nation, or a part of it, is forced to live. In the domain of pure religion it will suffice to point to two examples of this. Reverence for the Torah (the Law),i which so profoundly modified Israel's religion as taught by the prophets, took its rise during the Babylonian Captivity, which, though at first sight a time of profound mis- fortune, proved to be the Golden Age of literary activity, Again, what is known as the " Reform " Movement of to-day has been mainly brought about by the favour- able, not to say seductive, surroundings in which many Jews now find themselves. II. The Semitic Origin of the Jews. The Jews belong to what is called the " northern " branch of the Semitic race. The northern Semites com- prise the Babylonians, Assyrians, Aramaeans (Syrians), Phoenicians, Canaanites (Amorites), and the' Israelites.* The southern Semites include the Arabians and the Abyssinians. Some of these could be subdivided, but it is unnecessary to go into these subdivisions here. The purest strain of the Semites is to be found among the Bedouin Arabs of Arabia,' and, according to a number of the best authorities on the subject, it is Arabia which must be regarded as the primeval home of the Semites. The Arabs were a prolific race ; yet Arabia was a land which was by nature unable to sustain a large population for any length of time. Only here and there, at spots where a plentiful and permanent supply of water was assured, were settlements on a large scale possible. The land as a whole lacks water and can offer a lasting home 1 See chap, iii, § i. ' The Philistines ought probably to be included in this branch, though their Semitic descent has been denied by some scholars. ' The interesting observation has been made more than once that it is stiU possible to hear the pure classical form of Arabic — the Arabic of the Kpran, with fuU case-endings, etc, — spoken among the Bedouin of the Arabian steppes. EMIGRATIONS FROM ARABIA 15 only to the wandering Bedouin herdsmen. The surplus population, therefore, was being constantly thrown off, and hordes of sturdy country-bom nomads periodically overflowed into the more cultufed centres, displacing to a great extent the occupiers,^ and being afterwards dis- placed themselves by a similar process. There was thus a constant coming and going, a giving and taking, a periodical change, the town-dwellers giving place to the healthy and physically more vigorous country people — a real struggle for existence. Probably as early as the fifth millennium before Christ the Sumerians were to a, great extent overwhelmed by a huge wave of Semitic immigration. Certainly in the third millennium, when the ancient Babylonian kingdom had become decayed and rotten, a further wave of Semites moved out from Arabia and wrought great changes in that ancient seat of civilization. It was, too, at this period that the Canaanite element appeared in Syria and Palestine," while at the same time the (Semitic ?) Hyksos asserted themselves in Egypt. From the beginning of the second mUlennium onwards numerous examples of the old process are observ- able ; the Semitic nomads from northern Arabia press into Mesopotamia, Aramaic nomads make repeated inroads into the Babylonian-Assyrian centres of civiKzation, the Minseans wander southwards, the Phoenicians and the Hebrews gradually move up along the east coast of the Mediterranean Sea, and the Chaldeans in southern Baby- lonia begin to show signs of unrest.^ So that both from the earUest available historical data, as weU as from the analogy of later history, we are led to regard Arabia as ' Cf. a similar process which took place in. Europe during the fourth and following centuries, when Central Europe was overrun by the Huns. " For signs of the pre-Semitic population of Palestine, see PEFQS, 1 902-1 904. * See O. Weber, Arabien vor dem Islam-, in " Der alte Orient," 1901. 16 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the primeval home of the Semitic race. Thus it is inter- esting to note that the two sole surviving representatives of the old Semitic populations are the Arabs, who still maintain their primitive characteristics, and the scattered Jewish communities.^ This fact has an important bearing on the estimate we form of the modem Jew. Though there is every reason to suppose that at various times other racial elements have been absorbed into the Jewish," the Jew has re- mained and remains to-day essentially oriental. Orient- alism must constantly be allowed for in judging not only Jewish life and character, but also all the products of the Jewish spirit, including, of course, all branches of its literature. Not only the Old, but also the New Testament itself is very largely an oriental literary product. The failure to allow for this element, and give it its due place, has proved disastrous to much Christian exegesis. > The Semitic element among the old Ass3rro- Babylonian population has long since lost its identity and become sub- merged in the various movements and changes brought about by successive invasions and poUtical changes. Arabic influence amidst this welter of vicissitudes has left a marked impress upon language and culture, e.g. Turkish and Persian, and even Hindustani. It seems clear, on the whole, that the genuine Jewish type has been preserved most distinctly where large communities of Jews have been isolated and artificially kept apart by stringent poUtical conditions. The most outstanding instance is perhaps the case of the PoUsh Jews. The fact that the typical Polish-Jewish physiognomy shows marked points of resem- blance with that of the Bedouin Arab confirms iJie truth of this observation (Cf. also the Israelite t3rpes preserved on Egyptian monuments.) > It is well known that the racial purity of the Jewish popula- tion of GaUlee was not above suspicion ; the very name " Galilee . of the Gentiles " suggests that the region so called was the border- land between Jews and Gentiles. Notice also in the Gospels the implied contempt of the Jerusalem population for the GalUsean accent, and provincial speech, " thy speech bewrayeth thee." This is a subject of jest (at the expense of the Galilaeans) in the Talmud. It should be added that while the provincial accent and speech of the Apostles is referred to in the Gospels, no such peculiarity is suggested or impUed in the case of oiir Lord. RACIAL PURITY 17 Regarding the racial purity of the Jews of Modem Europe, it is difficult to arrive at any very definite con- clusions ; that a certain amount of intermixture has taken place is undeniable (e.g., marriages of Jews with non- Jewish women are fairly common) ; while certain Jewish families, undoubtedly, have always been very particular to preserve the pure IsraeUtish strain, more especially priestly families.^ ' At the same time, the influence of a non-Jewish environment, continued through long cen- turies, has issued in surprising results even as regards the physical characteristics of the race ; examples of distinctively non- Jewish types of physiognomy are by no means rare among the Jewish populations of Europe. An interesting controversy, involving the points referred to above, took place a few years ago in England in the pages of the Jewish Chronicle ; a one view strenuously upheld by several eminent English Jews, including the late Dr. Singer, is that Judaism is not essentially an affair of race, but simply the profession of a particular form of creed, hke e.g., Roman Catholicism as contrasted with Protestantism ; on the other hand, it is maintained that those who profess this particular form of creed are prac- tically, without exception, bom Jews. A Jew is bom, not made. A reference in this connexion may be made to Heine's bitter remark : " Judaism is not a religion, but a misfortune ! " * III. The Racial Characteristics of the Jews. One of the most interesting studies with regard to the Jews, and one which obviously concerns their religion > Many of them treasure long and detaUed genealogies showing pure Jewish descent. » See Jewish Chronicle for October 19, 26, November 2 and 9, 1900. » See further, on the points above discussed, JE, art. Anthro- pology. 3— (2417), 18 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP very closely, is that of their racial characteristics. These must be divided into two classes : i. Those that are indigenous to the Semitic race, and ii. Those that have been acquired by varied environ- ment during the last two thousand years of their ■ history. i.. There is, first and foremost, what may be termed their Religiousngss. It is perfectly true that the study of Anthropology has revealed the fact that Religiousness, in varied form, is a characteristic common to aU races,, even the most primitive ; and that no race exists in which a belief in higher, spiritual powers (of varying qualities, it is true) does not play a leading part in the life of the people. Thus, for example, the most primitive races in existence, those namely of Central and Northern Australia, who are still in the Stone Age, possess a depth of religious feeling and a store of religious (from our point of view superstitious) practices, the existence of which was never dreamt of by anthropologists of a generation ago.^ But while all early races have this remarkable store of religious, or superstitiotis, belief, that of the early Semites was characterized by a loftiness of conception which, with one exception, cannot be paralleled by any other early race. The exception refers to the Egyptians ; but even here many scholars are disposed to believe that the Egyptians were not wholly free from the admixture of Semitic blood ; at any rate, there can be no doubt of this, that it was during the ascendency of the Hyksos or " Shepherd Kings "^who were, probably, Semites— that 1 See the works of Spencer and Gillen, The Native Tribes of Central Australia (1899), The Northern Tribes of Central Australia {1904). In the forrder of these two works magic and reUgion are differentiated, but it would be difficult to indicate precisely where the dividing Une between the two should be drawn ; what we should call magic is religion to the savage, just as what was, in many cases, religion to mediaeval Christians is designated superstition by us now ; and the process may continue, for all we know. RELIGIOUSNESS OF THE JEW 19 the religious reform in the direction of a monotheistic worship took place in Egypt, i Religiousness, then, the development of the religious faculty, was a characteristic of the Semitic race. But there was no branch of the Semitic race in which this religious faculty was more strikingly developed than in the Hebrew branch. The people whose religion forms the foundation of Christianity and Moham- medanism, ^ the people whose religion is the source of that of nearly half the population of the world, must be pecu- liarly endowed with the genius of religion, — ^moreover, a people who have given to the world the Old and New Testaments must needs standout as preeminently endowed with the spirit of religion. How this people became so endowed, whether, as we believe, through the direct revela- tion of God, or whether, as many (including, strange to say, not a few Jews) hold, it was the result of a natural process of mental evolution, is not a question that need be here discussed ; it is the fact that now concerns us, and of that fact there is no shadow of doubt. Another characteristic (which the Semite shares with the rest of Orientals) is a certain warmness of tempera- ment, a capacity for deep and strongly defined feeling, which differentiates so markedly the East from the West. The Oriental exercises little or no restraint, as a rule, over his emotional nature ; often there is a certain extravagance about his actions and words, which to the colder temperament of the West must necessarily appear ^ If it be objected, as has not infrequently been done, that the higher development of religious feeling and belief was due not to racial characteristic (i.e. to the divine implanting) but to a more highly-developed culture, one has but to point to the far highef culture and civilization of the peoples of Greece and Rome, who yet in their religious beUefg and practices were not very far removed from the level of the savage. * It is an interesting fact that on Mount Sinai at the present day there stands a Christian Church in close proximity to a Mohamme- dan mosque — the living picture of a striking, but often forgotten, ^th. 20 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP eccentric, not to say grotesque. This nowhere emerges more clearly than in the literature ; luxuriant verbiage, hyperbole, fantastic imagery are the natural modes of expression indulged in by an Eastern writer when he is writing fully and without constraint ; when this quality is reduced (as it is reduced, though by no means elimin- ated, in the sacred literature of Israel) this fact must be accounted for by the moderating and restraining influence of pure religious ideas.^ No Easterns have ever displayed these characteristics in more pronounced form than the Jews and Arabs. The classical examples of religious fana- ticism are to be found among members of these two branches of the Semitic race (cf., for example, Rabbi Akiba, and the prophet Mohammed). And this is equally true of the Jews and Arabs of the present tinje ; one has but to watch a typical Semite, whether he be a foreign. Jew living in the East End of London or a Mullah in the Soudan, speak on any subject that really interests him, and observe the varying facial expression, the flashing eyes and animated gestures, to realize at once how easily the fanati- cal spirit can be kindled in that excitable temperament. ' To anyone who reads the New Testament (especially the Gospels) with open eyes, the characteristic marks of orientaUsm are patent ; at the same time in Ho other branch of Semitic literature is the restraining influence of high reUgious ideas more pronounced. One has but to contrast the Canonical Gospels, on the one hand, with the Apocrsrphal, on the other hand, and with Rabbinical writings, to see how markedly the New Testament product [is distinguished by its sobriety and sweet reasonableness ; and this is above all true of our Lord as a teacher when the accounts of Him and His words are compared with those of typical Jewish Rabbis : " He spake as one having authority and not as the scribes," Matt. 7". A good instance of His method in deahng with a question of Law (Halakah) occurs in S. Mark 7 i~23. ; xhs direct statements here made contrast forcibly with the regular Rabbinical methods of formal teaching on matters of binding law ; if a Rabbi gave aii " halakic " decision he would think it necessary to base the conclusion on Scriptural authority, which would be reached by an elaborate and complicated use of texts interpreted according to Rabbinical rules of exegesis. QPTIMISM 21 The highest manifestation of this temperament is of course a discipHned faith, the lowest an unrestrained and narrow fanaticism. As illustrations of the rise to boiling-point of the fanatical ^ spirit among the Jews may be cited the Maccabaean revolt, the rise of the " Zealots," followed by the first (a.d. 70) and the second (a.d. 132-135) revolts against Rome ; and, in modem times, the Zionist Move- ment ; among the Arabs, the Mohammedan propaganda, which in the pride of its early strength overwhelmed the East, and then all but succeeded in overwhelming the West.» , Closely connected with the quality that has been dis- cussed, and, in fact, one of its manifestations, is the optim- istic temperament which at all crises of their history, and not least during the Christian centuries, has proved one of the most priceless possessions of the Jewish people.^ In face of the dire persecutions that have from time to time been inflicted on them in Christian Europe they have ever exhibited a brave front ; unquenchable hope has always characterized them.* A pathetic example of this deep-seated optimistic feeling is to be seen in the watchword with which Jews cheer one another at the 1 " Fanatical " is here meant to include the best sense of the term. > The great victory, won by Charles Martel at Tours in 729, stemmed the tide of Arab invasion in the West, and saved Western Christendom. ^The Moors were not finally driven out of Spain tUl 1492. Constantinople fell to the Turks in 1453. ' " This, too, is for the best " was the favourite sa5dng of one of the most venerated Rabbis who figure in the Talmud, not in any spirit of meek resignation or morbid fataUsm, but in the spirit of incurable optimism. With optimism came cheerfulness which was regarded as one of the leading virtues. See Montague, Tales from the Talmud, p. 231 (1906).,' * In fact, persecution has but served to show them at their best, it has (under God) refined and strengthened the racial type, though nothing can avail to excuse or paUiate the savagery that often marked such outbursts of unchristian passion. The bitter fruits have been hatred and mutual contempt and misunderstanding, which even yet have not been fully removed. 22 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP close of the annual Passover Feast : " Next year in Jerusalem." ii. Acquired characteristics. It is important to remember that the main determining cause in the evolution of what may be called acquired Jewish characteristics has been due to the fact that the dispersed Jewish communities have at various times been subjected to persecutions from without. This is, of course, specially true of the Jews in Europe, but it is also true, in a less degree, of Jewish communities in the East. The net residt, on the whole, of persecution has been to consolidate the race— a result which has both a good and a bad side. Perhaps the most valuable quality developed under these conditions, and one that deserves the first mention is Perseverance. In the exercise of this racial trait, the Jews offer an example to all the world. Their perse- verance, as could be proved by hundreds of instances, is indomitable ; the greater the obstacle, the keener is the resolve to overcome. There are many interesting examples on record of the various stages " westwards," through which the persevering Jew of the East End has passed, and eventually settled down in the West End of London. The motive underlying his desire may often be an unworthy one, but that means that a good characteristic has been used for a bad purpose, for success is, certainly in most cases, due to perseverance.^ But good qualities have only too frequently their bad counterpart, and it will not be dis- puted that the persevering Jew can also be obstinate, and filled with egotism and impregnable conceit ; this makes him sometimes difficult, and even disagreeable, to deal with, not only for Christians, but also for his fellow-Jews. ' Nobler examples of the same quality could easily be cited, e.g., the progress of the young Jew, devoted to learning, from a Polish Ghetto to some distinguished position in the Academic world, is by no means an uncommon event. JEWISH DISABILITIES 23 And this leads us to touch upon a characteristic, which to the ordinary Christian is the Jewish characteristic par excellence, viz. Business Capacity/— though it is true, under " business," so far as Jews are concerned, the ordinary Christian too often understands moriey- lending, and selling old clothes ! It is interesting to inquire what basis of fact underlies this estimate. It arose through the action of the Church during the Middle Ages towards the Jews ; restrictions on practically every handicraft and on almost every trade in which Jews sought to engage were in force. In the " Ordinance of VaUad- olid," drawn up in 1412, one may see of what kind these restrictions were ; Jews were prohibited from selling bread, wine, flour, oil or butter in the markets ; they were not allowed to practise carpentering, tailoring or shoemaking, and they were strictly forbidden to employ or be employed by Christians in any trade whatsoever. In other parts of Europe these restrictions were enforced even more rigidly than in Spain. In England money- lending was absolutely the only profession open to a Jew.^ Can one wonder that the habit of centuries should have become second nature to the descendants of many Jews ? It is, certainly in part, due to this treatment that the " sharp practice " of the Jew has become proverbial. Once more, it may perhaps be due to the contrast between the restrictions of the past and the complete liberty of action (at all events in England and America) now enjoyedj that accounts for the disagreeable self-asser- tiveness, and love of ostentation which are characteristic of a certain type of Jew; it is but fair, however, to ^ It is a mistake to suppose, however, that all Jews have great business capacity ; there are large numbers of Jews living in deep poverty. 2 See Abrahams' Jewish Life in the Middle Ages, London, 1896 ; Jacob's The Jews of Angevin England, London, 1893 ; and Select Pleas, Starrs and Records of the Jewish Exchequer, edited for the Selden Society by J. M. Rigg, London, 1901, 24 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP remember that these quaMties are not met with in the best types ; they are but too obvious in the fairly pros- perous West-Eiid Jew,^ but not in the hard-working, genuine son of Abraham of the East End. Lastly, there is a characteristic, partly indigenous, no doubt, but also to a great extent acquired, which is best expressed by the word Exclusiveness. This received an immense imptilse (and stereotyped what had, no doubt, been prevalent long before) at the time of Ezra ; it was fostered, in the first place, by the national consciousness of two things : firstly, the conviction that, as a nation, they were the particular favourites of Heaven; and, secondly, because they possessed a code of morals which was, beyond all question, infinitely purer and more exalted than that of any other nation. It was but natural that this should engender a sense of superiority, and therefore of exclusiveness ; at the time of Ezra this mental attitude became enhanced by a fanatical and ever-increas- ing devotion to the Tor ah (Law), and long before the advent of Christ it had become crystallized into a settled national trait, which, later on, the antagonism between the Christian and the Jewish Church only served to emphasize. The subsequent history of the Jews shows how persecution still further increased their attachment to the Law, and hardened them in their feehngs towards all non-Jews. That this feeling of exclusiveness is by no means non-existent at the present day is obvious enough to anyone who comes much in contact with Jews ; at the same time, it will not be denied that, at any rate in England, the last decade or two has seen a great improve- ment in the general feeling of Jews towards Christians and Christianity. It remains, in conclusion, to emphasize another quality acquired by the Jewish race as a result of its dispersion and the vicissitudes thereon ensuing — its cosmopolitan character. 1 Corruptio optimi pessima ! COSMOPOLITANISM 25 While caUing no land his own (outside Palestine) the Jew is at home in all lands. Historically, this fact has been of great importance, inasmuch as to it is largely due the fact that avenues of intercourse and trade have been opened up, or enlarged, between different countries and regions of the world. The Jew in this capacity has also been not merely a purveyor of wares, but also of ideas, ^ and has thus served in a large measure to disseminate and to stimulate some of the most important results of culture and civilization (especially medicine). With its vast experience of the world, the Jewish race has never failed to produce men of great versatility and accomplishment, who have often attained distinguished positions in diplomacy and government, as weU as in art and science. The qualities which make for success in these departments of life — a certain flexibility and power of assimilating all that is best in an environment — are the natural acquirement of " the Wandering Jew." 1 Cf. Abrahams', op. cit., p. aii ff. CHAPTER III. The Sources of Judaism. I. The Torah and other Old Testament Books. The Torah (" Law ") ; the Prophets ; • the " Writings." — The Apocrypha : Historical and Pseudo-Historical Books ; Prophetic Apocrypha ; Didactic Apocrypha ; Apocal5?ptic Literature in the Apocrypha. — Pseudepigrapha : Pseudepigraphic Legends ; Pseude- pigraphic Poetry ; Didactic Pseudepigraph ; Pseudepigraphic Apocal3rpses. — Rejection of Pseudepigrapha by Pharisaic Judaism. [Literature : — Ryle The Canon of the Old Testament, especi- ally chaps, iv-viii (1892). J. Fiirst Der Kanon des A.T. nach den Ueberlieferungen im Talmud und Midrasch (1868). Marx (Dalman) Traditio Rabbinorum Veterrimv (r884). W. Robertson Smith The Old Testament in the Jewish Church, 'Lectures ii, iii, vi (1895). Schiirer The Jewish people in the time of Jesus Christ II, i, 25 (1893), and. the various articles which deal with the subject in Hamburger's RE. Cornill Introduction to the Canonical Books of the Old Testament (English Tirans. G. H. Box), pp. 463 ff. (1907).] The first source of the religion of the S5magogue is, of course, the Old Testament Scriptures.^ These the Hebrews (Jivided into three parts : (a) The " Law " or Torah, i.e., the five books of Moses. (&) The " Prophets " or Nebiim, comprising : The " Former Prophets " or Nebiim rishonim, i.e., the books of Joshua, Judges, i. 2. Samuel, i. 2. Kings ; The "Latter Prophets" or Nebiim acharonim, i.e., the books of Isaiah, Jeremiah, Ezekiel, and the twelve Minor Prophets, reckoned as one book. » Known also by the name of Tenach, i.e., TNK, an abbrevia- tion formed by the initial letters of the names of the three divi- sions into which the Jews divide the Bible, (Torah, iVebiim and iifethubim.) 26 IMPORTANCE OF THE " TORAH " 27 (c) The " Writings " or Kethubim, comprising : Psalms, Proverb9> Job; these form a separate group ; Song of Songs, Ruth, Lamentations, Ecclesiastes and Esther ; these form another group, and are technically known as the five " Scrolls " or Megilloth} Daniel, Ezra, Nehemiah, i. 2. Chronicles make up a third group in this division. It is the first of these three divisions, the Torah, which is the main source of the Jewish Religion, the other two occupying in reality quite a subordinate position ; in fact, the " Prophets " and the " Writings " are even caUed mere " Tradition " (Kabbalah), in contrast with the " Law." On the other hand, the term Torah is sometimes used in a wide sense to include the whole of the Old Testament, and even the whole body of religious truth and practice. In both cases the Jew conceives of the Torah as the dominating, the supreme factor. The Torah (i.e., the " Law " of God as contained in the Pentateuch ^) is, therefore, the real foundation of the Jewish ReHgion ; and, as. will be seen below, it provided the basis, in the form of text and commentary, of popular Jewish Homiletics^ (See further on the Torah, chap. vii.). II. Extra-Canonical Sacred Books. [Literature : — Schiirer Op. cit. II, iii ; the articles " Apocalyp- tic Literature," " Apocrypha " in the JE, EB and in Hamburger's RE ; for the voluminous literature on Ecclesiasticus, the Hebrew text, etc., see the art. "Sifach " in Hastings' DB ; the most recent commentary 1 The five Megilloth are especially important because they are assigned, for reading, to certain Feast Days (and one Fast Day), viz., Passover, Weeks, 9th of Ab, Tabernacles and Purim. 2 Popularly known as Chummesh, " Fifth " (in full, Chamish- shah Chummesh Torah, " the five-iifths of the law,"), in reference to the five Books of Moses. 3 See further below, under " Midrash," ch. iv, § ii. 28 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP on this book is that of Smend (2 vols.), 1906. The Speaker's Commentary on the Apocrypha (2 vols.), London, 1888.' Die Apokryphen tind Pseudepigraphen des A.T. (2 vols.), ed. Kautsch, 1900. The various editions of apocalsrptic books edited by Prof. Charles. A complete list and description of the literature is appearing in the various numbers of The International Journal of Apocrypha (with which is incorporated Deutero-Canonica), edited by H. Pentin. For fuller information on the separate books, see the arts, in the Dictionaries mentioned above, s.v. the names of the various books, e.g., Tobit, Baruch, etc.] A. APOCRYPHA. The idea of canonicity is expressed in Rabbinical language by the phrase " defile the hands." Books of canonical dignity are said to " defile the hands " (Heb. Metammeim 'eth ha-yadaim). Those which fall outside this category, of course, do not " defile the hands." This fexpression imphes that the holiness of the sacred object referred to produces by contact with it a state of levitical impurity. The expression " to hide " (Heb. ligndz) is also used with reference to certain books of the Bible, which, though canonical, were withdrawn, for various reasons, from public Uturgical use. The term Genizdh is appUed to a room in the sjmagogue set apart for storing disused manuscripts of the books of the Bible ^ which had been employed in public worship and which could not be destroyed.^ The questions raised in the Talmud as to the canonicity of certain books only concern those of the Old Testament which were ultimately admitted into the Canon. For example, in Shabbath 30'' we read of an attempt to condemn as heretical, i.e., " to hide " (ligndz), Ecclesiastes and Proverbs, and even 1 In the Genizah were also placed heretical Hebrew books, so that it served " the two-fold purpose of preserving good things from harm and bad things from harming." JE, v. 612. 2 They were sometimes buried with a Rabbi in his grave. THE ALEXANDRINE CANON 29 the book of Ezekiel has not always been above suspicion {Shabhath I3''.i) But the canon accepted in Alexandria included a number of other books which were rejected by the Palestinians, though some of these books had been originally written in Palestine ; these are the so-called Apocrypha^, which under this title is an integral part of the Enghsh Bible. Of these " apocryphal " books one is distinctively Alexandrine throughout, viz., the Book of Wisdom, a Greek composition ; of the rest, the most distinctively Palestinian in character are the first book of Maccabees and Ecclesiasticus {" The Wisdom of Jesus the son of Sirach "), both written in Hebrew originally. The Hebrew text of Ecclesiasticus, as is well known, has recently been almost entirely recovered and made the subject of an extensive hterature. With regard to the value of these books as " Sources " of Judaism, the last two mentioned are of special im- portance ; the first book of Maccabees has a certain authority in connection with the Feast of Dedication ' (Chanukkah), while Ecclesiasticus is also a document of high value for Palestinian Judaism ; it is referred to sometimes in the Talmud, and was apparently excluded from the canon only because it was known to be a recent work (comparatively speaking) by an author not long dead. The whole Apocryphal collection has a distinct illus- trative value for the study of Judaism, as weU as for 1 JE, V. 612. See further a most interesting discussion in H61scheriifawo«jscA undApokryph, Leipzig, 1905, noticed at lengtii in the Review of Theol. and Philosophy, Vol. II. pp. 549 S. March, 1907. ' The word is really a Greek equivalent of Genizah. ' It is also known as the " Feast of the Maccabees," having been instituted by Judas Maccabaeus and his brothers (see i Mace. 4, 36, S9)- Josephus speaks of it as the " Festival of Lights "(Antiq. XII, vii, 7), on account of the lighting of lamps wWch formed a prominent part of the ceremony (cf. the modern Chanukkah " lamp "). In the Talmud it is called the " Feast of Illumination." (See further ch. xix.) 30 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP, that of the New Testament. Such subjects, for example, as the Jewish doctrines of sin, works and free-will, and the future life, cannot be adequately studied without of reference to the Apocryphal books. Though no entirely satisfactory system of classification has yet been devised, the books forming the Apocrypha , otour Bibles may be classified as follows : — a. HISTORICAL AND PSEUDO-HISTORICAL BOOKS. (i) I Maccabees, containing, on the whole, a thoroughly trust- worthy history ; it was written originally in Hebrew, but is extant only in Greek, and in translations made from the Greek. It gives the stqry of the Maccabaean revolt down to the death of Simon, thus covering the period 175-135 B.C. (2) 2 Maccabees, A Greek work, ostensibly abridged from a larger work in five books by Jason of Cyrene. It partly •covers the same ground as i Maccabees, but is much inferior to this in historical value. (3) I Esdyas (in the Latin Bible 3 Esdras) ; this is really a part of the ancient GSreek version of Chronicles (in its complete form including Ezra and Nehemiah). It con- tains I Chron. 35 — Neh. 8", but in , a divergent order from that of the canonical book, and, in some respects, a more original order. The book contains some additions ; it is printed as an appendix; to the official Vulgate after the New Testament, but is not recognized by the Roman Church as canonical. (4) The Additions^ to Daniel; firstly, the "Story of Susannah," prefixed to the book of Daniel ; it is rfeaUy a Midrash based on the meaning of the name " Daniel " (= " God is my Judge "), and dfesigned to illustrate Daniel's judicial acumen. Secondly, the " Destruction of Bel and the Dragon," appended after chap, xii ; the motive of this writing was a polemical one against idolatry. And lastly, the " Song of the three holy children," inserted in Dan. iii, between verses 23 and 24 ; it is perhaps a Uturgi- cal piece. AH three additions are found in the Sepfuagini and in Theodotion's (Greek) version of Daniel. > It will be understood that all these additions form integral parts of Daniel in the Greek Bible, as well as in the Vulgate ; in the latter they stand in a different position, however, from that given to them in the Greek text. THE APOCRYPHA 31 (5) The Additions > to Esther (" The rest of Esther ") ; the prime object of these additions is to relieve the canonical book of Esther from its too pronouncedly secular tone. (6) The Prayer of Manasses ; this purports to be the actual prayer spoken of in 2 Chron. xxxiii i ff., and may origi- nally have been designed to stand in that context. In many MSS. of the Greek Bible, it occupies a place among the pieces appended to the Psalms. In the Vulgate it is printed at the end of the New Testament with 3, 4 Esdras and, like them, is not regarded as canonical. (7 ) Judith ; this was originally written in Hebrew, but is extant only, in its longer form, in Greek or in translations from the Greek. Two recensions of the story, a longer and a shorter, have come down to us ; the shorter recension exists only in Hebrew." The story in its shorter form may be historical. (8) Tobit. An edif3dng tale, with vivid pictures of Jewish piety and popular superstition. The scene is laid in the East, in Nineveh and Ecbatana. It is related to the wide-spread story of Achikar.' (9) In MSS. of the Septuagint the book 3 Maccabees is found ; it contains a history of the persecutions of the Egyptian Jews by Ptolemy Philopator, with an account of their steadfastness and of their wonderful deliverance by God. The book is not canonical in any part of the Christian Church. b. PROPHETIC APOCRYPHA. (i) Baruck (Five chapters) ; this book purports to have been written by Baruch, the son of Neraiah, a disciple of Jeremiah, after the deportation to Babylon. It is largely drawn {from the Canonical Jeremiah and Deutero-Isaiah ; the influence of the Wisdom literature is also apparent in chap. 3. (2) The Epistle of Jeremiah ; written to the Babylpnian exiles ; it is appended to Baruch, and is reckoned as the the sixth chapter of that book. It is a satirical piece directed against idolatry. c. DIDACTIC APOCRYPHA. (i) The Wisdom of Jesus, the son of Sirach. This work is '■ See note to Additions to Daniel. In the Vulgate the Esther additions have been separated from the body of the canonical Hebrew Esther and brought together in the form of an appendix, with a note to the effect that they are not found in the Hebrew. 2 See the text and translation published by Dr. Gaster in PSBA, 1894, pp. 156-163. ' See further The Story of Achikar, edited by F. C.'Conybeare, J. Rendel Harrison, and Agnes Smith- Lewis, London, 1898. 32 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP called Ecdesiasticus in the Latin Bible. It is modelled on the canonical book of Proverbs. The author, a native of Jerusalem, wrote in Hebrew ; this Hebrew text was translated by his grandson, in B.C. 132, into Greek. The S}Tiac version was also made from the Hebrew text. Recently large portions of the Hebrew original have been recovered. The book is of immense importance for the study of pre-Christian Judaism, and indeed for the study of biblical literature and religion generally. Though not canonical it is largely quoted in later Jewish literature.* (2) The Wisdom of Solomon ; written in Greek, probably an Alexandrine work, and one of the most remarkable pro- ducts of the " Wisdom " Literature. It shows marked traces of Greek philosophical influence, for example, it upholds the doctrine of tte immortality of the soul as distinct from the resurrection of the body. d. APOCALYPTIC LITERA TURE IN THE APOCRYPHA . Only one representative of the voluminous apocal5rptic literature is included in the of&cial Apocr5rpha of the Old '■ Testament, viz., 2 (4) Esdras. It was originally written in Hebrew or Aramaic about 90 a.d. ; it is strongly influ- enced by the book of Daniel ; in character it is Palestinian. The figure of the Messiah, boii the earthly and the heavenly, appears in reaUy definite form in this book alone among those of the official Apocrypha. It is one of the finest of the Apocalj^ses. It must not be forgotten that the books of out Apocrypha are not accepted by the official Judaism of the Talmud, but some of the books have always been recognized as more or less orthodox even from the strict Jewish stand- point, namely, Ecdesiasticus, Tobit, Judith and Maccabees. Though uncanonical, they were " allowed," and were not included among the " external books " (i.e., books of a heretical character which are uncanonical), the reading of which is so strictly forbidden by Rabbi Akiba {Sanhedrin x, i). It is a mistake to suppose that by the " external 1 Numerous points of contact between the books of Ecdesias- ticus and Wisdom and the New Testament have been pointed out in the Ep. of S. James ; see R. J. Knowling's Commentary on this epistle, especially the notes on pp. xv, xvi, and compare Eder- sheim in the " Speaker's Commentary " on the Apocrypha, Vol. II, p. 22, also Farrar in the same work. Vol. I, p. 408. PSEUDEPIGRAPHA 33 books " mentioned in early Rabbinical literature were understood all apocryphal books indiscriminately ; the term only included heretical apocryphal books. Un- canonical books like the four just mentioned were, and were regarded as, good orthodox Jewish literature. B. PSEUDEPIGRAPHA. Under this title are included writings with false ascrip- tions of authorship. The Pseudepigrapha of the Old Testament embrace a series of writings considerably more extensive than the books of the Apocrypha proper. Indeed, the distinction between the two classes of litera- ture imphed by the common use of the term " Apocrypha" to denote a specified number of deuterocanonical books is an arbitrary and artificial one. It is due to S. Jerome. OriginaUy the term " Apocrypha " ( = " hidden, " " secret ") denoted the secret books or teaching current among certain rehgious or philosophic sects. The term is neither specifically Jewish nor Christian to start with ; in the first instance it was used by the writers of the books themselves, not as a term of reproach, but of distinction. In this wider sense it naturally included the books now described as Pseudepigraphic. In the early centuries of Christianity, down to about 200 a.d., many of the apocalyptic books which were described under the general term " Apocrypha " (e.g., the book of Enoch) were highly regarded in Christian circles ; later, in the third century, a change took place, when, under the influence of the Greek Church, the oriental element in ancient Christianity was, by gradual steps, largely eliminated ^ ; imder this influence much of the apocryphal (apocalyptic) literature disappeared from general orthodox use. The works described by the general term " Pseudepi- grapha " are mainly apocalyptic in character. The 1 Cf. Prof. Burkitt's very instructive book Early Eastern Christianity, London, 1904. 4— (2417) 34 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP apocal5^tic literature ;s distinguished broadly by some common, general characteristics. It is, first of all, a popular literature ; that is to say, it reflects (in literary form more or less elaborated) the thoughts of religious circles which were outside the recognized Rabbinical schools ; and it embodies rehgious ideas which in many points conflicted sharply with the strict scholastic orthodoxy of the Pharisees. Next, it emphasized the individual side of reUgion equally with that of the righteous community ; not the nation as such, but the community of the righteous in it — the " plant of righteousness," as the book of Enoch terms it — will inherit the divine reward. The exalted religious scheme which dominates these books tended to overcome national and particularistic limitations. It is, however, on the side of the Messianic hope that this literature is most significant ; and here the points of contact with the New Testament are most striking and important.! Another noteworthy characteristic is its supernatural coloijring ; in place of the old antithesis, present and future, it substitutes that of above and helow. It thus acquires an " other-worldliness " which was in marked contrast to the strictly practical and narrow purview of scholastic Pharisaism, and formed a distinct advance towards the lofty spirituality of the New Testament. From what has been said it is clear that the apocalyptic literature is by no means destitute of real religious value. How is this fact to be reconciled with its pseudepi- graphic character ? How is the fact to be explained that the writers of these books who are obviously earnest and high-minded religious men should have consistently put forth their writings under false names — e.g., the book of Enoch, the testaments of the Twelve Patriarchs, etc ? This, to us, strange procedure may largely be explained 1 See further chap, xi on Eschatology. AUTHORSHIP OF PSEUDEPIGRAPHA 35 if we remember that the apocalyptic writers almost certainly drew their material from popular tradition. Many of the ideas which receive various embodiment in this Hterature, were derived, doubtless, from the common stock of the popular consciousness ; their ascription to or association with the great heroic figures of antiquity, like Enoch, Abraham, Isaiah, Elijah, or the twelve patriarchs, may also be a feature derived from the popular consciousness. The men who reduced the Various elements to writing, or utilized them for enforcing particular religious views or lessons, may, on this view, be acquitted of any charge of fraud or dishonesty; they implicitly trusted the popular tradition so far as to believe that the ideas to which they were giving expression really did go back to the heroic figures of old. Their estimate, moreover, of the function and importance of authorship probably differed fundamentally from that of the modems ; it was far less self-conscious, and was the natural outcome of a literary modesty which was naive. To come now to details, it will only be possible here to enumerate the more important examples of pseud- epigraphic literature. Though mainly apocalyptic in character, the pseudepigraphic hterature also embraces other varieties of composition, which it will be convenient to classify in the following enumeration. The classifi- cation adopted is that followed in Kautsch's edition. a. PSEUDEPIGRAPHIC LEGENDS. (i) The so-called "Letter of AyisUas " ; this contains a legendary account, in Greek, of the circumstances under which the Septuagint translation of the Torah was com- posed. It purports to have been written by a heathen named Aristeas to a brother, Philocrates, in the reign of Ptolemy Philadelphus. This pseudepigraph exercised a profound influence on the popular mind regarding the place, position and importance of the Septuagint transla- tion. The name of this translation which has become current, namely "Septuagint" (LXX), owes its origin to this letter, according to which seventy-two (i.e. roughly 36 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP seventy) translators performed the work, six from each of the twelve tribes. Some of the details contained in the document may have a basis in fact. (2) The Book of Jubilees, or " Little Genesis " (called in Syncellus the "Apocalypse of Moses"). It purports to have been given through angels to Moses on Mount Sinai. It is, however, dominated by the spirit of Pharisaic, or- thodoxy, and is strongly legalistic in character, magnifjdng as it does the Sabbath, Circumcision, the dietary laws, the laws of purification, etc. ; moreover, it is marked by the spirit of exclusiveness, and it is essentially antagonistic to Messianic-apocalyptic views. The patriarchs are re- presented as rabbinical examples of piety ; the figure, of the Messiah almost totally disappears, and the Messianic Kingdom is conceived of as the outcome of a gradual process which is bound up with a study of the Law. In form it is narrative, following the history given in Genesis, but divided into fixed periods of time or " Jubilees," hence its name.i It was originally written, probably, in Hebrew ', by a Pharisee some time between 135-105 b.c. It has survived in an Aethiopic version which was translated from a Greek version of the original Hebrew text' There is also a Latin translation of the Greek. It is very far from being apocalyptic in character in the genuine sense of the term ; its main object was to defend legalistic Judaism against the encroachments of the Hellenistic spirit. (3) The Martyrdom of Isaiah (in five chapters), with which has been combined the Ascension of Isaiah (chaps, vi-xi).' The " Mart5rrdom " is a Jewish work, the " Ascension " a Christian. The " Martyrdom " is especially important for the Anti-Christ saga. It belongs, probably, to the first century a.d. b. PSEUDEPIGRAPHIC POETRY. The Psalms of Solomon. This is a collection of eighteen psalms, commonly called the Psalms of Solomon. They are marked by a strongly Pharisaic spirit, to some extent »'The word " Jubilee " is directly derived from the Hebrew term- /o6fi/ which, modem scholars are agreed, has the meaning '-' ram " or " ram's horn." The year of Jubilee thus means literally " The year of the ram's horn " ; the fiftieth year was so called because it was proclaimed by the blowing of rams' horns, see Lev. 25. ' Edited in an English translation with Introduction, etc., by R. H. Charles, London, 1902. ' The complete work has been edited in English with notes, etc., by R. H. Charles, under the title The Ascension of Isaiah, London, 1900, PSpUDEPIGRAPHA 37 polemical in character ; they are, however, simple and straightforward compositions, and reflect a type of Pharisaic piety of a more spiritual character than in any other part of orthodox Jewish Uterature. The picture of the Messiah in the 17th and i8th psalms is a very fine one. These psalms exist in a Greek text which is probably the trans- lation of a Hebrew original. They are modelled upon the psalm-poetry of the Old Testament, and may have been designed for liturgical use ; they have marked affinities with the hymns in the first two chapters of S. Luke's Gospel {" BenedictuSi" "Nunc Dimittis," and "Magnificat"). The date of their composition is probably about 63 B.C., if, indeed, they were all composed at one time. The collection forms a highly important document for the study of pre-Christian Judaism. It is by no means certain, however, that these psalms deserve to be classified with the pseudepigraphical litera- ture ; their claim to be the composition of King Solomon is embodied in the title only, " they contain no other certain allusion to their reputed author ... it appears most probable that copyists or translators are responsible for having ascribed the work to Solomonic authorship." ' The selection of Solomon's name may have been suggested by the analogous case of the canonical Psalter ; just as the latter had come as a whole to be called the Psalms of David, so it seems not improbable that this secondary collection, modelled on the Hebrew Psalms, should have appropriated to itself the name of David's son, Solomon. c. DIDACTIC PSEUDEPIGRAPH. 4 Maccabees ; this work has been handed down in Gfeek, Latin and Sjrriac ; it was originally composed, doubtless, in Greek.' It is found in the great biblical codices, the Sinaitic and the Alexandrine, as well as in several minor Greek manuscripts. It was sometimes attributed to Josephus, and is to be found in editions of his works, as well as in editions of the Septuagint. The contents may be thus described : " The author teUs, in an expanded form with some small variations the story told in 2 Maccabees of the mart37rdom of Eleazar, the aged scribe, and of the mother and her seven sons under Antio- chus Epiphanes, circa i6g b.c. In 4 Maccabees, however, the story is told not for itself but as the text of a sermon. " The author lays down the thesis that the reasoning part of man's nature has supremacy over its feeling and » Ryle and James in their edition (Introduction, Text and English translation) of The Psalms of the Pharisees, p. Ixi, 38 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP suffering part, and proves his point inductively by instances drawn from the history of the Maccabaean Martyrs." ^ There is a close literary af&nity between 4 Maccabees and 2 Maccabees, but both may be dependent upon the work of Jason of C3n:ene as a common source. d. PSEUDEPIGRAPHIC APOCALYPSES. (i) The Book of Enoch. This is a composite work made up of elements of different dates which are themselves frag- ments of a much larger Enochic literature. The oldest part of the book (chaps, i-kxxvi) may have been written about the time of, or shortly after, the composition of the Book of Daniel. The most striking section, and most impor- tant because of its picture of the transcendental Messiah who is called " the Son of Man," is that known as the " SimiUtudes " (chaps, xxxvii-lxxi). Fragments of a Noachic cycle are also included in the present Book of Enoch. The entire work has for its characteristic features a strongly developed Angelology and Demonology, the doctrine and the description of me Messiah and the Messi- anic Age, an exposition of the secrets of the unseen world, and of celestial physics. The book was originally written in Hebrew or Aramaic, probably.' On the whole, the Book of Enoch is the most important representative of the apocalyptic literature that has survived. (2) The Slavonic Enoch, or The Book of the Secrets of Enoch. This was written probably in the first century a.d., origin- ally in Greek. In general character it resembles the older Book of Enoch, but has been influenced to a larger extent by Greek thought. It belongs to Jewish, rather than to Christian Uterature, and is notable for its account of the seven heavens, the Millennium, and the condition of souls after death. (3) The Assumption of Moses. The original language of this work was most Ukely Hebrew, and the book was written, it is supposed, about the beginning of the Christian Era. In its present form the work is really composite, being made up of two originally distinct books, the Testament of 1 The Fourth Booh of Maccabees in Syriac, p. xi ; edited by the late Prof. R. L. Bensly, with an Introduction by Prof. W. E. Barnes, D.D., Cambridge, 1896. ' A translation from the Aethiopic text into English with Introduction and Notes has been published by R. H. Charles (Oxford, 1890) ; recently the same scholar has published also an edition of the Aethiopic text (Oxford, 1906). PSEUDEPIGRAPHA 39 Moses and the Assumption of Moses.^ It is possible that some phrases and sentences of a Greek version of this work are to be detected in Matt. 2429, Acts 736, Jude vers. 9, 16, 18. a In form the book assumes the character of a prediction regarding the future history of Israel, delivered by Moses to Joshua. It is the work of a Pharisaic Quietist, according to Charles, " and forms a noble but ineffectual protest against the growing Zealotic spirit of the party. Its author was a learned Jew well versed in the Scrip- tures, and intimately acquainted with the history of his nation subsequent to the close of the Canon . . . though a patriot, he is not a Zealot ; the duty of the faithful, he says, is not to resort to arms, but simply to keep the Law and prepare through repentance for the personal intervention of God in their behalf." (4) 2 (4) Esdras. See under APOCRYPHA, d. (5) The Apocalypses of Baruch. i. The Syriac Apocalypse of Baruch ;' originally written in Hebrew or Aramaic, perhaps in the latter part of the first century a.d. It is an excellent example of orthodox Jewish thought and religious feeling as it existed at the time of the beginnings of Christianity, before the period of Talmudic Judaism had set in. In form it assumes the character of a series of visions connected by narrative. The work as it is now extant, in Syriac, is of composite authorship.* It is a book of the highest importance for the study of Judaism at the time of Christ and of the Apostles. It may, perhaps, be justly described as an apology for orthodox Pharisaic Judaism of the first cen- tury A.D., with an impUcit polemic against Christianity. It throws a valuable light on such parts of Jewish theology as are concerned with the doctrines of the Resurrection, Original Sin and Free Will, Works and Justification, and Forgiveness. ii. The Greek Apocalypse of Baruch. This is quite a distinct work from the former, and is of later origin (the latter part of the second century a.d. ?).» It is similar * An English translation of the whole has been published by R. H. Charles (London, 1897). s See Charles op. cit. p. xiii. » The Ssrriac text was first published by Ceriani (Milan, 1876- 1883), who issued a photo-Uthographic facsimile of the original sixth century MS., belonging to the Ambrosian Library in MUan. * It has been edited in an EngUsh translation by R. H. Charles (London, 1896). * The Greek text was first pubhshed in 1897 by M. R. James in " Texts and Studies," vol. v. No. i, pp. 84-94 (Cambridge). 40 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP in character to the Enochic Apocalypse. Baruch is con- ducted through the heavens, and gives an account of thfr ^trange and wonderful sights there seen. The reUgious element is not prominent in the book ; it shows signs of dependence upon the Slavonic Enoch and on the earUer Baruch Uterature. (6) The Testaments of the Twelve Patriarchs. A work of the first century A.D., or possibly earlier ; written originally in Hebrew. In its present form it has been edited by Christian hands. It is a mixture of Midrash and predictive prophecy. In two of the Testaments, namely those of Levi and Naphthali, there are apocalyptic elements. (7) The Life of Adam and Eve (31 chaps.) ; The Apocalypse of Moses (43 chaps.).' Legends regarding Adam and Eve seem to have been current in written form at an early date, possibly before a.d. 70. The two works here mentioned are survivals of this literature. The original language of them was probably Hebrew. Such themes as Adam in the Garden of Eden, his exile from Eden, his repentance, his iUness, death, and funeral are dealt with. The Rabbinical literature often refers to legends connected with Adam ; probably all these references go back to an original popular legend. Apocalyptic elements in the strict sense of the term are not prominent ; resurrection, paradise and future bUss are, however, referred to. The books have a certain value in illustrating the Jewish doctrine of Sin. It is interesting to recall here the fact that Golgotha, the "place of a skull" (Matt. 27", Mark 152", John 19"), was so called, according to a tradition mentioned by S. Jerome and S. Basil, because the skull of Adam was preserved in this place. The legend may have been suggested by the conformation of the knoll. According to S. Epiphanius and S. Ambrose, Adam was buried at Golgotha. (8) The Syhilline Oracles, especially books iii-v. A collec- tion of material partly adapted and derived from similar heathen " Oracles," and in poetical form. This mode was adopted for the purposes of the Jewish propaganda of the Dispersion, with the object of commending the truths of the Jewish religion to pagan circles. The more strikingly Jewish portions of this collection date probably from about 140 B.C.-80 a.d. (?). Apocaljrptic elements 1 The Life of Adam and Eve exists now only in a Latin form ; The Apocalypse of Moses is extant in Greek and Armenian ; a translation of the latter into English has been published by F. C. Conybeare in JQR vii, pp. 216 ff. (1895). PHARISAIC OPPOSITION TO PSEUDEPIGRAPHA 41 are pronounced in book iii — they deal with such subjects as the fate of the successive kingdoms which are to bear rule over the Jews, signs of the end of the world, the day of Judgment, the blessed age to come. They display an amount of interest in the conversion of non-Jews to the Jewish religion that is unusual in strictly Jewish writers. The language of these Oracles is, of course, Greek.» It is remarkable that the whole of this literature was rejected by Pharisaic Judaism. Among the teachers of the L(iw there existed a decidedly anti-apocalyptic bias ; the Canon by which the line of demarcation was strictly drawn between Holy Scripture and other religious books was the invention of the Pharisees. As has al- ready been pointed out, the apocalyptic literature was essentially of a non-scholastic character ; it is, there- fore, not difficult to see that the antagonism between this hterature and the ideas of the teachers of the Law would inevitably widen as time went on. It became necessary to safeguard the position of the Torah by some decisive means, otherwise there was a danger that the growing popularity of the apocal5iptic books might threaten to relegate the older rehgious hterature to the background. " What availed the age of the Torah, which Moses had received, in face of the revelation which in the primeval period had been vouchsafed to the Patriarchs, to Noah, Enoch, and even Adam ? " ". The apocalyptic hterature itself shows traces of a certain feeling of superiority (cf. Enoch civ, 11-13 and especially 2 (4) Esdras 14^**'). The means adopted by the Pharisees to ward off this danger was found in the theory of the prophetic period from Moses to Ezra, during 1 No English translation of the Sybilline Oracles appears to exist ; for further details concerning them EngUsh readers may be referred to an article in the Edinburgh Review, July, 1 877, pp. 31-67; Drummond, The Jewish Messiah, pp. 10-17 {1897), Deane's Pseudepigrafha, pp. 276-344 (1891), and Schiirer, op. cit. II, iii, pp. 271-292. ' Holscher Kanonisch und Apokryph, § v. 42 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP which alone inspiration operated ^ ; all literature falling outside these limits was necessarily excluded from the Canon by this theory as uninspired, and so the books of Enoch and Ecclesiasticus (Ben Sira or Sirach) share a similar fate. The Pharisaic view was not at first so pro- nounced and so intense as it afterwards became ; official Judaism was at first not unfriendly, and admitted the book of Daniel, which of course was an apocalyptic book, into the Canon. Later apocalyptic writings seem to have come altogether under the Rabbinical ban ; even such, on the whole, highly orthodox and Pharisaic works as the book of Jubilees and the Psalms of Solomon seem to have incurred suspicion ; the, former, probably, from the tinge of apocalyptic ideas which distinguishes it, the latter perhaps because of its definite Messianic doctrine. At any rate, Pharisaic hostility or indifference can alone explain the almost total disappearance of the Hebrew (or Aramaic) originals of this extensive branch of Jewish literature. Doubtless the anti-apocalyptic tendency was later sharply increased by the growing rift between the Synagogue and the early Christian Church. The vogue of the apocalyptic literature among the early Christians has already been referred to. A possible evidence of the Rabbinical hostility is to be found in an early passage (Tos. Shabbath xiii (or xiv) 5), which denounces the reading of " Gilyonim and the books of the heretics " ; it is quite possible that the word " Gilyonim " here means " Apocals^ses." » Though it will thus be seen that the pseudepigraphic Jewish (apocalyptic) literature has been deliberately excluded from official recognition and authority by the Rabbis, it is none the less important for the study and elucidation of Judaism. Many of the eschatological ' Cf. the chapter on " Intermediate Agencies between God and Man," iii. b. ' Cf. in Syriac Gelyuna de Juchanan " Apocaljrpse of John." IMPORTANCE OF PSEUDEPIGRAPHA 43 references in the Talmud, many popular Jewish beliefs and superstitions, can only be adequately explained from the apocalyptic literature ; it is also impossible to form a just estimate of the historical position and develop- ment of Rabbinical Judaism, as well as the relations of Christianity to the latter, without taking into consideration the whole of this literature. CHAPTER IV. The Sources of Judaism (Continued). I. The Targums. The Targums — The Oral Tradition (the TaJmudical Literature)— The Oral Law Generally — The Mishnah — Tosephta — Baraithas — The Talmuds— Apocryphal Appendices — Commentaries on the Talmud — Compendiums of the Talmud. [Literature : — Schiirer, op. cit. I, i, pp. 154-163 ; Buhl, Canon and Text of the Old Testament (English Translation, Edinburgh, 1892), pp. 167-182 ; F. Weber, op cit. pp. xvi-xxiv ; JE, XIL pp. S7-63 (where see the litera- ture cited at the end of the article, including the editions of the original Targum texts). Translations into English — the three Targumim to the Penta- teuch were translated into English by Etheridge, under the title The Targums on the Pentateuch (2 vols., London, 1 862-1 865) ; a translation of the Targum of Jonathan on Isaiah has been published by the " London Society for promoting Christianity among the Jews," The Chaldee Paraphrase on the prophet Isaiah, translated by the Rev. C. W. H. Pauli (1871) ; a translation of the second Tar- gum to Esther is included in Dr. P. Cassel's Commentary on psther, published by T. and T. Clark.] The Targums, or Aramaic translations of the Old Testa- ment, occupy a special place in the post-biblical religious literature of the Jews, because they embody the traditional exegesis of the Scriptures. The word Targum means " Translation." * Originally the word was used to signify a translation of any sort ; for example, in the Mishnah the verb is used of translating into Greek ; but the name Targum itself acquired the restricted meaning > The o£&cial translator of the Bible text who declaimed the translation orally during the Synagogue Service was called Methurgeman or, more briefly, Targoman ( = the modern " Drago- man "). 44 ORIGIN OF THE TARGUMS 45 of a translation into Aramaic.^ The most important role assigned to the Targum was its use in the public services of the Sjmagogue. When Hebrew ceased to be the common spoken language of the people and was displaced by Aramaic* there soon naturally arose the necessity of making the Hebrew Scriptures, which were read in their original language in S3niagogue service, more intelligible to the congregation ; hence was developed the institution of the Targoman or Methurgeman, who was usually an ofiftcial of the S3magogue. In the case of the lesson from the Law (the Pentateuch) the Targum was to be read after every verse ; in the case of the lesson from the Prophets {Haphtarah) after every third verse, three verses at a time ; one person only might be employed for each. A minor might perform this duty. Usually the teacher employed by the Synagogue for giving biblical instruction (the Sopher) acted as Methurgeman. For a long time the Targum was purely oral, but even so it gradually assumed a stereotyped character. The written Targums, though quite late as literary products, largely embody this earlier traditional material. Ulti- mately, from the ninth century onwards, the Targums fell into (isuse, the reading of them in the S3magogue service almost entirely ceased. At the present time the custom survives only in southern Arabia. In Bokhara the Persian Jews read the Targum (with the Persian paraphrase of it) to the prophetic lesson for the last day of Passover, viz. Is. io«-i2. The only books of the Bible which have no Targum are those of Daniel, Ezra and Nehemiah, which are themselves largely written in Aramaic. The Targums differ considerably in character and value ; that of Onkelos to the Pentateuch is, on the » In Ezra 4', the verb occurs for the first time in reference to a document written in Aramaic, but here it was felt necessary to add the explicit statement, " in Aramaic." 46 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP whole, fairly literal, and may be regarded as a true translation ; but the others are for the most part paraphrastic. Targums to the Pentateuch. (i) Targum Onkelos or the "Babylonian Targum." In the Baby- loniain Talmud it is said that " the Targum to the Penta- teuch was composed by the proselyte Onkelos at the dictation of Rabbi Eliezer and Rabbi Joshua " (Megillah 3°). This Onkelos is elsewhere > described as the pupil of Rabbi Gamaliel the elder who died shortly before the destruction of the Temple (70 a.d.), and must therefore have been alive at the time of Christ. The statement regarding the proselyte Onkelos seems to be due to an erroneous appUcation of the tradition current in Palestine regarding Aquila's Greek Version of the Old Testament. Reference is made in the Jerusalem Talmud (Megillah 71°) to the proselyte Aquila having translated the Pentateuch ; the translation here referred to is, of course, the Greek one of Aquila ; but in Babylonia it was misinterpreted to refer to the Aramaic translation of the Pentateuch, Aquila and Onkelos being a confusion of one and the same person.!! A more correct title of this Taygum would be the " Babylonian Targum " {Targum Babli) ; and Baby- lonian influence is noticeable in its language. The most probable view, perhaps, is that it is a Palestinian production, which has been re-edited in Babylon. The Targum Onkelos is distinguished among the Targums by its Uteralness ; the fanciful Haggadic element, which is so marked a feature in the others, appears here only in a few passages, and these mainly poetic ; e.g., Gen. 49, Num. 24, Deut. 32-33. Like the Targums generally, that of Onkelos shows a marked tendency to avoid anthropomorphisms and expressions that might appear derogatory to the dignity of God, e.g., for " the Lord came down " (Gen. ii^^) the Targum has, "The Lord revealed Himself " ; the transcendence of God is emphasized by the employment of intermediate agencies Uke the Memra or " Word " of God, Shekhina,&tc.* The following extracts will illustrate the character of this Targum : — Gen. 3 » f- : " And they heard the voice of the word {Memra) of the Lord God walking in the garden in the evening of the day ; and Adam and his wife hid themselves from before the Lord God among the trees of the garden. And the Lord God called 1 Tosefta Shabbath, c. 8. » This view is, however, disputed by some scholars. • See further chap. vii. THE TARGUMS 47 to Adam and said, Where art Thou ? And he said, the voice of Thy Word I heard in the garden, and I was afraid, because I was naked, and I would hide." Again, Gen. 491'^-, appears as follows in this Targum : "And Jacob called his sons and said. Gather together, and I will show you what will befall you in the end of the days ; assemble and hearken, oh sons of Jacob, and receive instruction from Israel, your father. Reuben, thou art my first-born, my strength and the beginning of my power. Thine it should have been to take the three portions — the birth- right, the priesthood and the kingdom ; but because thou hast proceeded perversely, behold, as water outpoured thou shalt not prosper, neither shalt thou receive the excellent portion." (ii) The Palestinian Targum (" Targum Jerushalmi "). This Targum exists in two forms, one complete and the other fragmentary. The former of these is sometimes (errone- ously) called the " Targum of Jonathan ben Uzziel on the Pentateuch," ^ more correctly the " Targum of pseudo- Jonathan." But besides this complete form various fragments have been handed down, many only recently recovered ; the earUer fragments are usually termed the " Targum Jerusalem." * This is rather a collection of heterogeneous material than an ordered work, e.g., there are sometimes different renderings of the same verse or verses. In its present form it is not earlier than the seventh century a.d. (thus, it mentions the wives and daughters of Mohammed as " daughters of Ishmael "), but it contains old traditional material, and is important for the critical study of the Targum of pseudo- Jonathan. The Palestinian Targum is distinguished from that of Onkelos by its markedly free and paraphrastic character ; this will appear from the following extract, viz. Gen. 18^"- ; in the pseudo- Jonathan Targum the passage runs thus : " And the glory of the Lord was revealed to him in the valley of Mamre ; and he, being ill from the pain of circumcision, sat at the door of the tent in the heat of the day. And he lifted up his eyes and looked, and behold, three angels in the resemblance of men were » The error arose in the following manner ; the Targum was often indicated briefly as " Targum / " ; the J was mistaken for Jonathan, and it was supposed that the Jonathan ben Uzziel, to whom the Targum on the Prophets is ascribed, was also responsible for this Targum on the Pentateuch. ' The whole has been collected and published by Ginsburger under the title " Fragment Targum " (Das Fragmententargum, Berlin, 1899). 48 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP standing before him ; angels who had been sent from the necessity of three things — because it is not possible for a ministering angel to be sent for more than one purpose at a time — one, then, had to come to make known to him that Sarah should bear a man-child ; one had come to deliver Lot ; and one to overthrow Sodom and Gomorrah. And when he saw them he ran to meet them from the door of the tent, and bowed himself to the earth." In the Jerusalem Targum, which contains the earlier fragments spoken of above, this passage is thus rendered : " Three angels were sent to our fatiier Abraham ; and the three were sent for three things, because it is not possible that one of the high angels should be sent for more things than one. The first angel was sent to announce to our father Abraham, that, behold, Sarah would bear Isaac ; the second angel was sent to deliver Lot from the midst of the overthrow ; the third angel was sent to overthrow Sodom and Gomorrah, Admah and Zeboim. Therefore was there a word of prophecy from before the Lord unto Abraham the Just, and tiie word of the Lord was revealed to him in the valley of vision ; and he sat at the door of the tent, comforting himself from his circumcision in the heat of the day." Probably aU these Targums, including that of Onkelos, represent different phases of the exegesis of the Scriptures current in Palestine. The form of Onkelos is much earlier in date than that of the other Palestinian Targums. The Targum to the Prophets. Like the Targum of Onkelos the Targum to the prophetical books gained general recognition in Babylonia in the third century a.d. It is, however, origin^y a Palestinian production which has been revised and adapted to the Aramaic dialect of Babylon, resembUng in this respect also the Targum of Onkelos. Like the latter, it owes its existence to the needs of the weekly Sabbath Synagogue Service. The prophetic lesson, which was read in Hebrew, had to be interpreted by a Methurgeman, three verses at a time, into Aramaic. This Targum owes its name to a tradition which asserts that it was composed by Jonathan ben Uzziel " from the mouths of Haggai, Zechariah and Malachi" (Megillah 3'). This last statement probably means that the Targum embodies the ancient traditional interpretation of the Synagogue. Jonathan ben Uzziel was a famous pupil of Hillel, and not improbably was responsible for an edition of the Targum which formed the basis for the present Targum on the Prophets. It forms a coherent and ordered work, and THE TARGUMS 49 thus presupposes a single redaction ; it is more paraphras- tic in character than the Targum of Onkelos. We append a brief extract to illustrate the character of this Targum : Is. S2" f- is thus rendered : (13) " Behold, my servant the Messiah shall prosper, he shall be exalted and extolled, and he shall be very strong. (14) As the house of Israel anxiously hoped for him many days, [the house of Israel] which was poor among the nations, their appearance and their brightness being worse than that of the sons of men ; (15) thus shaU he scatter many nations ; before him kings shall keep silence ; they shall put their hands upon their mouths, for that which had not been told them shall they see, and that which they had not heard they shall consider." * It should be added that there are traces of a Jerusalem Targum to the Prophets (of a late date) ; it is preserved to some extent in the form of variants to the Targum of Jonathan, and also in citations, especially in Rashi and David Kimchi. The Targum to the Hagiographa. There is no officially recognized Targum to the Hagiographa as there was in the case of the Pentateuch and the Prophets ; but, nevertheless, Targums to the various books of the Hagiographa are extant. The Targums to the Psalms and Job apparently belong together, and form a separate group, distinguished by Haggadic features and by the use of the Greek word dyytXos for " angel." Rome and Con- stantinople are mentioned in them as the two capitals of the Roman Empire, thus presupposing a date before the fall of Rome in 476. Both these Targums also show a considerable amount of independence of the Massoretic text of the Hebrew Bible. The Targum to Proverbs shows remarkable resemblances and agreements with the Peshitta (Synax.) Version. The Targums to the five Megilloth, " Scrolls " (i.e. Canticles, Ruth, Lamentations, Ecclesiastes, Esther) display a marked Haggadic character, which may be due to their popular use in regard to the Festivals." Canticles was interpreted aUegorically of the relations between God and Israel. The popularity of the book of Esther is eloquently indicated by the fact that it has no less than three Targums. The Targum to Chronicles 1 It is curious to notice that here, and all through the following (fifty-third) chapter, the passages which refer to the humiliation of the Servant are interpreted of the people of Israel, while those which speak of the glory of the Servant are referred to the Messiah. » See ch. xix. 5— (^417) 50 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP resembles the Jerusalem Taxgums both ia its language and in its paraphrastic character. The Targums are important not only for the light they throw on Jewish theology, but also, especially, as a Thesaurus of ancient Jewish exegesis ; in this way they frequently offer matter of interest in relation to the Old and New Testament writings; in . particular it can be shown that the New Testament often agrees with the ancient Ssmagogue in interpreting certain passages messianically which later were expounded differently in orthodox- Jewish circles. II. The Oral Tradition. (The Talmudical Literature.) [Literature : " The Talmud," an article published in the Quarterly Review, October, 1867, by E. Deutsch, and reprinted in his Literary Remains, London, 1874 ; the articles " Talmud " in JE XII, pp. 1-27 (by Bacher) and in the extra volume of Hastings DB, pp. S7-66 (by Schechter), also, in the E. Brit, (by Schiller- Szinessy). Useful compendiums of information on the subject are Mielziner's Introduction to the Talmud (Cincinatti and Chicago, 1894), and Strack's Einleitung in den Thalmud (2nd ed., Leipzig, 1894). Selections from the Talmud in English : Hershon's Talmudic Miscellany (1880) ; his Treasures of the Talmud (1882), and his Genesis with a Talmudic Commentary (1883). H. Polano, The Talmud (selections, in the Chandos Classics). Montague, Tales from the Talmud (London, 1906). Cf., also Schiirer HJP I, i, pp. 117 fi. ; and I. Abrahams, Short Hist, of Jew. Lit., chaps, i, and iii, (London, 1906). Other Uterature is referred to below under the separate sections.] A well-marked distinction is drawn in Jewish tradition between the Oral Law, " the Torah by mouth," which for centuries was handed down by oral tradition, and the Written Law or " Torah in writing " which was embodied in the canonical Five Books of Moses.^ 1 In Hebrew the former is styled "B SraB* mW, the latter ORIGIN OF THE ORAL TRADITION 51 The origin of the Oral Tradition, like most origins, is wrapped in obscurity. By the later Rabbis it was regarded as going back to Moses himself, as coeval with the written Law. Thus a saying attributed to R. Simeon b. Lakish runs : " What is that which is written : ' I will give thee tables of stone, and the Law, and the com- mandment which I have written, to teach them' (Ex. 241a) ? ' Tables,' these are the ten words ^ ; ' law,' this is the Scripture ; ' and the commandment," that is the Mishnah ; ' which I have written,' these are the Prophets and writings (Hagiographa) ; " to teach them,' that is the Gemara ; thus instructing us that all of these were given to Moses from Sinai." * The real period of the beginnings of the traditional oral Law is no doubt to be traced from the time when the written Law, as canonical Scripture, was studied and expounded in the Synagogue. This oral tradition was in a constant state of development, being adapted, modified, and expanded from time to time to meet the varying practical needs of successive ages, and itself passing from the oral to the written. After centuries of discussion it first assumed a written form in the Mishnah. The earliest text -book of the oral law (compiled in its present official form about 200 a.d.). The text of the Mishnah in turn became the subject of interpretation and commentary in the later Rabbinical schools in Palestine and Babylonia (third to the sixth century a.d.), the results of which are crystaUized in the two Talmuds. And, again, the text of the completed Talmuds has been made the subject of innumerable commentaries and discussions since. The whole vast development of tradition was believed to be a genuine and legitimate organic evolution of the original deposit. What was originally implicit simply became exphcit in the continuous process. " The 1 i.e. the Ten Commandments. » Ber. 5*. 52 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP conviction was firmly held that everything wise and good, be it ethical or ceremonial in its character, whose effect would be to strengthen the cause of religion, was at least potentially contained in the Torah, and that it only required an earnest religious mind to find it there. Hence the famous adage that ' everything which any student wiU teach at any future time was already communicated to Moses on Mount Sinai ; ' or the injunction that any acceptable truth; even if discovered by an insignificant man in Israel, should be considered as having the authority of a great sage or prophet, or even of Moses himself. The principle was that the words of the Torah are ' fruitful and multiply.' " ^ Exactly the same principle is familiar to students of Christian ecclesiastical history as the " doctrine of development." The active work of the Jewish schools — of which the Talmudical Literature is the outcome — in the interpireta- tion, investigation and expansion of the text of Scripture continued through many centuries, roughly from 300 B.C. to'500 A.D., nor did it cease after the close of the Babylonian Talmud. But the fixing of the latter in writing marks a weU-defined period which stands out prominently in the process of development. Of this work as a whole it should be noted that the canonical text of Scripture is always kept distinct and apart from the interpretation and amplification. The process of development is therefore clearly visible in the form of the literature. Another important point to remember is the line of demarcation that is drawn between the Halakah and Haggadah.^ Under the former term 1 Schechter, Studies p. 227!. This consideration will help to explain the so-called laws given to Moses on Sinai, of which forty- three are referred to in the Talmud. No Biblical basis is assigned for them, and they may, perhaps, emanate from the pre-Maccabean epoch. ' Cf. what is said on this point in ch. v. "HALAKAH" AND " HAGGADAH " 53 is embraced all that belongs to the strictly legal or ritual element in Scripture, or can be deduced therefrom, including discussions of such points. But it also covers other such usages which have little or no Scriptural basis : " the term extends also to the usages, customs {Minhdgim), ordinances (Tekanoth) and decrees (Gezerdth) for which there islittle or no authority in the Scriptures" (Schechter). The term Haggadah (or 'Aggada) which meant originally recitation (of the Scriptures) acquired an extended signifi- cance covering the whole field of the non-halakic part of the old Rabbinical literature, all that is spiritual and homiletical as well as all that is merely illustrative, such as stories and legends of bibhcal and post-biblical heroes and saints, and folklore generally. " Such topics as astronomy and astrology, medicine and magic, theosophy and mysticism, and similar subjects, falling mostly under the heading of folk-lore, pass as a rule also under the name of Haggadah " (Schechter). The authorities mentioned or referred to in the earliest compilations of the Oral Law (i.e. the Mishnah Tosefta and Baraitha) are {a) the Soferim or " Scribes," (6) the Zugoth or "Pairs," and (c) the Tannaim or "Teachers." {a) The Soferim or " Scribes " were the expounders of the Law from the time of Ezra to the Maccabean period (c. 450-100 B.C.). The work of the " Scribes " is referred to somewhat indefinitely in the Rabbinical hterature : " the words of the Soferim " is the somewhat vague authority cited for certain Halakoth of various dates. According to some scholars the " men of the great synagogue," or " the remnants of the. men of the great synagogue," are to be identified with the Soferim, and the synod is traditionally said to have consisted of 120 mem- bers. It is doubtful, however, whether any such assembly ever existed, though not improbably some element of historical truth underiies the tradition. To the " men of the great synagogue " many sayings, ordinances, and decrees are attributed ; such as the arrangement of the 54 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP Old Testament Canon, the reading of the Law on certain days of the week, Ihe arrangement of the daily prayers, saying of grace after meals, etc., possibly also the so-called " law given to Moses on Sinai " emanate from the Soferic age. More than a third of these " Laws " — there are forty-three altogether — refer to the preparation of the phylacteries. The chain of tradition is described in the following classical passage from the Mishnah (Pirke Aboth I) : " Moses received the Torah from Sinai, and he delivered it to Joshua, and Joshua to the elders (Jos. 24^1, Jud. 2') and the elders to the prophets, and the prophets delivered it to the men of the Great Synagogue ; tibey said three things : Be dehberate in judgment ; and raise up many disciples ; and make a fence to the Torah." The second of these sayings suggests that the teaching activity of the Soferim was a prominent feature. A careful distinction must be drawn between the later scribes, the scribes of the New Testament, and these earlier Soferim. In the New Testament period the term is a general one,being used to describe the professional class of the teachers of the law generally. The earlier scribes seem to have been much influenced by the exppnents of the wisdom-literature, but the two classes, " Soferim," the Scribes, and the " Wise," were probably distinct in the Persian and early Greek periods, by the time of Ben Sira however the distinction had largely disappeared. (Sage and Scribe are identified in Eccles 28.**fE. Cf. 633 . pn ft^ 1480 fi.). Probably some of the work of the earlier Soferim is preserved in the Canonical Scriptures, e.g. Psalm 119. (6) The Zugoth "pairs" (Grk. ^vyov), an appellation given to the leading teachers of the Law from the Maccabean to the Herodian period, B.C. 150-30. According to tra- dition the two mentioned in each case were heads of the Sanhedrin, the one first mentioned being the President (Nasi) and the second the vice-president {ab beth din). There may be some truth underlying the traditioij in the sense that the pairs really did stand at the head of the organized teachers of the nation, but it is doubtful whether at the time in question the Sanhedrin had THE "TANNAIM" 55 been organized in such a way as to justify the official designations given to the pairs. According to the New Testament and to Josephus, the High Priest was the ex officio head of the Sanhedrin. All the Z goth are import- ant, for various haggadic sayings attributed to them (cf . the Mishnak tractate, "Sa37ings of the Jewish Fathers," ch. i, §§ 4-15). The most important were, of course, HiUel and Shammai, the founders of the two great schools (" House of Hillel," " House of Shammai "). To HiUel are ascribed many striking sayings, among others the famous one addressed to a heathen who was seeking admission to Judaism — " What is hateful to thyself do not to thy fellow-man. This is the whole Torah, the rest is only commentary" [Shabbath ■^0^). Hillel was the first to frame the rules of interpretation — seven — ^which formed the basis of R. Ishmael's thirteen exegetical rules. (c) The Tannaim, " Teachers," a name given to the Rabbinical authorities who flourished during the first two centuries, a.d., from a.d. 10-220. In the Mishnah, however, the term Tanna (sing.) does not occur ; it was applied to the doctors of the Mishnah by later generations. The Tannaim may be conveniently classified into four generations. (i) First Generation 10-80 a.d. During this period the rival schools of Shammai and Hillel were active. The former were, on the whole, rather more strict and rigid in their interpretation of tradition. At this time also flourished Rabban Gamaliel the elder (mentioned in Acts 5^* *^), and Jochanan b. Zakkai, one of the leaders of the peace-party in the war against Rome (66-70 A.D.), and afterwards prominent at the academy of Jamnia. (ii) Second Generation, 90-130 a.d. The most important names here are Rabban Gamahel II (grandson of the above-mentioned Gamahel), and his brother-in-law Ehezer 56 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP b. Hyrkanos (head of a school in Lydda) . Of the younger teachers R. Tarfon, R. Jose of Galilee, R. Ishnaael b. EUsha (who framed the thirteen rules of interpretation and at Usha founded a famous school of Midrash-students from which various Midrashim emanated) and R. Akiba are the most famous. (iii) Third Generation, 130-160. This includes the disciples of R. Ishmael, and the younger disciples of R. Akiba (R. Meir and R. Simon b. Jochai, and R. Simon b. Gamahel, the son and successor of GamaUel II being the most prominent). (iv) Fourth Generation, 160-220. Here the great figure is R. Judah ha-Nasi, " the Prince," called also " Our master the saint," but more usually " Rabbi " simply (without addition). He succeeded his father as Patriarch and is famous as the compiler of the Mishnah in its present form. III. The Mishnah, Tosefta and Baraithas. [Special Literature, (a) Editions of the text. The best text available is the Cambridge one edited by W. H. Lowe : The Mishnah on which the Palestinian Talmud rests (Cambridge, 1883). The editio princeps is that of Surenhusius 6 vols. Amsterdam 1698-1703 (with Latin translation and commentaries) . (6) English Translations : Eighteen Treatises of the Mishna, translated by De Sola and Raphall (and ed. London, 1845) ; 18 translated by J. Barclay in a vol. with the title The Talmud (London, 1878) ; Translation of the Pirke Aboth by Dr. C. Taylor (with valuable notes), Cambridge, 1897 : (c) Articles, etc. The art. Mishnah in E. Brit. xvi. 503 (by Dr. Schiller- Szinessy), and in JE viii, 609-619 ; the art. Tosefta in JE xii. 207-209 ; the art. Baraita in JE ii. 513-516 (with the literature cited).] The literary outcome of the work of the various genera- tions of the Tannaim enumerated in the previous section, so far as it has survived, is embodied in the Mishnah, the Tosefta, and Various Baraithas. i. The Mishnah. The name " Mishnah " is derived from a verb [shanah) which means to " repeat," and then THE SIX "ORDERS" OF THE "MISHNAH" 57 " to learn " or " teach " (by repetition). It thus came to mean " teaching " (of the oral tradition). ^ It forms the main depository of the oral Law as distinguished from the text of Scripture, termed mikra (" reading matter "). In its final form, as compiled (apart from a few later additions) by R. Judah the Patriarch, it is divided into six main parts or Orders {seder = " oxAex" ; pi. sedarim;) each seder or order is divided into Tractates (Massektoth pi. of Masseketh, Aram, massikta, from a verb meaning " to weave," cf. Lat. textus), and each Tractate into chapters (perakim, pi. of perek "a joint"), and each perek into paragraphs which are called each a Mishnah. The six Sedarim or Orders are as follows : ^ (i) Zeraim (" Seeds "), deals mainly with laws connected with agriculture, but opens with a tractate on Prayer (viz. Berakoth, " Blessings ") ; (2) Moed ("Festival"), on the Festivals, including the Sabbath ; (3) Nashim (" Women "), on marriage-laws mainly (but including two tractates deahng with the laws of vows) ; (4) Nezikin ('' Damages "), mainly dealing with civil and criminal law ; (5) Kodashim ("Holy Things"), dealing with the laws relating to sacrifices. It includes a valuable Tractate (Middoth) which gives the measurements of the Temple, describing its haUs, gates, etc. (6) Tohoroth {" Purifications "), dealing with the laws of personal and ritual purification. The Mishnah is written in a scholastic form of Hebrew, developed and descended from biblical Hebrew. This 1 In the Church Fathers (S. Jerome, etc.) such traditions are termed Sevrepiiveis " repetitions " — e.g. " I would fail to tell of the multitude of the traditions of the Pharisees, which are now called Seurepiiaeis " (S. Jerome, Ep. 121). Cf. further Schurer, op. cit. p. 119, et al. ' They include 63 (or 60) Tractates. 58 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP idiom is usually styled " new Hebrew," and is essentially academic in character, though it is an organic develop- ment of the older language. The present compilation, which was redacted by R. Judah the Patriarch, is a yery comprehensive one ; it embodies the main ccmtents of the entire Halakah (traditional laws of ritual and religious practice), and thus includes material of various age and date. Included within it also are earlier collections. The earliest halakic collection was the halakic midrash and it is probably embodied in the halakic Midrashim (Mekilta, Sifra, Sifre : see chap. v). At an early period, however, the Halakah was separated from the Midrash and embodied in a distinct and independent collectioij. This would form the earUest Mishnah-coUection (made probably by the disciples of HUlel and Shammai). The first to systematize the halakic collection was R. Akiba ; and he was the redactor of a compilation out of which the present Mishnah actually grew. His disciple R. Meir extended this, or rather compiled a collection of halakic laws of his own, as did other Tannaim. These collections were aU more or less arbitrary and incomplete, and to remedy the consequent confusion and uncertainty, R. Judah under- took Ms collection, which has become the final authoritative one (though it is by no means free from defects) and which formed the basis for the later discussion embodied in the two Talmuds. Whether R. Judah actually reduced his compilation to writing, or whether this was only done later, is disputed. In its present form the text of the Mishnah has received additions, made after the time of Rabbi, for the sake of completeness. From the nature of its subject-matter, the Mishnah is mainly legahstic in character. The phraseology is cramped, and the style very terse and compressed. Brevity of expression was aimed at (probably to assist memorizing) , and a knowledge of the Scriptural texts dealing with the topics discussed is assumed, as well as of established rehgious customs generally. The following paragraph may serve as a sample, it is the opening one of the Tractate Sukkah {" Tabernacles "), in Sedar Moed : A booth (the interior of) which is above twenty cubits high is disallowed. R. Judah allows it. One which is not ten hands high, one which has not tliree walls, or which has THE "TOSEFTA" 59 more sun than shade is disallowed. " An old booth ? " The school of Shammai disallow it ; but the School of Hillel allow it. What is an old booth ? One that was made thirty days before the feast ; but if it were made with intention for the feast, even from the beginning of the year, it is allowed. [Here the knowledge of the duty of Uving in booths for seven days, in accordance with Lev. 23*" is presupposed.] It would be unjust, however, to the Tannaitic Teachers to suppose that the Mishnah codification represents the full outcome of their interpretative powers. The hermeneutical element in the Mishnah is rare and small in extent. For this it is necessary to turn to the Midmshim in the eariier of which the Tannaim are to be seen at their work of biblical exegesis (see p. 55). But even in the Mishnah itself vivid descriptive passages are sometimes met with (though rarely) which relieve the monotony of the purely legal sections, such as the charm- ing description of a procession of firstfruits arriving in Jerusalem {Bikkurim, III 2f.),^ or the following (from Rosh ha-Shanah II 8) : Rabban Gamaliel had, on a tablet and on the walls of his' room, sketches of the phases of the moon which he showed to ignorant witnesses and Said : " Was it thus you saw her, or thus .' " ii. The Tosefta. Under the name Tosefta,^ which means " extensions," "additions," a collection of halakoth parallel to the official Mishnah has been handed down. The exact relation of this collection to the official Mishnah and the Baraithas of the Talmud (see below) is difficult to determine. It seems that the Tosefta is really an 1 Summarized in Delitzsch's Jewish Artisan Life, chap. iv. ("A June Day in Ancient Jerusalem.") 2 To be carefully distinguished from the Tosafoth, the name given to the additions made to Rashi's commentary on the Tal- mud by his disciples (hence called Tosafists; Rashi died, 1105). They are printed on the outer margins of the editions of the Babylonian Talmud. See below. 60 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP independent collection of the same material as that embodied in the Mishnah; only the halakoth, which have largely been abbreviated in the latter (for memorizing purposes) are here given in fuller form with additions and explanations. Consequently the material extant in the Tosefta is often of great critical value, being given in a more original form. Like the Mishnah, the Tosefta is divided into six Orders or Sedarim. It contains all the tractates of the Mishnah with the exception of .4 6o/5A in Seder Nezikin, and Kinnim, Middoth and Tamid in Seder Kodashim. It has formed the subject of many commentaries in Hebrew (the latest by M. Friedmann to his ed. of the Tosefta of Seder Moed, Part I, 1898 ; Part II, 1900), The Haggadic element is much more pronounced in the Tose/te than in the Mishnah. iii. The Baraithas. The term " Baraitha " is an Aramaic word meaning " the outside," "external " (sc. Mishnah) and designates " A Tannaite tradition not incorporated in the Mishnah," or a collection of such. The Baraithas thus bear a somewhat similar relation to the Mishnah as that of the Apocrypha to the Canonical Books of the Bible. The Baraitha sections are scattered about the Talmuds where they are easily distinguishable by the fact that they are cited in Hebrew, whereas the language of the Gemara of the Talmud is Aramaic. They are regularly introduced by the formula " our Rabbis have taught" (teno rabbanan), or there is "a tradition" (tanya), or, where an authority is cited by name, " R. So and-so taught " (^tent R.). The Baraithas contain both halakic and haggadic ma- terial, and many of them represent an older tradition than that accepted in the Mishnah, and, in fact, one opposed to the latter (this appHes particularly to the rejected halakoth of the School of Shammai). Thus the Pharisaic view of the biblical lex talionis was that it is apphcable only THE TALMUDS 61 in the case of murder ; other crimes could be expiated by money compensation. This is assumed by the Mishnah without discussion. But it appears from a Baraitha [Baba Kama 84^) that this principle was not recognized by the School of Shammai, and that Eliezer b. Hyrcanus " still upheld the old Sadducean view of the lex talionis." A scientific collection and critical examination of this scattered material still remains a desideratum. IV. The Talmuds. [Special Literature. A Latin translation of a large part of the Palestinian Talmud is given in Ugolini, Vols. XVII, XX, XXV and XXX. A complete translation into French has been published by Moses Schwab (Paris, 1 87 1 and following years); and an EngUsh translation of Schwab's first volume (Berakoth) appeared in 1885. The Haggadic portions are given in Wiinsche Der jerusa- lemische Talmud in seinen haggadischen Bestandiheilen (Zurich, 1880). An edition of the Babylonian Talmud (Hebrew text and German translation) is in course of publication : edited by L. Goldschmid. The Haggadic passages have been translated by Wiinsche, Der babylonische Talmud in seinen haggadischen Bestandiheilen, etc., 2 vols, (i 886-1 888). Translations of single Tractates have appeared in Latin, German, French, and English. In EngUsh, the treatise Chagigah translated with introduction, notes, glossary and indices, by Rev. A. W. Streane (Cambridge, 1891).] With the compilation of the official Mishnah of Rabbi the work of the Jewish Schools did not cease. On the contrary, the text of the Mishnah became the basis for further juristic discussion and amplification, the outcome of which was the Palestinian and Babylonian Talmuds. The Rabbinical authorities who were engaged in this work, and who were active both in the schools of Palestine and Babylonia from 220 to 500 a.d. bear the generic designation of Amoraim, " Speakers " or " Interpreters." During this period famous Rabbinical academies existed not only in Palestine (Tiberias, Sepphoris, Csesarea) ; but also in Babylonia (Nehardea, Sura, and later at Pumbeditha). 62 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP The Palestinian Amoraim who had been ordained '■ by the Patriarch (Nasi) bore the title of Rabbi ; those of Babylonia who had received ordination bore the title of Rab.> " The main object of the lectures and discussions " which took place in the Palestinian and Babylonian^chools during this period, " was to interpret the often very brief and con- cise expression of the Mishnah, to investigate its reasons and sources, to reconcile seeming contradictions, to compare its canons with those of the Baraithoth, and to apply its decisions and estabUshed principles to new cases not yet provided for " (Mielziner, op. cit. p. 40). The Amoraim were not independent authorities like the Tannaim, having no authority to contradict what was accepted in the Mishnah and Baraithoth. The Talmud, however, in cases of disagree- ment, sometimes sides with the latter against the former. The most important of the Amoraim (of whom several hundreds are mentioned in the Talmud) are the following (classified into five generations) : (i) First Generation ,(220-280) : {a) Palestine; R. Chiyya and his disciple R. Hoshaiah (the traditional compilers of the Toseftd). Hoshaiah had an academy (yeshibah) for many years at Sepphoris and afterwards at Caesarea, and was a famous teacher. His name is associated particularly with Haggadic interpretations of Scripture, and he seems to have been engaged in frequent discussion with Christians in Palestine, especially, it has plausibly been supposed, with the famous Church Father Origen.^ R. Jochanan (bar Nappacha) established a great school at Tiberias, which became the principal centre of learning in Palestine. He is often mentioned in the Talmud (usually as R. 1 Ordination (in the earlier period by " laying on of hands " semikatk yadaim) was confined tp Palestine and the Patriarch. 2 The title " Rabban " is superior to both "Rabbi" and " Rab," being confined to the Patriarchs and heads' of the Sanhedrin, e.g., " Rabban Gamaliel." ' Origen was ordained presb3rter at Caesarea in 228, opened his famous philosophical and theological school there in 231, and died at Tyre, 254. FAMOUS RABBIS 63 Jochanan), and may be regarded as the leading Amora of Palestine. He seems to have laid the foundations of the Palestinian Talmud ; he died c. 279. (6) Babylonia : Abba Arika, the chief Babylonian Amora. He is usually called by way of distinction "Rab" (i.e., the teacher par excellence, cf. "Rabbi," similarly of R. Judah the Patriarch). In his youth he went to Palestine with his uncle R. Chiyya (mentioned above) and became a dis- tinguished pupil of Rabbi Judah the Patriarch. After the latter's death he returned to Babylonia and founded, in 219, the school in Sura, which was attended by 1,200 pupils. Over 100 of his disciples are mentioned in the Talmud by name, (ii) Second Generation (280-300). (a) Palestine. R. Eleazar b. Pedath, generally referred to as R. Eleazar, and R. Abbahu, a native of Palestine. The latter was a man of wealth and wide culture (a good Greek scholar). He taught at Caesarea where he was a persona grata with the Roman officials, and was frequently engaged in controversy with Christians. (6) Babylonia: Rab Huna (bom 212, died 297), a disciple of Rab ; R. Judah (b. Jecheskel) , gener- ally referred to as Rab Judah. He founded the academy of Pumbeditha. (iii) Third Generation (320-370). [a) Palestine. During this period the Palestinian schools fell into complete decay owing to the persecuting pohcy of the Emperors Constantine and Constantius. {b) Babylonia : Rabba bar Huna (the son of Rab Huna, disciple and successor of Rab) ; Rabbah bar Nachmani (called in the Talmud simply Rabbah) , famous for his dialectical powers, in allusion to which he was called " uprooter of mountains." 64 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP (iv)- Fourth Generaiion (375-427) [entirely Babylonian]. Rab Ashi was made president (at the age of 20) of the re-opened Academy of Sura, and held office for 52 years. Under him Sura regained its former fame as a seat of learning. So great became Ashi's authority that he was called by contemporaries Rabana " our teacher." He began the task of compihng, sifting and arranging the material which was afterwards embodied in the Babylonian Talmud [Gemara). (v) Fifth Generation (Babylonian) (427-500). During the period of this generation the academies of Sura and Pumbeditha were active ; under Rabba Thospia (or Tosfaah) and Rabbina (contraction of Rab Abina), heads of the Sura- Academy,, the com- pilation of the Babylonian Talmud, begun by Rab Ashi, was brought to a close, and the whole reduced to writing. With the death of Rabbina in 499 the hne of the Amor aim came to an end. The finishing touches to the compilation of the Babylonian Talmud were given by the so-called Saborai " Explainers." They were responsible for the final redaction of the text. A mediaeval Jewish authority says : " They have added nothing of their own to the Talmud, nor have they expressed any divergent opinions, merely determining the arrangement of the text of the Talmud in all its chapters." The Babylonian teachers to whom the designation " Saborai " is applied were the heads of the academies at Sura and Pumbeditha between 500 and 540. There was no corresponding class of teachers in Palestine. THE TWO TALMUDS. The literary results of the work of the Palestinian and Babylonian Schools sketched above is mainly embodied in two works which respectively bear the title of Talmud of Jerusalem or more correctly Talmud of the Land of Israel (Palestinian Talmud) ,^ and the Babylonian Talmud.'^ 1 Also " Gremara of the people of the West." s Once called " Talmud of tiie people of the East." THE PALESTINIAN TALMUD 65 The name " Talmud " means primarily " teaching," " doctrine " [it also bears the meaning " learning " (learning acquired by study) in some early passages]. A further development of .the meaning (especially in the phrase talmud lomar) was instruction by means of the text of Scripture, and exegetic deductions therefrom. This again was applied to the special elucidation of a Halakah from the text of Scrip- ture (" the exegetic confirmation of the Halakah "). In the Talmud itself the word is appUed to the discussions of the Amoraim as distinguished from the Mishnah text which formed the basis of such discussion. Finally, it was used to designate the entire text, Mishnah included. After this usage had become estabUshed apparently the two component parts of the Talmud text were distinguished as Mishnah and Gemara (= ? completion), but the latter term is post-Tal- mudic (according to Bacher Gemara means not "completion," but learning, especially that transmitted to scholars by tradition). The Palestinian Talmud was completed some time in the fourth century, about a century before the Babylonian Talmud, but by whom it was compiled is unknown. It apparently was not subjected to a final revision, and has reached us in an incomplete form. Possibly, however, some portions have been lost. In its present form it covers only thirty-nine ^ of the sixty-three tractates of the Mishnah, and in some parts of these the Gemara is incomplete. The non-Hebrew portions of the text are written in a form of Western Aramaic which is almost identical with that used in the early Palestinian midrashic works. It is interesting historically (as well as linguistic- ally) as representing in one of its phases the popular language of Palestine. The Palestinian Talmud is especially rich in haggadic material. The compilation of the Babylonian Talmud, as we have seen, was practically finished at the end of the fifth century. Here again the Gemara is incomplete, only thirty-seven tractates of the Mishnah-text being commented on. ' All the tractates of the Orders, Zeraim, Moed, Nashim, and Nezikin (except Eduyoth and Aboth) are included ; but none in Kodashim and Teharoth (except Niddah) are dealt with. 6— (2417) 66 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP The earliest complete edition of the Babylonian Talmud (Talmud Babli) was printed at Venice (1520-1523) by Daniel Bomberg, and has been made the basis of the many later editions. This, the editio princeps, has also largely determined the external form of alllater editions. Together with the text of the Talmud proper it gives on one margin the commentary of Rashi, on the other' the Tosafoth and kindred matter. " Especially noteworthy is the fact that the first edition of Babli has a pagination which has been retained in all subsequent editions, thus render- ing it possible to quote passages with exactness, and to find citations readily" (Bacher). It is usual to cite the two Talmuds as T.J. ( = Talmud of Jerusalem) and T.B. ( = Talmud of Babylon). In the case of the latter a citation from the Gemara is fixed by the page, which, as explained, is identical in aU editions (the two sides of each leaf are regarded as one page, and are numbered a and h). Thus T.B. Berak, 29* means that the reference will be found in the Gemara of the Babylonian, Talmud to the tractate Berakoth on the second side of the folio (or page) numbered 29. In the case of the Palestinian Talmud the citations are usually made by the mishnaic chapters each of which together with the Mislmah-text contains immediately following the corresponding Gemara, divided into paragraphs (usually styled " Halakah i, 2, 3, etc."). It may be added that the Mishnah text (as distinguished from the Gemara) is cited according to chapter and paragraph. E.g., " Ber. VI. 2 " shows at a glance that the Mishnah (not the Gemara) is referred to ; and that the' 6th chap, of Berakoth, the 2nd par., is intended. The differences between the two Talmuds are not incon- siderable. There is first of all the difference of language. The non-Hebrew parts of the Palestinian Talmud (as has been pointed out already) are written in a western Aramaic dialect ; those of the Babylonian in an East Aramaic idiom closely related to Syriac and Mandaic. The style is also marked by differences. The discussions given in the Palestinian are more brief and condensed than those of the Babylonian ; there is also less casuistic discussion of purely hypothetical cases in the former than in the latter. On the whole, the Palestinian is CHARACTER OF TALMUDIC LITERATURE 67 decidedly more simple and direct in statement. Though two more tractates (thirty-nine) are commented on in the Palestinian than in the Babylonian (thirty-seven) the bulk of the latter is three times as great as that of the former. Though many authorities are cited equally in both, neither Talmud directly quotes from the other. Owing to the fact that Rabbinical studies maintained themselves in Babylonia, while the Schools of Palestine and the Palestinian Jewish communities feU into decay, the study of the Babylonian Talmud has been largely cultivated among the mediaeval and later Jewish com- munities, while the Palestinian was generally neglected. It was, as a rule, known only to special scholars among the Rabbis. In modern times scholars have devoted — and are still devoting — much attention to the investiga- tion of it. But the Babylonian Talmud remains the Talmud par excellence for the mass of orthodox Jews. As regards its general character the Talmudic literature is distinguished by certain striking features and peculiarities which call for mention in passing. The language in which the discussions are set forth is bald and concise often to obscurity. Abbreviations are largely employed. Allu- sions to religious customs, texts, etc., are briefly made, and knowledge presupposed on the part of the reader, which are by no means self-evident to non-Jewish readers. There is no attempt, either, at rhetoric or fine writing. Consequently the task of translating is often impossible — only a liberal paraphrase can be employed. As the dis- cussions are usually in the form of debate — question and answer, argument and counter-argument, which have no distinguishing external indication, have to be allowed for. The discussions, too, are often difficult to follow, no logical connexion being apparent. This characteristic has been well set forth by Deutsch : " Schooled in the harmonizing, methodizing systems of the West — systems that condense and arrange and classify and give evierything its fitting place and its fitting position in that place— 68 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP he [the Taknudic student] feels ahnost stupefied here. The language, the style, the method, the very sequence of things (a sequence that often appears as logical as our dreams), the amazingly varied nature of these things — everything seems tangled, confused, chaotic." Often the connexion, such as it is, is to be found not in the subject-matter but in the authority cited. In estimating the Talmud, and indeed Jewish Literature generally (including the Old and a large part of the New Testa- ments), it must never be forgotten that we are dealing with oriental books. The only complete MS. of this Talmud is at Munich (written at Paris in the year, 1369). The text of the later editions (that of Basel, 1578-1581) has suffered from the censorship. Words or expressions supposed to be offensive or hostile to the Christian religion were altered or deleted. V. Apocryphal Appendices to the Talmud. The following tractates, forming a sort of apocryphal collection, are usually appended to the editions of the Talmud. Nos. i and 2 are of considerable value historically and in other ways. 1. Aboth de Rabbi Nathan, forming a kind of Tosefta- text to the Mishnah-treatise Pirke Aboth. The ethical dicta of the latter work are here expanded and illustrated. The R. Nathan to whom this work is attributed belonged to the fourth genera- tion of the Tannaim (160-220), but the present book is post-Talmudic. The work is divided into forty-one chapters, and is written in new Hebrew. A critical edition was published by Schechter in 1887 ; and a German translation {Rabbi Nathan's System der Ethik und Moral) by Kaim PoUak in 1905 (Frankfort- on-the-Main). 2. Soferim (" the Scribes ") ; a tractate in twenty-one chapters containing rules for the writing of the Pentateuch scrolls, as well as massoretic and liturgical rules. The liturgical matter is of great APOCRYPHAL TALMUDIC TRACTATES 69 interest and value (best edition that of Dr. Joel Miiller in 2 vols. [crit. Heb. text with elaborate notes in German], Leipzig, 1878). 3. Ehel Rabbati : a treatise on mourning, also called (euphemistically) Semachoth, "Joys." It is divided into fourteen chapters, and deals with mourning and burial customs and rules. 4. Kallah (" Bride "), a minor tractate,, consisting of one chapter, dealing with the obligation of chastity in marriage and generally. i. Derek Eretz (" Conduct of Life "), a tractate con- sisting of eleven chapters, deahng with ethical, social and religious themes. 6. Derek Eretz Suta (" The conduct of Life, minor treatise"), in ten chapters of much the same character as the preceding. 7. Perek ha-Shalom {" Chapter on Peace "), consists of one chapter which deals with the importance of peacefulness. All the above are appended to the Talmud in the printed editions. Besides these, seven minor tractates were published by Raphael Kircheim, from an ancient MS., in 1651 (Frankfort on the Main). VI. Commentaries on and Compendiums OF THE Talmud. The difficulties which beset the student of the Talmud will have been made sufficiently evident from what has been already said above. These difficulties have been felt by Jewish students, and have given occasion for the production of numerous commentaries. A very full list of these will be found in the art. Talmud Com- mentaries in the JE (xii, 27-30). Only a few of the more important can be mentioned here. In the latest and best complete edition of the Babylonian Talmud (the Wilna edition of the Widow and Brothers Romm, pub- lished 1880-1886 in 25 vols.) a considerable number 70 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP of commentaries are printed : among others that of Rabbenu Chananel (n'"1) of Kairowan (Africa) who flourished about 1050, and who commented on a large part of the Talmud. But by far the most important is the com- mentary of " the prince of commentators," Rabbi Solomon Isaaki of Troyes (1040-1105), usually called from the initials of his name Rashi — whose work covers the greater part of the text of the Babylonian Talmud. Without Rashi's commentary and its supplements any edition of this Talmud-text would be incomplete.^ It has been well described as " a true model of concise, clear, and systematic commentation. By a few plain words it often sheds light upon the obscurest passages, and unravels the most entangled arguments of the Talmudical discussions. As if anticipating the slightest hesitation of the inexperi- enced student, it offers him at once the needed explanation, or at least a hint that leads him in the right way. It has truly been said that but for this peerless commentary of Rashi, the Babylonian Talmud would have remained as neglected as the Palestinian. An additional merit. . . is . , . thatit very often establishes the correct version of the corrupted Talmud text " (Mielziner).'' Supplements and additions to Rashi's commentary were made by relatives and disciples. In addition to Rashi's work, which is printed in the inner margins, the editions of the Babli also have a collec- tion of annotations and glosses, which are printed on the exterior margins, and are called Tosafoth {Additions). These do not form a running commentary (like Rashi's), but are separate notes. The authors of these additions, who were numerous, are called Tosafists (Heb. Ba'ale tosafoth). They flourished in France and Germany during the twelfth and thirteenth centuries. Commentaries ' It is unfortunate that Goldschmid's text and (German) trans- lation, now appearing, are printed without Rashi's commentary. • See, for an excellent account of Rashi's Talmudic commentaries (with illustrative extracts), Liber's Rashi (London, 1906), p. 135 f. "MISHNAH" COMMENTARIES 71 were also written on the Mishnah as an independent work. The best known complete one on the entire Mishnah is that of Maimonides (commenced in the 23rd year of his age in Spain, and finished in his 30th year in Egypt). It was written in Arabic, but has been trans- lated into Hebrew by several hands, and this Hebrew translation is usually printed in editions of the Talmud. Another noteworthy commentary covering the whole Mishnah is that of R. Obadiah of Bertinoro in Italy, who was Rabbi in Jerusalem in the sixteenth century (died 15 10). It was written in Hebrew and is usually appended to separate editions of the Hebrew text of the Mishnah. Latin translations of this and of Maimonides' commentary are printed in the edition of Surenhusius. Those tracts of the Mishnah for which no Babylonian Gemara exists and on which consequently Rashi did not comment, have also been frequently annotated by distinguished Rabbis ; notably by R. Simson of Sens (twelfth century), a famous Tosafist, and by R. Asher b. Jechiel (thirteenth century). Various Rabbinical commentaries also exist on the Palestinian Talmud, which do not call for further mention here. As the Babylonian Talmud was regarded as the source of binding Rabbinical law for the regulation of the rehgious life, it was inevitable that various compendiums and codifications of it should be made for purposes of convenience. In such, haggadic and other unnecessary elements were omitted, as well as the long legal discus- sions. The codes aimed at presenting the legal material in a more systematic form. The most important compendiums are one by R. Isaac Alfasi, usually cited as Alfasi or from the initial letters of his name as "Rif " (bom 1013, died 1103), and one by R. Asher b. Jechiel (died 1327). This compendium is usually added to each tractate in printed editions of the Tahnud (under the title It^'N ^'21). 72 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP The codification of the Talmudic law was accom- phshed by Maimonides in the twelfth century, in a large work entitled Mishneh Torah, " Repetition of the Law." It is written in new Hebrew," and is divided into fourteen books ; hence its popular name Sefer ha- Yad (the Hebrew letters ^ numerically = 14), and later by way of distinction, Yad ha-chazakah, " The Strong Hand." Various commentaries and annotations were produced later on this work, and are usually printed with it. Another important codification bears the name of Turim (=" Rows "i.e., rows of La-ws). It was compiled by R. Jacob, son of the well-known R. Asher b. Jechiel, referred to above, and is divided into four parts, viz., Tur Orach Chayyim, dealing with liturgical laws ; Tur Yoreh Deah, dealing with the ritual laws ; Tur Eben Ha-Ezer, dealing with the marriage laws, and Tur choshen mishpat, treating of the civil laws. The Turim differ from the Mishneh Torah in so far as the aim of the former compilation is a strictly practical one. It restricts itself to laws actually in practice at the time, all that had become obsolete being disregarded. In accordance with this practical purpose post-Talmudic laws and customs are also embodied. The printed editions of Turim are usually provided with commentaries by R. Joseph Karo (this commentary is called Beth Joseph) and by R. Moses Isserles {Darke MosheK). The most famous of the codifications, and the one most extensively used by the Jews, is the Shulchan Aruk {" Prepared Table ") of the R. Joseph Karo (sixteenth century), already mentioned as a commentator on the Mishneh Torah and Turim. Taking the latter work with his own accompanying commentary as a basis, and retaining its four divisions (with their titles) and general arrangement, he remodelled the entire contents so as- to give the work the character of a law-book. By strict orthodox Jews this Code has been regarded as HAGGADIC COLLECTIONS 73 authoritative since it was firSt promulgated. In con- nexion with its text numerous commentaries and glosses have been produced. Of Haggadic Collections from the Babylonian Talmud, the most popular and comprehensive is the En Jacob {ipV' VV = " WeU of Jacob ") of R. J^cob ibn Chabib (beginning of sixteenth century). A similar collection was made from the Palestinian Talmud, which was pub- lished, with a cpmmentary, by R. Samuel Jafe (Vienna, 1590 ; reprinted Berlin, 1725-6) under the title Yefeh Mar' eh (^^<■|a HB'). CHAPTER V. The Sources of Judaism (Concluded). The Midrashim and the Prayer-Book. The Midrashim : Midrash Halakah and Midrash Haggadah — The Halakic Midrashim — The Haggadic Midrashim on the Pentateuch and Five Scrolls — ^The Homiletic Midrashim on the Lections — Other Midrashim — Characteristics of the Midrashic Literature — New Testament Illustrations — The Prayer Book — Ashhenazim and Sefardim — Prayer Book Compilations — Appendix : Later Sources. [Literature (for the Midrashim): — The principal authority is Zunz, Die gottesdienstlichen Vortrage der Juden, 2nd ed. 1892 (passim). The following may be consulted in English. The Artt. Midrash in the E. Brit, by Dr. Schiller-Szinessy, and Midrash Haggadah in JE VIII (which has been cited several times below) : also I. Abrahams, A Short History of Jewish Literature (1906), ch. iv (" The Midrash and its Poetry ") ; and S. Rapaport, Tales and Maxims from the Midrash {" The Semitic Series," published by Routledge, London, 1907).] I. Introductory. Another branch of Rabbinical Literature \duch is closely associated in some of its characteristic forms with the text of the Bible is the midrashic. The term " midrash," which already occurs in the Bible (cf. 2. Chron. 13^*, 24"), denotes "exposition," "exegesis," especially of an edif5dng and moralizing character. It is carefully distinguished from the mere hteral sense, which is technically termed " peshat " (Ut. " simple)." ^ The Midrashic Literature may broadly be distinguished into two classes, according as it is of a legal character, dealing with matters of binding law in a strict legalistic spirit {Midrash Halakah), or of a /reer and more edifying 1 Cf., the common name of the Syxiac version of the Bible, " Peshitto." 74 MIDRASHIC LitERATURE 75 tendency, with stories and illustrative matter drawn from popular custom, tales, and beliefs (Midrash Haggadah). By far the larger proportion of this literature belongs to the latter category. Here it covers a wide range and received a rich development, embracing not merely the interpretation of the non-legal parts of Scripture, but also their amplification and illustration generally. It covers everything, in fact, that is not included in or connected with the Halakah. Finally, its close application to the text of Scripture became a subordinate feature and it assumed the form of finished discourse (homily). The term Halakah= " rule," " binding law," and is applied to the legal element in the oral law and the Rabbinical dis- cussions and decisions dependent on it, especially as embodied in the Mishnah, the Talmuds and the compendiums of Rabbinic Law based thereon (Uke the Shulchan Aruk)^ The term Haggadah — " narration," " telling," and " means primarily the recitation or teaching of Scripture ; in a narrower sense it denotes the exegetic amplification of a Biblical passage and the ampUflcation of a new thought based thereupon." ' The term soon became used in a general sense to embrace the whole mass of non-halakic interpreta- tion generally ; " maggid " (a term connected with Haggadah) was applied to the preacher who dehvered homiletical discourses in the S3magogue of a haggadic nature. The characteristic features of this kind of oratory have been well summed up by Zunz : " The Haggadah, which is intended to bring heaven down to the congregation, and also to lift man up to heaven, appears in this of&ce both as the glorification of God and as the comfort of Israel. Hence religious truths, moral maxims, discussions concerning divine retribution, the inculcation of the laws which attest Israel's nationahty, descriptions of its past and future greatness, scenes and legends from Jewish history, comparisons between the divine and Jewish institutions, praises of the Holy Land, encourag- ing stories, and comforting reflections of aU kinds form the most important subjects of these discourses." ' This hag- gadic literature thus constitutes a thesaurus of the highest and deepest thoughts of the Jewish teachers on reUgion and ethics, embodied in popular form. It should be added here that one controlling motive and feature of Midrash, which 1 See § vi of oh. iv above. " /£ VIII, p. 5 SO (s.v. Midrash Haggadah). » Cited ibid. 76 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP literally means " investigation," was to investigate and elucidate, by all exegetical means at command, all possible hidden meanings and applications of Scripture. For the methods employed see the art. Talmud Hermeneutics in JE XII, 30 ff. Midrashic material has received various embodiment in the Rabbinical collections enumerated below. Mid- rashic elements can already be detected in the text of Scripture itself, The chronicler cites as one of his sources a " Midrash [E.V. "commentary"] of the book of Kings " (2 Chron. 24*"), and the books of Chronicles exhibit many of the characteristic features of Midrash proper, as can be seen by comparing the parallel narratives contained in Chronicles and the earlier historical books {Samuel and Kings). In the work of the Chronicler we have to deal " with a very free treatment and exposition of old traditional material, the object of which is not so much to narrate history as to conduce to religious edifi- cation." ^ These midrashic features, it may be adde(f, were probably already developed in the sources used by the Chronicler, and may not primarily be due to the latter. They are the outcome of a process which had been going on for some time, and by which the traditional history of the People of Israel became transformed into the history of a church. There is not, however, any cogent reason for doubting the good faith of the writers who took part in this development. It must be regarded, rather, as the result of the reflex action of the rehgious institutions which are embodied in the Priestly Code of the Hexateuch, and which had become established as binding custom and invested with antique sanctions. This midrashic ten- dency finds full expression, as might be expected, in the Books of the Apocrj^ha and in the pseudepigraphic litera- ture of Judaism generally. A good example is to be seen in the apocryphal book of Susanna. This is really I 1 ComiU, Introdiiction to the Canonical Books of the Old Testa- ment. ET, p. 237 (WUliams & Norgate, 1907). RABBINIC METHOD OF TEACHING 77 a midrashic narrative suggested by the meaning of the name Daniel ( = " EL (God) is my judge "), as indeed the alternative title of the book found in some Greek MSS., Judgment of Daniel, may indicate. In the Book of Jubilees ^ (second century b.c.) we have " an extreme product of the midrashic process," already apparent in the work of the Chronicler. The author of Jubilees " sought to do for Genesis what the Chronicler had done for Samuel and Kings." He re-wrote the Biblical Book of Genesis from the standpoint of later Pharisaism. He glorifies the Law and such ordinances as Circumcision and the Sabbath; he insists on the separation of Israel from the Gentiles, and represents the Patriarchs as models of Rabbinical piety (see Charles'- Introduction to his ed. §§ 14 and 15). Midrashic tendencies can also be detected in certain books of the New Testament (see § 3 of this chapter below). In forming an estimate of this literature it is necessary to remember a point which has been admirably put by an English commentator on the Apocrypha, the Rev. C. J. Ball : " We have to bear in mind," he says, " a fact familiar enough to students of the Talmudic and Midrashic literature, . . , the inveterate tendency of Jewish teachers to convey their doctrine, not in the form of abstract discourse, but in a mode appealing directly to the imagination, and seeking to arouse the interest and S5nTipathy of the man lUther than the philosopher. The Rabbi embodies his lesson in a story, whether parable or allegory or seeming historical narrative ; and the last thing he or his disciples would think of is to ask whether the selected persons, events, and circumstances which so vividly suggest the doctrine are in themselves real or 1 The Book of Jubilees, translated into English by R. H. Charles (London, 1902). Jubilees, according to Charles, was originally written in Hebrew by a Pharisee, an upholder of the Maccabean dynasty, between 135 and 105 B.C. It exists in an Ethiopic text. See p. 36. 78 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP fictitious. The doctrine is everything ; the mode of presentation has no independent value. To make tjie story the first consideration, and the doctrine it was intended to convey an afterthought as we, with our dry Western hteralness, are predisposed to do, is to reverse the Jewish order of thinking, and to do unconscious injustice to the authors of many edifsdng narratives of antiquity." ' 11. The Priptcipal Rabbinical Collections of THE MiDRASH. The Midrashic literature of Rabbinical Judaism has been embodied in various collections of various date and value. The more important of the Midrashim we here proceed to enumerate. A. The Halakic Midrashim. 1. The Mekilta, lit. " measure," " rule," a Midreish to Exodus, from ch. 12 to 23**, with the addition of two short comments on 31""!' and 35^"' (the law of the Sabbath). Hebrew text (with intro- duction and notes in Hebrew) edited by I. H. Weiss (Vienna, 1865) and by M. Friedmann (Vienna, 1870). 2. The Sifra, lit. " the Book " (or Torath Kohanim, " Law of Priests ") on Leviticus. Hebrew text with notes by I. H. Weiss (Vienna, 1862). 3. The Sifre, lit. " Books " on Numbers 5 to end, and the whole of Deuteronomy. Best ed. of the Hebrew text (with introduction and notes in Hebrew) that of M. Friedmann (Vienna, 1864). A Latin translation of these three works is given (with Hebrew text) in Ugohni's Thesaurus.Vdis. XIV, XV (Vienna, 1752), but is more or less useless. No other translation has yet been published. ' Introduction to The Song of the Three Holy Children in the Speaker's Commentary on the Apocrypha, Vol. II, p. 307. HALAKIC MIDRASHIM 79 This group is of first-rate importance. In their original form these Midrashim go back to the earlier part of the second century, A.D. (to a time anterior to the Bar-Kokba revolt, 132-135 A.D.). The disciples of Rabbi Jochanan b. Zakkai, viz., Ishmael, Akiba and Eleazar of Modin,^ appear to have redacted the principal contents of the exposition on the basis of the still older and anonymous stratum of the exegetical tradition. It is true, teachers are mentioned who hved till the last quarter of the second century, but rarely, and usually with indications of the previous existence of the comment for which they are made responsible. The Mekilta embodies the tradition mainly of R. Ishmael's School ; Sifra (on Leviticus) that of the School of R. Akiba with additions from the School of R. Ishmael ; Sifre (on Numbers ani Deuteronomy) is also a composite work hke Sifra, going back mainly to the schools of R. Akiba and R. Ishmael. In their present final form aU three works, after being brought from Palestine to Babylonia, were edited in the Babylonian Schools (fourth to fifth century A.D.). Sifre on Deuteronomy is akin to the Mekilta, while Sifra (on Leviticus) and Sifre on Numbers are more controversial in tone. The importance of these collections for the student of the New Testament is very considerable. A large part of the material embodied in them goes back to the time of the Apostles' contemporaries and gives us an insight into the spiritual forces that affected the Jerusalem of the first Christian century. The most valuable collection of material from every point of view is undoubtedly that embodied in Mekilta. The [striking essay of Schlatter {Die Sprache und Heimat des vierten Evangehsten, 1902) brings out in detail the paral- leUsm that exists between the language and phraseology of the Fourth Gospel and that of earUer Jewish exegesis, as 1 These Rabbis flourished about 120-140 a.d. 80 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP embodied mainly in these works : e.g., the phrase " every man that cometh into the world," John i », has its analogue in a regular and recurring phrase that occurs in MekDta Sifra and Sifre, viz., " all who come into the world " ; " Thou art dehverance for all who come into the world, but especially for Israel" (Mek. to Ex. 15"), may be instanced. The phraseology of the Fourth Gospel is Jewish through and through. All three midrashim are halakic in character, but with a considerable admixture of haggadah. The halakic midrashim may be regarded as the result of an attempt on the part of the teachers of the Law to justify in a popular way, Halakah or traditional rules and laws of life and ritual against the objections of the Sadducees by deducing them from the text of Scripture. " The Talmud does this in the form of a commentary on the Halakah ; it takes tradition by tradition and seeks a Biblical basis for each. In the halakic Midrash, however, another course was adopted. A running com- mentary was compiled to the legal parts of the Pentateuch; verse by verse the halakah was derived from the text." ^ One pr two examples will serve to iEustrate the character of these commentaries. An instance of halakic Midrash occurs in the Mekilta on Ex. 2026 : " And if thou wilt make me an altar of stone, thou shalt not build it (an unusual form of the objective pronoun is used here in the Hebrew text) of hewn stone : for if thou Uft up thy iron tool upon it, thou hast polluted it." The Midrash here emphasizes the unusual form of the objective pronoun " it," and deduces the conclusion that the prohibition of hewn stones is restricted to the altar only, but in building the Temple such stones may be used. Further — and this is an instance of haggadic Midrash— the Midrash goes on to explain " why the applica- tion of iron is here called a pollution of the altar ; it is because iron abridges hfe, while the altar prolongs it, iron causes destruction and misery, while the altar produces reconcilia- tion between God and man ; and therefore the use of iron cannot be allowed in making the altar." " The following is translated from Sifra on Lev. igi'-i* : ' Thou shalt not be resentful. What is meant by being resentful ? When one Abrahams, A Short History of Jewish Literature (1906), p. 30. Mielziner, Introduction to the Ta^wwi^ (Chicago, 1894), p. 119. HAGGADIC MIDRASHIM 81 person says to another, " Lend me your axe," and he will not lend it ; then on the following day the latter says to the former, " Lend me your sickle," whereupon he says, " Here it is ; I am not like you who refuse to lend me your axe." Therefore is it written, " Thou shalt not take vengeance," and "Love thy neighbour as thyself; " R. Akiba says, "This is the great principle of the Torah." ' i B. The Haggadic Midrash on the Pentateuch and Five Scrolls {Megilloth). Those parts of Scripture which are most frequently read in the pubHc services of the Synagogue naturally became the chief subject of Midrashic exposition, or formed the basis of homiletical midrashic discourses : viz., the Torah or Pentateuch in the first place, with the " five Megilloth " or " Scrolls " (Canticles, Ruth, Lamenta- tations, Ecclesiastes, and Esther) which are read through at five great festivals or fasts ; * and, lastly, the lections from the Prophets (the Haftaroth). The midrashim on the Pentateuch and the five Megilloth form a weU-defined group by themselves. The most widely known collection of this kind is the so-called " Midrash Rabbah," a full midrash on each of the Penta- teuchal Books, and each of the five " Scrolls." Though now always treated as a collective whole, and edited as such,* the so-called Midrash Rabbah is a very composite work. It consists of the following exegetical and homiletical midrashim : I. Bereshith Rabbah, an exegetical midrash on Genesis. This is the oldest and most important of the purely haggadic midrashim, and has quite a distinct » Cited in JE viii, 555. 2 Canticles is read at Passover (being aUegorically interpreted of the Exodus from Egypt), Ruth at the Feast of Weeks (Harvest), Lamentations on the 9th of Ab (in memory of the destruction of the Temple), Ecclesiastes at the feast of Tabernacles (Sukkoth) and Esther at Purim. See further ch. xix. ' A German translation of the entire Midrash Rabbah (Penta- teuch and Megilloth) was pubUshed in ten parts by Dr. A. Wiinsche Qxi Bibliotheca Rabbinica : Leipzig, 1880-1885). 7— (2417) 82 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP character of its own as compared with the other representatives of the latter class. In its original form it was, according to tradition, composed by R. Hoshaiah, in the third century, in Palestine. It was not improbably designed at first to form a supplement to the halakic midrashim Mekilta, Sifra and Sifre with which it would complete the cycle of Pentateuchal Books. According to Zunz it was edited in its present form (mainly) in the sixth century, but later interpolations have been added. The last section, from Genesis 48^* onward (begin- ning: "And Jacob lived " = Hebrew Wayechi : hence called "Wayechi Rabhah"), is usually regarded as a composition of much later date, according to Zunz of the eleventh or twelfth century.i A critical edition of the Hebrew text has been issued by J. Theodor. The following brief extract from this Midrash (part of the long comment on Gen. i*', " Let us make man, etc.") may be cited here by way of illustration : " R. Huna iie Elder of Sepphoris said : " While the angels were disputing and discussing with one another, the Holy One, praised be He, created him [man]." R. Huna in the name of R. Aibu said : " He created him with circumspection, for He created first the things necessary for his life." Then the angels spoke before the Holy One, praised be He : " Lord of the World, what is man that Thou art mindful of him, and the son of man that thou visitest him ? Why should this sorrow be created ? " Then He said to them : " Why have all sheep and oxen been created, the fowl of the air and the fish of the sea — why have these been created ? A castle with all good things, and there are no guests ; what pleasure has the owner who takes his fill ? " Then the angels said : " O Lord our Lord, how excellent is Thy name in all the earth ! Do what seems best to Thee." 1 This, however, is denied by Dr. M. Margel in his yaluable essay on Der Segen Jakobs (" The Blessing of Jacob ") as regards the sections dealing with Genesis 49. EXEGETICAL MIDRASHIM 83 2. Ekah Rabbati, an exegetical midrash on Lamenta- tions. This also is one of the oldest of the Pales- tinian midrashim. According to Zunz it was compiled in the second half of the seventh century. There are many passages in it which have parallels in the Jerusalem Talmud, derived in each case prol5ably from older common sources. The following extract is part of the comment on Lam. I' : How [Heb. Ekah] doth the city sit solitary. Three prophets used the expression. Ekah (" how ") in their prophecies — ^Moses, Isaiah, and Jeremiah — Moses said : " How can I myself alone bear . . . ." (Deut. ii*) ; Isaiah said, " How is the faithful city become an harlot!" (i"); Jeremiah said: "How doth she sit soUtary." R. Levi said : " It is hke a noble woman [matron] who had three friends : one of them saw her in her honour ; another saw her in her abandon; and the third saw her in her sorrow." Moses saw them [the Israelites] in their honour [their happiness] and said, " How can I myself alone bear " ; Isaiah saw them in their abandon, and said, " How is (she) become an harlot " ; Jeremiah saw them in their sorrow, and said : " How doth she sit solitary." The midrashim belonging to the " Rabbah " collection on the other four MegUloth are also exegetical in character : viz. : 3. Shir ha-Shirim Rabbah,^ on Canticles. At a very early date Canticles became the subject of midrashic exposition. R. Akiba interpreted it allegoricaUy of the relation between God and Israel. It was also applied allegoricaUy to the Exodus from Egypt. Many traces of this old allegorical interpretation survive in the present midrash (as also in single verses quoted in Mekilta, Sifre and the Talmud) . The midrash in its present form is a compilation of material of various date ' Sometimes also called, from its opening (Hebrew) words, Agadath ehazith. 84 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP and origin, and is dependent both on the Pesikta and Wayyikra Rabbah (see below) and also on the Jerasailem Talmud and Bereshith Rabbah. Two other Midrashim to Canticles have been recovered within recent years, viz., the Agadath Shir ha-Shirim, published by S. Schechter (Cambridge, 1896), and by S. Buber in Midrasch Suta pp. 1-41 (Berlin, 1894) ; and the Midrash Shir ha-shirim, published by Griinhut (1897). 4. Midrash Ruth, on Ruth {Ruth Rabbah). This is an interesting work, dependent on much the same authorities as the preceding, and of about the same date. It contains some interesting references to the Messiah, and its exegesis has many interesting points. The midrash on Ruth published by Buber in his Midrasch Suta (pp. 45-56)1 is an entirely different work. 5. Midrash Koheleth (or Koheleth Rabbah), on Ecclesi- astes. A comparatively late compilation ; it borrows material from the Jerusalem Talmud, introductory sections from Bereshith Rabbah, Ekah Rabbati, Wayyikra Rabbah, Pesikta, and Shir ha-Shirim Rabbah, and also from the Babylonian Talmud. The midrash on Koheleth published by Buber in Midrasch Suta (pp. 83-144) is apparently an extract from Midrash Koheleth Rabbah with additions. 6. Midrash Megillath Esther, on Esther, of Palestinian origin. It uses much the same sources as the preceding midrash (Koheleth). It contains an extract rfrom Josippon (tenth century) giving the story of Mordecai's dream and prayer, and of Esther's prayer: but this is probably an interpolation. Several midrashim are extant of this Book (as also more than one Targum, see eh. iv, § i above). It enjoyed great popularity in connexion with the popular feast of Purim. HOMILETIC MIDRASHIM 85 The remaining midrashim in the "Midrash Rabbah" collection are in the nature rather of homilies (sermons) than of set comments on the text of the particular books (verse by verse). The Scripture sections for the Sabbath or Festival were taken as subjects for haggadic discourses. These homilies consist usually of introductions (proems) followed by an exposition of the opening verses and verse-texts of the Scriptural lesson, and ending with " a Messianic or other comforting verse." They are thus mainly homUeticaL in character with an admixture of exegesis. They are as follows : — 7. Wayyikra Rabbah, on Leviticus, belonging to the older Midrashim. According to Zunz it was compiled in Palestine about the middle of the seventh century. It is distinguished by its frequent use of proverbial sayings. The following are some of the examples quoted : " If you have knowledge what do you lack ? If you lack knowledge what do you possess ? " " Who- ever lends on interest destroys his own and other property." " Whoever leases one garden eats birds ; whoever leases two gardens is eaten by birds." 8. Debarim Rabbah, on Deuteronomy. This midrash contains 25 homilies as well as two fragments of homilies on sections of Deuteronomy. According to Zunz it was compiled about the year 900. 9. Bemidbar Rabbah, on Numbers. This is a compo- site work. According to Zunz it is a combination of the work of two different authors, the later of whom lived in the twelfth century. The main part of the work is an extract (with some variations and additions) from Tanchuma (for which see below). 10. Shemoth Rabbah on Exodus. This midrash also appears to be composite in character. The first part down to Ex. 121 (where the Mekilta begins) may possibly be based on an earlier exegetical 86 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP midrash which continued Bereshith Rdbhah [from Gen. 47*^] Wayyechi Rdbhah. According to Zunz the complete midrash was only compiled in the eleventh or twelfth century. Thus the Midrash Rabbah to Exodus, though in the usual editions it immediately follows that to Genesis {Bereshith Rabbah) , " is separated from the latter by 500 years " (Zunz). The midrashim numbered i-io above constitute the so-called Midrash Rabbah (or Rabboth). In the printed editions they follow the Hebrew order of the Biblical Books (Genesis, Exodus, Leviticus, Numbers,. Deuter- onomy Canticles, Ruth, Lamentations, Ecclesiastes, Esther). C. The Haggadic [homiletic) Midrashim on the Pentateuchal and Prophetic Lessons. Besides the " Midrash Rabbah " there is an important group of homiletic midrashim based on the Scripture sections fixed as lessons for festival days and special Sabbaths, as well as for ordinary Sabbaths. Hence one of the names applied to some of these collections, PesiAte (pi. Pesiktoth "sections"). They are, in fact, sermons based on the lectionary of the Synagogue. As has already been pointed out, the "Midrash Rabbah " includes works of this kind (viz. Wayyikra Rabbah, Debarim Rabbah, Bemidbar Rabbah, and Shemoth Rabbah), and their general character has already been indicated above. The most important collections of this kind are the following : I. The Pesikta de-Rab Kahana (or Pesikta simply). The main body of this work is undoubtedly old ; it must rank with Bereshith Rabbah and Ekah Rabbati, and is possibly earlier than these in origin. It consists of 33 (or 34) homilies which are based on special Pentateuchal and Prophetic lessons. PESIKTA 87 It is a Palestinian work. Text by Buber (1868) ; German translation by Wiinsche (1885). The following passage from one of the homilies which is based on the words : " He hath clothed me ysdth garments of Salvation " (Is. 6ii»), will serve to illustrate the character of this midrash, and is also interesting as being founded on the chapter whence Christ took the text of His address in the S5niagogue at Nazareth. It may perhaps illustrate the character of contemporary Jewish sermons in the first century, A.D.i It is translated from pp. 149 a and b of Buber 's edition ( = p. 213 in Wiinsche's translation).^ " Seven garments the Holy One — blessed be He — has put on, and will put on from the time the world was created until the hour when He wiU punish the wicked Edom ( = the Roman Empire). When He created the world, He clothed Himself in honour and majesty, as it is said (Ps. 104.1) : ' Thou art clothed in honour and majesty.' Whenever He forgave Israel's sins He clothed Himself in white ; for we read (Dan. 7*) : 'His garment was white as snow.' When He punishes the people of the world, He puts on the garment of vengeance, as it is said (Is. 59. 1') : ' He put on the garments of vengeance for clothing and was clad with zeal as a cloak.' The sixth garment He will put on when the Messiah comes ; then He will clothe Himself in a garment of righteousness, for it is said : ' And He puts on righteousness as a breast- plate, and an helmet of salvation upon His head.' The seventh garment he wiU put on when He punishes Edom ; then He wiU clothe Himself in Adorn — i.e., red ; for it is said (Is. 632) : ' Wherefore art Thou red in Thine apparel ? ' But the garment which He will put upon the Messiah, this wiU shine far, from one end of the earth to the other ; for it is said- (Is. 61^") : ' As a bridegroom decketh himself with a garland.' And the IsraeUtes will partake of His fight, and will speak : ' Blessed is the hour when the Messiah shall come ! ' Blessed the womb out of which He shall come ! ' Blessed his contemporaries who are eye-witnesses ! ' Blessed the eye that is honoured with a sight of him. 1 Cf. F. DeUtzsch A Day in Capernaum (ET, p. iSSf.). ' It recurs with slight variations in Pesikta rabhati (ed. Friedmann, pp. 163b 164). 88 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP ' For the opening of his lips is blessing and peace ; ' His speech is a moving of the spirits ; ' The thoughts of his heart are confidence and cheer- fulness ; ' The speech of his tongue is pardon and forgiveness. ' His prayer is the sweet incense of offerings ; 'His petitions are holiness and purity. ' Oh, how blessed is Israel for whom such has been prepared ! ' For it is said (Ps. 31'*): 'How great is Thy good- ness which Thou hast laid up for them that fear Thee ! ' " 2. Pesikta rahbati. This collection also consists of homilies on the Pentateuchal and Prophetic lessons, etc. " Rabbati " = (" the larger ") was probably added to the title to distinguish it from the earlier Pesikta, with which it has affinities. It is considerably more extensive than the latter. According to Zunz it was compiled in the second half of the ninth century. In its extant form the text is probably defective. A critical edition was published by M. Friedmann at Vienna in 1880. No translation has yet appeared. A midrash on the Pentateuch and five megilloth by R. Tobia ben Elieser of Mainz (twelfth century), has acquired the nam.e of Pesikta sutarta ; but this work has nothing in common with the true Pesikta collections, and its name must have arisen by mistake. A Latin translation is given in Ugolini, Vols. XV and XVI. 3. Tanchuma Yelammedenu. The Midrash Tanchuma (so called because containing many homihes that originated with the famous Haggadist R. Tanchuma b. Abba of Palestine ^) covers the entire Pentateuch as divided into " sedarim " or portions. It also contains discourses for special feast-days and Sabbaths (like the Pesikta). The homilies of the Tanchuma are constructed according to a regular plan ; they consist of a halakic introduction, ' Flourished towards end of fourth centurj-. " YELAMMEDENU " 89 followed by several proems, exposition of the opening verses, and the Messianic conclusion. The name " Yelammedenu !" is derived from the open- ing formula " Yelammedenu rabbenu " ( = " our teacher teaches us ") with which the halakic exordium begins. By many old authors the midrash is cited under the name of " Tanchuma " (" Midrash Tanchuma "), and, as has already been pointed out, a number of the proems are actually assigned to this Rabbi (the formula " Thus R. Tanchuma expounded," is also appended to some of the larger sections). But the compiler of the Yalkut Shimeoni (for which see below) quotes from two distinct midrashic works, one under the name " Yelammedenu," the other under that of " Tanchuma." The original Tanchuma (I) is represented in Buber's critical edition {Midrash Tanchuma, 3 vols. Wilna, 1885), the text of which was collected from several MSS. This work, consisting of homilies on the weekly sections of the Pentateuch, is perhaps the oldest Haggadic collection extant, older even than Bereshith Rabbah which cites it. It was probably edited in its present form in the fifth century, before the com- pletion of the Babylonian Talmud. It is quoted in other midrashic collections (e.g. , in the Rabbah, Pesihta and Pesikta rabbati) and is of great importance. No translation of Buber's edition has yet appeared. "fhe original " Yelammedenu " is known only as embodied in the composite text of the ordinary editions of Tanchuma (the sections beginning " Yelammedenu rabbenu ") and in citations. The ordinary editions of Tanchuma represent a com- bination of Tanchuma (I) and the original " Yelam- medenu " with several additions (especially from the Babylonian Talmud). 90 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP 4. Aggadath Bereshith, a collection of homilies to a number of " portions " (sedarim) of Genesis. It contains 83 homilies, each of which (with two exceptions) " is in three sections, so arranged that the first one connects with a seder from Genesis, the second with a prophetic section (which may be regarded as the haftarah to this seder) and the third with a psalm (which, perhaps, was recited during worship on the Sabbath for which this seder was a lesson)." ^ The prophetic sections seem to follow a three-year cycle of sedarim, i.e., the ancient three-year lectionary which preceded the present one-year cycle of lessons.^ The best edition of the text is that of Buber (Cracow, 1903). It has not been translated. D. Other Important Midrashic Collections. Many midrashim are cited in old authors which have been lost. Besides those midrashic works which have already been enumerated, the following caU for mention : I. Pirke de Rabbi Eliezer or Baraitha de Rabbi Eliezer, a Haggadic work in 54 chapters. It is neither homiletic nor exegetic in character, but is a mid- rashic narrative of the more important events recorded in the Pentateuch (the story of creation, the history of the patriarchs and the Mosaic age). It is similar in general character to the Book of Jubilees, which gives a haggadic version of th^ Biblical Genesis. It contains much interesting eschatological material. The " Eliezer " of the title is the famous R. Eliezer b. Hyrcanus (end of first century, a.d.) ; but the present work cannot have been composed, according to Zunz, before the eighth century. The author was a Palestinian. • JE VIII, 563. 2 See further ch. xviii on this point. MIDRASHIC LITERATURE 91 A Latin translation was published by Vorstius, under the title Capitula R. EKeser ex RehvcBO in Lafinum iranslata (Lugd. Bat. 1644). 2. Midrash Tehillim, midrash on the Psalms. This collection has been known since the eleventh century. (It is also sometimes called Aggadath or H aggadath Tehillim ; and, from its opening words, " Shocher tob.") The true midrash covers only Pss. 1-118, but an appendix covering the rest was compiled later, and appears in the printed edition. The work appears to be a composite one, and includes some very ancient material. It was compiled in Palestine. It is partly homiletic, partly exegetic in character, and contains much interesting matter (in the shape of stories, legends, parables, proverbs, etc.). A valuable edition of the Hebrew text was pubhshed by Buber, Midrasch Tehillim : Schocher Tob : (Wilna, 189 1), and a German translation of this text by Dr. A. Wiinsche {Midrasch Tehillim : 2 vols. Trier) in 1892-3. 3. Yalkut Shimeoni,^ an immense thesaurus of mid- rashic material covering the entire text of the Old Testament. It is a work similar in character to the patristic catence, consisting of extracts drawn from various midrashim, arranged under the separate passages commented on. The Yalkut is valuable for critical purposes, in fixing the readings of midrashic texts. Its citations cover nearly the whole range of the Talmudic-midrashic literature ; but it does not quote Shemoth and Bemidhbar in the Midrash Rabbah, nor the midrashim to Ecclesi- astes and Esther in the same collection. The editio princeps is that of Salonica (1526-27 ; 1 Yalkut =" coUection" (the same word is rendered "scrip" in I Sam 17*°). Yalkut SMmeom = " Simeon's Collection." Who the Simeon referred to was is unknown. 92 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP 1521) : a recent edition appeared at Warsaw, (1876-77) . A translation of the Yalkut on Zechariah by E. G. King was published at Cambridge in 1882. 4. Yalkut ha-Makiri, a somewhat similar collection to the above (but only covering certain books of the Bible), made by Machir b. Abba Mari (about whom nothing is known). It is probably a later work than the Yalkut Shimeoni. Here again there is much valuable material for text- critical purposes. The following parts of this midrash have been published: viz., on the Psalms (ed. by Buber, 1899), on Isaiah (ed. Spira, Berlin, 1894), and on Proverbs (ed. Griinhut, 1902). 5. Midrash ha-Gadol, an even more comprehensive collection than the above, containing quotations from the Targumim, the mystical books and the Rabbinical writings (all of which are ignored in the Yalkuts), as well as citations from the earlier literature. The part on Genesis has been published by Schechter (Cambridge, 1902). III. Some Characteristics of the Midrashic Litera- ture AND SOME New Testament Illustrations. From what has been said above some idea of the extent and importance of the midrashic hterature wiU have been gained by the reader. The study and cultivation of the Haggadah which finds its freest expression in the midrash has enjoyed great popularity at various times among the Jews, and in its various forms has been developed with marvellous energy and ingenuity. Parables, stories, maxims, proverbs, folk-lore, fables and obiter dicta of all kinds find untrammelled expression in this vast collection. The haggadic midrash thus afforded an outlet for the freest expression of individual opinions, and is warm with human interest. The exegetical mid- rashim possess unique importance for elucidating the history of Rabbinical exegesis (the artificial methods of RABBINICAL EXEGESIS 93 interpretation embodied in R. Ishmael's thirteen rules, etc.). The midrash (especially in its halakic portions) is largely founded on these systems (the rival systems of R. Ishmael and Akiba were, later, combined). An example may here be cited which possesses a curious interest. It is a midrashic passage assigned, on the authority of the famous Spanish Dominican monk Raymundus Martini (thirteenth century), to the well known Galilean Rabbi Jose (second century a.d.),i who in it draws a parallel and a contrast between the suffering Messiah of Isa. 53 and the first Adam, which irresistibly reminds us of Rom. 5 ^•"". Here it is cited as exemphfying the Rabbinical method of reasoning a minori ad majus. It runs as follows : — Deduce, moreover, a conclusion as to the merit of King Messiah and the reward of the righteous from that first Adam : the latter transgressed but one divine comman,d, and see ! with how many deaths , this transgression has been punished again and again in him and the following generations. Which power, then, is the greater, that of goodness or of retribution ? The power of goodness has the predominance. For King Messiah, who has borne in himself sufferings and anguish for transgressors, as it is said (Isa. 535), He was wounded for our transgressions — how much more will his sufferings be meritorious for aU generations, as it is written (Isa. S3*) : the Lord laid on him the iniquity of us all.^ Of pufe Haggadah there is a striking instance in i Cor. 10* (" And they drank of a spiritual rock that followed them," etc.). Here S. Paul is obviously alluding to the well mentioned in Num. 21^*, which early became the • Raymundus cites the passage (in Hebrew in his Pugio Fidei) as from the halakic midrash Sifre. But as it stands, it cannot be traced in the printed editions of Sifre. Like other citations in the Pugio it probably depends upon a MS. or MSS. no longer extant. Cf. F. Delitzsch, in his Hebrew translation of Romans (Leipzig, 1870), p. 82 f. * It should be said here that the Messianic application of Isa. 52" — 53 was certainly not common in Jewish circles in the time of Christ, nor probably was it the earUest. The passage has been interpreted in Jewish circles mainly as having a national reference. 94 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP subject of legendary Haggadah. In the Midrash Rabbah on Num. i^ it is thus described : — They had the well through the merit of Miriam, as it is written : " And Miriam died, and was buried there." And what follows immediately after ? " And the congregation had no water." And how was the well formed ? It was a crag hke a beehive, and it used to roll along and accompany them on their journejdngs. And when the standards were pitched, and the Tabernacle rested, the crag came and settled in the court of the Tent of Meeting, and the princes came and stood beside it, and said " Spring up, O well," and then it would spring up. ' One other instructive example may here be quoted. Ps. iio^ is apphed in the Gospels (Matt. 22** and parallels) and in other parts of the New Testament to the Messiah ; and it is implied there that this interpretation was the one generally accepted at the time among the Jews. Later, however, this view was displaced in Jewish circles in favour of others, more especially of one which referred it to Abraham (so Rashi). But the effort to suppress the old exegesis was not entirely successful. Thus in the midrash on the Psalms, to Ps. 18**, the old inter- pretation reappears, in a comment on the words, " Thy right hand hath upholden me." R. Judan in the name of R. Chama says : that in the time to come the Holy One — blessed be He ! — ^will make King Messiah sit at His right hand, as it is said (Ps. no'). The Lord said unto my lord sit thou on my right hand side, etc. The midrashic literature is thus of the highest impor- tance for elucidating the exegetical tradition. This is a matter which the New Testament student cannot afford to ignore. For it is a fact that the New Testament writers in the use they make of the ancient Scriptures, do not usually depend immediately upon the Old Testa- ment text. Their employment of Old Testament texts and Old Testament language is often conditioned by the influence of later Jewish exegesis. One notable feature » See further an article by Prof. Driver " Notes on Three Passages in S. Paul's Epistles," in Expositor, Third series. Vol. IX, pp. 15 f. (1889). PARABLES IN MIDRASHIC LITERATURE 95 in this connexion is the proof-text of Scripture that is regularly cited in the midrash to support a statement— in exactly the same way the compiler of the First Gospel quotes from the Old Testament texts in support of the messianic character of the Christian Messiah (cf. Matt. i23. 26,18,18 23^ etc.). In its vivid use of metaphor, simile, and proverb the midrash, though its form is that of pure prose, is invested witha certain poetic quahty . These points are sufficiently illustrated in the extracts given above.^ It is, however, the parable — which may be regarded as the regular vehicle of didactic poetry in post-Biblical Jewish Literature — m common with the homily, that has assumed its most artistic form and been most richly developed in the midrashim. With some illustrations of this product of the Haggadah this section must conclude.2 The following extremely clever parable is attributed to Rabbi Judah the Prince (called simply "Rabbi"), the compiler of the Mishnah (c. 190 a.d.). Antoninus (i.e., the Roman Emperor) asked Rabbi how there could be punishment in the life beyond ? For since body and soul after their sepyaration could not have committed sin they could blame each other for the sins committed on earth. Rabbi answered him by the following parable : A certain king had a beautiful garden in which was excel- lent fruit : and over it he appointed two watchmen one blind and the other lame. The lame man said to the bhnd one, I see exquisite fruit in the garden. Carry me thither that I may get it : and we will eat it together. The blind man consented and both ate of the fruit. After some days » There are also the Beast Fables of the Talmud and Midrash (most of them borrowed directly or indirectly from India). Cf. Abrahams' Short Hist. J L, p. 34 f. on this point. ' For a full and valuable discussion of the early Rabbinical Parables, cf., P. Fiebig, Altjildische Gleichnisse und die Gleich- nisse Jesu (Leipzig, 1904). Reference may also be made to Die Konigsgleichnisse des Midrasch, by Dr. I. Ziegler (Breslau, 1903). 96 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the lord of the garden came and asked the watchmen concern- ing the fruit. Then the lame man said, " As I have no legs I could not go to it, so it is not my fault " ; and the blind man said, " I could not even see it, so it is not my fault." What did the lord of the garden do ? He made the bhnd man carry the lame and thus passed judgment on them both. So God will replace the souls in their bodies and will punish both together for their sins. {Sank. 91. a.b.). The following have direct parallels in the New Testament : ^ Jochanan b. Zakkai illustrates the necessity of daily conversion and constant readiness to appear before God in Heaven by the following parable : A king invited his servants to a banquet, without stating the exact time at which it would be given. Those who were wise remembered that all things are ever ready in the palace of a king, and they arrayed themselves and sat by the palace gate awaiting the call to enter, while those who were fooUsh continued their customary occupations, saying, "A banquet requires great preparation." When the king called his servants to the banquet, those who were wise appeared in clean raiment and well adorned, while those who were foolish came in soiled and ordinary garments. The king took pleasure in seeing those who were wise, but was full of anger at those who were foolish, saying that those who had come prepared for the banquet should sit down and eat and drink, but that those who had not properly arrayed themselves should stand and look on. (Compare in the New Testament, Matt. 22^""^^ ; 25*"" ; Luke 12.3") Another parable (from the Palestinian Talmud) which forms a striking parallel to a New Testament one is the following : When R. Chiyya's son R. Abin died at the early age of twenty-eight R. Zera delivered the funeral oration which he couched in the form of the following parable : " A king had a vineyard, for which he engaged many labourers, one of whom was especially apt and skilful. What did the king do ? He took this labourer from his work, and walked through the garden conversing with him. When 1 These axe cited here as they appear in ]E s.v. Parable ix, Si3f- THE PRAYER-BOOK 97 the labourers came for their hire in the evening the skUful labourer appeared among them and received a full day's wages from the king. The other labourers were very angry at this, and said, ' We have toiled the whole day, while this man has worked but two hours. Why does the king give him the full hire even as to us ? ' The king said to them, ' Why are you angry ? Through his skill he has done more in the two hours than you have done all day.' So it is with R. Abin ChijTya. In the twenty-eight years of his life he has learned more than others learn in loo years. Hence he has fulfilled his life-work, and is entitled to be called to Paradise earlier than others from his work on earth : nor will he miss aught of his reward." (Jer. Ber. II, 5c.). The point of the parable in Matt. 20 ^'^^ is, of course, quite different. It illustrates, among other things, the doctrine that non- Jewish Christians are to be treated as equal with Jews in privilege in the Kingdom of Heaven. IV. The Prayer-Book. [Literature. — Lewis N. Dembitz, Jewish Services in Synagogue and Home (Philadelphia, 1898). The art. "Prayer Books" in JE Vol. x, pp. 17 iff (with the authorities cited). Cf. also Schechter's Studies in Judaism, ch. X ("The Hebrew Collection of the British Museum"); the catalogues of Hebrew MSS. of the British Museum (by Rev. G. Margohouth) and the Bodleian (by Dr. A. Neubauer) Libraries (s.v. Liturgies) ; and two articles by G. H. Box on "The Jewish Prayer Book" in the Expository Times, Vol. xv (April and May, 1904). See further ch. xvii of the present work.] (i) Introductory. The liturgical literature of the Jews may be regarded as one of the " sources " of Judaism. Although the Jewish Liturgy is itself largely the product and deposit of tradition, it yet in its embodied form, and els a factor in. pubHc worship, exercised, and continues to exercise, a profound influence in the development and maintenance of typical. Jewish character and piety. The main out- lines of the Jewish Liturgy are fixed, and go back to a considerable antiquity. For some discussion of this point, and of the character and liturgical use of the 8— (2417) 98 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP synagogue-prayers generally, the reader is referred to another chapter of the present work.^ Here we confine ourselves to the task of indicating briefly some of the more important collections of the prayers (MSS. and printed editions) with reference more particularly to the different uses or " minhagim." * Within the ranks of the orthodox Jews there is an important division, which depends not upon recently developed differences of opinion and taste, but upon the effects produced by living in communities widely separated and influenced by widely different historical conditions during many centuries of the past. According to this division, the Jews fall into two main classes, namely, those of the Sefardim and the Ashkenazim. Now, by the mediaeval Jews, the land Sepharad mentioned in Obadiah, vs. 20, was identified with Spain, while Ash- kenaz, one of the descendants of Japheth (Gen. lo^), was identified with Germany, probably because of the similarity in sound of the name Gomer (the father of Ashkenaz) with that of the Teutonic Fatherland.^ Hence Ashkenaz is the mediaeval Jewish name for Ger- many, and Sepharad of Spain ; and the Jews of German- and Slavonic-speaking countries are called Ashkenazim, whUe the Spanish and Portuguese Jews are named Sefardim. The Ashkenazim or German-speaking Jews have for centuries used among themselves a German jargon, the commonest form of Yiddish, which is derived from the dialect of the Rhine ; and this form of speech prevails even among those who live in Slavonic-speaking countries. The reason is that the Jews of Austria- Hungary, and Poland (as well as of Germany proper) are the descendants of those who were originally settled in the Rhine valley, having overflowed into these countries ' Cf. ch. xvii. » The following paragraph is reproduced from the art. (by G. H, Box) in the Expository Times (xv, 314 f.) referred to above, ' See JE i, 193 (s.v, " Ashkenaz "). ASHKENAZIM AND SEFARDIM 99 from the original settlement, and having carried their German speech with them. The original colony is said to have consisted of Galileans who were deported to the lower Rhine in the reign of the emperor Hadrian. On the other hand, the Jews of Spain and Portugal have overflowed into Provence, Italy, North Africa, and Turkey. Their diffusion was especially stimulated by the expulsion from Spain in 1492, which was also responsible for the founding of a Sefardic settlement in Holland, and from thence later in London. Now the Ashkenazim and Sefardim differ on the following points : (i) in their pronunciation of Hebrew ; the former reproducing, to a large extent, the provincial peculiarities of GaUlee, the latter approximating more nearly to the classical diction of Judaea ; (2) in the intonation of the prayers and Bible lessons : " the Sefardim have pretty much maintained the old oriental chants, which move in a very narrow compass, while the Germans and Poles have allow.ed a strong European element to enter their religious music " ; ^ and (3) there are differences, on the whole, by no means inconsiderable, between the service-books of the two divisions. The importance of these, however, must not be exaggerated. In the oldest elements of the Liturgy they are in essential agreement — the Sefardic versions being distinguished by a marked tendency to diffuseness and oriental exuberance of expression (e.g., the heaping up of synonyms). It is in later additions to the Liturgy that the two branches most markedly differ. The German Prayer-Book seems ultimately to have been derived from Tiberias, in Galilee ; that of the Sefardim from the Babylonian Schools (in the ninth century A.D.). The technical term for these varieties of liturgical form and usage is minhag (= custom). Thus " the German minhag " and " the Portuguese minhag " are spoken of. The former is divided into two varieties, 1 Dembitz, Jewish Services in Synagogue and Home, p. 15. 100 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP namely, the Ashkenazic minhag proper (that of Western Germany) and the PoUsh minhag (that of Eastern Ger- many and of the countries farther east and south-east).^ Modem movements of population have in many cases brought Jews of these originally separate commimities into close proximity. But in these cases the old distinctions are still maintained, and so we find German synagogues in Jerusalem, and Portuguese synagogues in London, Paris, Hamburg, and Vienna, side by side with the synagogues that follow the minhag of the original settlements of the places in question. It ought here to be mentioned that the Jews of the East (Egypt, Palestine, and Arabia) had originally a minhag different from those of the Ashkenazim and Sefardim ; but after Maimonides' stay in Egypt, and also owing to the influx of refugees from Spain after the expulsion, the Sefardic Liturgy displaced the earlier ritual in these countries. Among the Jews of one district of Arabia, however — namely, Yemen — many of the peculiar features of the earlier and original usage still survive, which are of great historical interest and value. Of even greater import- ance from the historical point of view are the Liturgy of the Karaites — a Jewish sect in the Crimea, who repudiate rabbinical traditions — and that of the little community of Samaritans which still survives at Nablus, the ancient Shechem, in Palestine. There is also a mystical Jewish sect, numbering some five hundred thousand, scattered about districts of Poland, Russia, Northern Hungary, and Roumania, known as the Chasidim, or " Pious," who have a Prayer-Book of their own. This, however, is mainly based on the Sefardic minhag. This sect, while not denying the binding force of rabbinical * The term " minhag " is also used in a wider sense to denote any variety of local usage or custom in civil hfe. The Mishnic rule is : Everything according to the custom (minhag) of the country (nanon Jn3»3 Sdh, Bafta Metzia, ix, i). SIDDURIM 101 ordinances, attaches a higher value to the esoteric teach- ings of the Kabbalah (mystical speculation) than to the Talmud. The collected form of the prayers for weekdays, Sab- baths, holy days, festivals, and fasts is usually termed "Seder TefiUoth " ("Order of Prayers") or simply " Siddur " (" Order "). Owing to their bulk it became necessary, in course of time, to separate the fuU " order " forJFestivals from that of ordinary weekdays and Sabbaths. Such collected form of the Festival Prayers is termed " Machzor " (" Cycle ") as distinguished from the smaller collection of daily. Sabbath, and occasional prayers. (ii) Earliest Compilations. 1. The earliest known compilation of prayers forming a Jewish Book of Common Prayer is that of AmramGaon,^ referred to as the " Seder (or Siddur) Rab Amram " (Amram was principal of the Rabbinical Academy of Matah Mechasya 846-864). This "Seder" formed the basis of all subsequent Jewish Prayer-Books (both Sefardic and Ashkenazic). A printed edition of Amiram's work was published for the first time by N. N. Coronel at Warsaw, in the year 1865 from a MS. in two parts (but much interpolated.) 2. Saadya Gaon, principal of the academy of Sura (928-942) also compiled a prayer-book, a manuscript of which was found at his birthplace, Al-Fayyum in Egypt. 3. Moses Maimonides (1135-1204) at the end of the second book of his famous Yad ha-chazakah {" The mighty hand ") gives the order of prayers for the whole year in 1 " Gaon " (= " Excellency ") is an official title applied to the heads of the Babylonian School at Sura (or Mechasya), in the eighth century. The " Gaon " was a sort of Grand Rabbi who was consulted by Jews from all over the world by letter. Volumes of their official " replies " (" Responsa ") are still extant. The last Gaon was R. Hai who died in 1040. 102 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the section entitled " Seder Tefilloth Kol ha-Shanah " (" Order of Prayers for the whole year "). It coincides, of course, with the Sefardic minhag. The text with a German translation was published by Leon J. Mandelstamm at S. Petersburg in 1851. 4. Owing to his great reputation and influence Maimo- nides, when he left Spain for Egypt, was able to impose the Spanish (Sefardic) ritual on the S5niagogues of the East. A word should be added here regarding another Spanish Jew Abudraham of Sevilla. He wrote (circa 1340) a description of and commentary on the Synagogue services of the time as they were carried on in Spain, which is of great value. 5. The Machzor Vitry. A famous collection of prayers, covering the complete cycle of the year (" machzor "= " cycle ") was put forth in the year 1208 by Rabbi Simcha of Vitry in France. This is the most important of all the early compilations ; it is " ten times as volumi- nous as the 'Seder Rab Amram," and forms the basis of the Ashkenazic minhag. It was first edited (from several MSS.) by Simeon Hurwitz, and published for the " Mekitze Nirdamim " Society (Berlin, 1893). (iii) Important Printed Editions (Orthodox). The first printed Jewish Prayer-Book was issued in i486 (Soncino) ; the earliest to contain the Sefardic rite was published at Venice in 1524. This is not the place for a detailed list of the printed editions of the Hebrew Daily Prayer-Books, and the collections of Festival Prayers (the Machzorim). The following are the most important for critical and practical purposes. The edition of the Machzor (Ashkenazic rite) edited by Benjamin Wolf Heidenheim (RSdelheim, 1800). In this edition the text of the prayers, which had become very corrupt, was purified and vastly improved. The PRINTED EDITIONS OF THE PRAYER-BOOK 103 greatest advance, however, was made by the pubhcation (at Rodelheim in 1868) of SeHgman Baer's Abodaih Israel. Here the text is corrected, and the sources of the prayers traced in a valuable commentary (in Hebrew). The following editions of the Hebrew text accompanied by EngUsh translations are practically important : " The Authorized Daily Prayer-Book of the United Hebrew Congregations of the British Empire : with a new trans- lation by the Rev. S. Singer " (i vol. now issued by Eyre and Spottiswoode : often reprinted) ; " Service of the Synagogue : a new edition of the Festival Prayers with an English translation in prose and verse " (London, Routledge : in course of publication).^ The Sefardic rite has been issued in " Forms of Prayer ; edited, with an English translation," by D. A. De Sola (5 vols., i860) : revised edition by Dr. Moses Gaster (1900). (iv) Printed Editions of Other Rites. 1. The Siddur of the Jews of Southern Arabia (Yemen). This was published in Jerusalem in 2 vols, in 1894 and 1898, and in Vienna in 1896. This rite agrees partly with the Sefardic, partly with the Ashkenazic minhag. The language of the prayers is partly Hebrew, partly Aramaic and Arabic. The collection is of great value for liturgical study (see Bacher in JQR, xiv. pp. 581-621). From the same quarter is also derived The Haggadah according to the rite of Yemen, edited by W. H. Greenberg (1896), where (in the introduction) much interesting information is given on the liturgical literature of the Yemenite Jews. 2. One of the most interesting additions to Jewish Liturgica in recent times is the Seder Tefilloth ha-Falashim, the prayer-book of the Falasha Jews of Abyssinia (Ethiopic text with Hebrew translation by Joseph 1 This is a most beautiful and valuable edition. At present (1907) 3 vols, have been issued containing the prayers for the Day of Atonement and New Year. 104 SYNAGOGUE RFXIGION AND WORSHIP Halevy, Paris, 1877). The prayers here embodied were compiled in the thirteenth century, and include a prayer by the angels, and a prayer at sacrifices. 3. Another Liturgy, containing some very ancient elements is that of the Samaritans (an edition containing the Samaritan text transliterated into Hebrew was published by M. Heidenheim, Leipsic, 1885 ; a critical, text is being prepared for the Clarendon (Oxford) Press by A. E. Cowley). In this connexion also should be mentioned " La Liturgie Samaritane, Office du Soir des Fetes," by S. Rappoport (Paris, 1900). 4. Various editions of the Karaite Liturgy have been published ; one in 3 vols. Chufut-Kale, 1806 ; one in 4 vols. Eupatoria, 1836 ; one in 4 vols. Vienna, 1854. The latest edition of their Siddur is much abridged (i vol.) . It was edited for the congregation of Karaite Israelites in Egypt and published at Budapest in 1903. 5. The Reform Ritual. As a writer in the Jewish Encycloj) cedia remarks,' " Liturgy was and is still the field on which the different parties within Judaism — Orthodox, Progressive, and Reform^fight their battles with more or less bitterness." The first Reform Prayer-Book was the Gehetbuch issued in Hebrew and German at Hamburg in 1818, for the use of the " New Temple " congregation. It was edited by S. I. Frankel and I. M. Bresselau, and its publication at once provoked a storm, and was denounced by the official heads of the Jewish Community. The principal changes introduced were the abridgment of the Hebrew text, and the ehmination of all references to a personal Messiah, and belief in the restoration of the Jewish State and the Temple Sacrifices. A less radical " Gebetbuch " (Prayer-Book) on Reform lines was issued by Geiger at a later date (Breslau, 1854). In England a Reform-Prayer Book was published in 1841 1 Vol. viii, p. 140 (s.v. Liturgies). LATER SOURCES OF JUDAISM 105 for the West London Synagogue of British Jews, by D. W. Marks. This also was interdicted by the official heads of the Jewish Community in London. In America the Reform Movement has made considerable progress ; numerous prayer-books on reform lines have there been issued since 1850— the standard one now being " The Union Prayer-Book for Jewish Worship," edited and published by the Central Conference of American Rabbis : 2 vols. Cincinnati, 1895. " In 1905, ten years after its publication, ' The Union Prayfer-Book ' had been adopted by 183 Reform congregations, and 62,224 copies had been issued" {JE, x, 180). ***** Appendix : Later Sources. It must not be supposed that with the close of the Rabbinical period the sources from which the religion of the Synagogue drew its inspiration ceased. A modern Jewish writer expresses what is regarded as axiomatic among Jews when he says that " to assign limits to the development of Judaism, and to assert that the communi- cation of divine truth to Israel ceased with Moses or with Malachi or with the close of the Talmud, is to ignore the readings not only of reason, but of history." ^ Indeed, the Rabbis themselves recognized this when they declared that " to Moses every ordinance was revealed that was to be instituted in after times, however remote, and that the doctrine of any teacher, however obscure he might be, was to be venerated in the same degree as it had been taught by the prophets, or even by Moses himself." ^ The popular adage, " From Moses to Moses (i.e., Mai- monides) there hath been none like unto Moses," points 1 Morris Joseph; Judaism as Creed and Life, p. 30 (London, 1903). 2 Jer. Megillah, i, 7, Talm. Bab. Megillah 19^ Sifre to Deut. II", quoted by Morris Joseph, ibid. pp. 34, 35. 106 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP in the same direction. From the tenth century onwards writers of great note have issued works which have ever since been regarded as authoritative sources of Judaism. Our brief review of the sources of Judaism would be incomplete without some reference to these writers and their works. The earliest name that claims attention in this connexion is that of Saadyah ben Joseph (892-942) spoken of as " the founder of scientific activity in Judaism " ; his most important work entitled Eniunoth we-Deoth (" Truths and Dogmas"), was written originally in Arabic.^ It is looked upon as a work of high authority. The next name of importance to be met with is that of Bachya ben Joseph, who lived in the former half of the eleventh century, and was the author of the first Jewish system of ethics. His work Choboth Halehaboth " (" Duties of the hearts," written in Arabic, but early translated into Hebrew) is very valuable, as in it the writer insists on the need of fulfilling the spirit of the Law rather than its letter. " Bachya felt impelled to make an attempt to present the Jewish faith as being essentially a great spiritual truth founded on Reason, Revelation (the written Law), and Tradition, all stress being at the same time laid on the wiUingness and the joyful readiness of the God-loving heart to perform life's duties." * It was a beautiful ideal, put forth, as it seems, on account of the sad non- realization of it on the part of his contemporaries. But the name of greatest weight in post-Rabbinical times is that of Moses Maimonides. He is popularly known as " RaMBaM," abbreviated from Rabbi Moses Ben Maimon (1135-1204). He was a most voluminous writer, but was regarded with disfavour in his day, for his teach- ing ran counter to Rabbinic orthodoxy. In his most ' No English translation has been published of this work, but there is a German one by Furst (Leipzig, 1845). ' No English translation has, we believe, been published. » JE, ii, 447. MAIMONIDES 107 celebrated work, Moreh Nebuchim (" Guide of the Per- plexed "),' he sought to spiritualize what he regarded as the secrets of Scripture after the allegorical manner of the Alexandrines ; his attempt to show that Judaism was " the very expression of human intelligence, and that there is nothing in Scripture or Rabbinical hterature, if properly explained, that contradicts true philosophy," involved him in difficulties with the orthodox ; it was not, of course, the thesis itself that was objected to, but that which its working out and elucidation involved. But in spite of this his influence on Judaism has been more pro- found than that of any other teacher in post-biblical times. This is most strikingly illustrated by the fact that the only approach to a Creed which the Jewish Church possesses emanates from Maimonides. In his Commentary on the Mishnah he emunciates thirteen " Principles of faith," and these Principles [Ikkarim) have been accepted by orthodox Judaism as its quasi-official expression of belief. They have been embodied in the Jewish Prayer- Book in two different forms, one in prose and the other in poetry. Concerning these thirteen Principles Maimonides himself says : " Read them again and again, and study them well, and let not your heart entice you to believe that you have comprehended their full meaning after having read them a few times ; you would then be in a great error, for I have not written down what occurred to my mind at first thought. I first thoroughly studied and examined what I was going to write, compared the various doctrines, the correct ones and the incorrect ones, and when I arrived at what we ought to accept as our Creed, I was able to » Originally written in Arabic, but translated into Hebrew in the year 1200, by Samuel Tibbon. An English version, translated from the Arabic, has been published by Friedlander (London, new ed, 1904) ; a French one by Solomon Munk (Paris, 1856- 1866), and a German one, of which the three parts were issued respectively by Fiirstenthal (Krotoschin, 1839), Stern (Vienna, 1864) and Scheyer (Frankfurt, 1838). 108 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP prove it by arguments and reasonings." ^ As these " Thirteen Principles " form the unofficially recognized Creed of Judaism, they will not inappropriately find a place here : — ^ 1. I believe with perfect faith that the Creator, blessed be His name, is the Author and Guide of every- thing that has been created, and that He alone has made, does make, and will make all things. 2. I believe with perfect faith that the Creator, blessed be His name, is a Unity, and that there is no unity in any manner Hke unto His, and that He alone is our God, who was, is, and wiU be. 3. I believe with perfect faith that the Creator, blessed be His name, is not a body, and that He is free from all the accidents of matter, and that He has not any form whatsoever. 4. I believe with perfect faith that the Creator, blessed be His name, is the first and the last. 5. I believe with perfect faith that to the Creator, blessed be His name, and to Him alone^ it is right to pray, and that it is not right to pray to any being besides Him. 6. I believe with perfect faith that all the words of the prophets are true. 7. I believe with perfect faith that the prophecy of Moses our teacher, peace be unto him, was true, and that he was the chief of the prophets, both of those that preceded and of those that followed him. 8. I believe with perfect faith that the whole Law, how in our possession, is the same that was given to Moses our teacher, peace be unto him. 9. I believe with perfect faith that the Law will not • Quoted by M. Friedlander in The Jewish Religion, p. 20 (second ed., London, 1900). » See Singer, pp. 89, 90. THE THIRTEEN PRINCIPLES OF FAITH 109 be changed, and that there will never be any other law from the Creator, blessed be His name. ID. I believe with perfect faith that the Creator, blessed be His name, knows every deed of the children of men, and all their thoughts, as it is said. It is He that fashioneth the hearts of them all, that giveth heed to all their deeds. 11. I believe with perfect faith that the Creator, blessed be His name, rewards those that keep His Commandments, and punishes those that transgress them. 12. I beheve with perfect faith in the coming of the Messiah, and, though He tarry, I will wait daily for His coming. 13. I believe with perfect faith that there will be a resurrection of the dead at the time when it shall please the Creator, blessed be His name, and exalted be the remembrance of Him for ever and ever. The next authoritative writer that claims attention is Jehudah Hallevi (1085-1140 or later) ; his work Kuzari ^ is that which is of chief importance in the present con- nexion ; the main principle of this is to show that revealed religion is superior to natural religion ; for " the airti of ethical training, which is the object of religion, is not to create in man good intentions, but to cause him to perform good deeds. This aim cannot be attained by philosophy, which is undecided as to the nature of good, but can be secured by religious training, which teaches what is good. As science is the sum of all the particles of truth found by successive generations, so religious training is based upon a set of traditions ; in other words, history is an important factor in the development of human culture 1 A Grerman translation was issued by David Cassel in 1869 (Leipzig) ; an English translation by Dr. Hartwig Hirschfield (London, 1905). 110 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP and science." ^ The work, which is in the form of an " Apologia " of Judaism, is called " Kuzari " because it was first written for the benefit of the ruler of the Chazar kingdom; it defends and justifies Judaism as against Philosophy, Christianity and Mohammedanism. One other name deserves mention, Nachmanides (1194- 1270) ; the main interest of his activity lies in the fact that it was directed against the tendency among earlier authorities, Mke Maimonides, to allegorize the biblical narratives and to refuse credit to the miraculous element even in the Talmud. " Against this tendency Nach- manides strove, and, as usual in such cases, went to the other extreme, not even allowing the utterances of the immediate disciples of the Geonim to be questioned. With these ultra-conservative ideas it was natural that in the struggle between Mairnonists and anti-Maimonists Nachmanides' sympathies should go with the latter." * Respect for authority and tradition were the guiding principles of the teaching of Nachmanides. See further, Schechter's Studies, pp. 120 ff. ' JE, vii, 351. See, too, a fine appreciation of the person and work of Jehudah Hallevi, by Joseph Jacobs in his Jewish Ideals, pp. 103-134 (London, 1896). 2 JE, ix, 87. CHAPTER VI. Historical Sketch of the Divisions within the Jewish Body. Thb Dispersion — The Pharisees — ^The Scribes — ^The Sadducees — The Essenes — The Karaites — The Chassidim — The " Reform " Jews. [Literature :— Wellhausen Pharisder und Sadducder (1874) ; Lightfoot Colossians and Philemon, pp. 349-419 (1884) ; Schiirer op. cit. II. ii. pp. 1-43, 188-327 ; Weber op. cit. pp. 125-147 ; Bertiiqlet Die Stellung der Israeliten zu den Fremde^n (1896) ; Holtzmann Die jiidische Schriftgelehrsamkeit zur Zeit Jesu (1901) ; G. Holscher Der Sadduzdismus (1906) ; Holtzmann Neutestamentliche Zeitgeschichte, pp. 200-221, 233-273. Bousset Die Religion des Judenthums im Neutestamentlichen Zeitaltey, pp. 161-184, 405-443 (1903); Harnack Expansion of Christianity (Engl. Trans.) I, i-ioi (1904) ; Friedlander Die religiosen Bewegungen innerhalb des Judenthums im Zeitalter Jesu, pp. 235-264 (1905) ; the articles on the various subjects treated, in PRE, RE, Hastings' DB, JE.-] I. The Dispersion. In the book of Esther we read as follows : And Human said unto King Ahasuerus, there is a certain people scat- tered abroad and dispersed among the peoples in all the provinces of thy kingdom ; and their laws are diverse from those of every people ; neither'^eep they the king's laws : therefore it is not for the king'sfproflt to suffer them, 38 ; in 8' there is mention made of the Jews in the provinces which are from India unto Ethiopia, an hundred twenty and seven provinces (cf. 9^°, lo'-). These "dispersed" Jews formed the greater "part of the nation, which was represented in Palestine by the much smaller portion of those who, under Cyrus, had returned from the Babylonian captivity. When the Persian Empire was conquered by Alexander the Great, the chief way in which the dispersed Jews were affected 111 112 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP was that, on account of the greater freedom accorded to them, they migrated in large numbers to the West, and settled down in the centres of Greek civilization. Their relations towards their brethren in Palestine had pro- bably never ceased being kept up ; but their migrations westwards had the effect of increasing their inter- communication, which consisted mainly in the making of pilgrimages to Jerusalem, the paying of the Temple tribute, and their voluntary subjection to the decrees of the Great Sanhedrin.' The disjpersed Jews experienced a sense of national unity by thus regarding Jerusalem as the nation's centre. And it was the centre of a vast circumference, for there was scarcely a province of the civilized world of those days in which the Judaism of the Dispersion was not represented ; in S5ma and to the East, in Asia Minor, Egypt, Greece, Macedonia and Italy, etc., (cf. Acts 2'"" for somewhat later times). Josephus {Antiq. XIV, vii, 2) quotes Straboin the words : "Now these Jews are already gotten into aU cities, and it is hard to find a place in the habitable earth that hath not admitted this tribe of men, and is not possessed by it ; " and in earlier times witness is borne to the same thing, " every land and every sea is full of thee " {Sibylline Oracles iii. 271). But from almost every point of view the most important centre of the Jewish Dispersion was Alexandria. The nucleus for a Jewish population had existed inEg}^t for centuries before the Christian Era ; and when Alexandria was founded, Jewish settlers were attracted to it by the fact that they were offered equal privileges with aU other citizens ^ ; for according to an edict of Tiberius, quoted by Josephus, the Jews 1 Cf. the words in the decree of Caius Julius Caesar, given in Josephus Antiq. XIV, x, 2. (ed. Margoliouth) : " 1 also ordain, that he (John Hyrcanus) and his children retain whatsoever privileges belong to the office of high priest. . . . And if at any time hereafter there ariSe any questions about the Jewish customs, I will that he determine tiie same." RESULTS OF THE "DIASPORA" ll3 had been " joint inhabitants in the eariiest times with the Alexandrians, and obtained from their kings equal privileges with them, as is evident by the public records that are in their possession, and the edicts themselves " (Ant. XIX, V, 2). According to Philo there were synagogues in all parts of the city, and two of the five districts into which the city was divided were called the " Jewish" quarters on account of their being inhabited almost exclusively by Jews. This is not the place to deal with the general history and condition of the Jews of the Dispersion, but from our present, point of view it is of importance to realize the far-reaching effect upon their religion which this intimate contact with the out- side world had. The supreme factor which influenced the Judaism of the Dispersion, and which had the effect of altering the very essence of traditional Judaism, was Greek thought ; the Jews of Palestine were not unaffected by this, but their brethren who Hved in the very centres of the Greek world assimilated so much of its spirit that " Hellenistic Judaism " sometimes represented a form of belief in which the Judaism was almost entirely absorbed by the philosophy of Greece.^ This was, to be sure, exceptional, but it only represents the high-water mark of the fuU stream of the Judaism of the Diaspora. It must suffice here to indicate in very few words three points regarding the subject which appear to be of para- mount importance. Firstly, and what is perhaps most significant of all, the spirit which animated the teachers among the Jews of the Dispersion. Utterly unlike the traditional attitude of intolerant prejudice towards the Gentile world which was characteristic of the strict Palestinian Jew, his brother of the Dispersion regarded the larger world of his surroundings with a kindly eye, ready whenever opportunity offered (though this, alas, 1 Cf. Josephus Contra Ap. i, 22 (§§ 1 76-1 81 in Margoliouth's edition). 9— (a4i7) 114 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP was not often the case) to hold converse and associate with his Gentile neighbours ; his religious interests were not so entirely absorbed in his own view of things but that he could see and appreciate the excellencies of Greek thought and philosophy ; his mind was open to receive and to be influenced by what was good and true, no matter where it was to be found ; while deeply convinced of the pre-eminent truth of his own religion, he was not blind to the fact that Jehovah was the God of the whole world ; and, like S. Paul, realized that it was possible to seek after Him and worship Him, though in ignorance. ^ The writer of the " Letter of Aristeas " bears eloquent testi- mony to this spirit when he says in effect : " Regarding discussions and explanations of the Law they possessed great aptitude. They struck just the right balance, for they discarded the hard literalness of the letter, and were modest with regard to their own wisdom and were ready to hold free argument, to listen to the opinions of others, and to consider thoroughly every question that might be raised " (121, 122).^ Thoroughly in keeping with this sympathetic spirit were the universalistic ideas of the Diaspora-Jews ; this characteristic was in direct contrast to the particularism too often rife among the leaders of thought among the Palestinian Jews ; the largeness of heart which could not restrict salvation to the children of Abraham was inseparable from the true Diaspora-Jew ; [but see further on these points the chapter on Eschatology]. A third marked characteristic was the difference shown in their literature, which embodied the spirit and teaching just referred to. II. The Pharisees. The appearance of the Pharisees as a distinct party in the State dates from the time of John Hyrcanus (135-104 1 Cf. Acts 1723 . . . What therefore ye worship in ignorance, this set I forth unto you. " Kautsch's edition. THE PHARISEES 115 B.C.) ; their great and distinctive characteristic was the strict observance of the Law, as interpreted and handed down by the Scribes ; they sought to carry out con- sistently in their lives the ideals thought out by the Scribes ; they were thus " the classic representatives of that tendency which the internal development of Israel altogether adopted during the post-exiHan period." ^ The ideal of carr5nng out the precepts of the Law in all their minute details was, theoretically, one which aU Jews sought to_^attain to ; but it was the Pharisees who set the example in this, and by their increasing endeavours became the national champions of Jewish legahsm. Pharisaism implied not only the minute observance of the Mosaic Law, not only a strict regard for the precepts of the Oral Law as interpreted and handed down by the earlier Scribes, but also a further development of that Law as worked out by themselves, which was considered equally binding. The Pharisees, hke the Sadducees, issued from the circles of the scribes, and though, as far as the parti- cular duties of these latter were concerned, a certain dif- ferentiation is to be observed, yet all the scribes belonged either to the Pharisaic or Sadducean party. AU the more influential scribes, however, were attached to the Pharisees^ for it was these who really carried on the earUer work of the scribes ; they were the ones who in the wake of the scribes handed on the " traditions of the fathers." What the Gospel tells us on this point (Matt. 15*, Mk. 7^) receives corroboration from Josephus, who says : " The Pharisees have delivered to the people a great many observances by succession from their fathers, which are not written in the laws of Moses ; and for that reason it is that the Sadducees reject them, and say, that we are to esteem those observances to be obligatory which are in the written word, but are not to observe what are derived from the tradition of our forefathers." * This » Schiirer op. at. II, ii, 10. ' Antiq. XIII, x, 6. 116 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP conflict between the two went very deep ; but how com- pletely the Pharisees won the day can be seen from the fact that ultimately it was not the written law, but the traditional interpretation of the Scribes and Pharisees which was appealed to as that which finally decided ; so that in later days it could even be said that "it is more culpable to teach contrary to the precepts of the scribes than contrary to the Torah itself." ^ As regards the special doctrinal behefs of the Pharisees, Josephus gives us the following details : they ascribe all to providence, that is to say, to God, and yet aUow that to act as is right, or the contrary, is principally in the power of men, although fate, or providence, does co-operate in every action. They believe, further, in the immortality of the soul ; but as regards the resurrection of the body, it is only the souls of the good men which are " removed into other bodies," the souls of the wicked are " subject to eternal punishment." " In another passage this belief is explained more fuUy : " They believe that souls have an immortal vigour in them, and that under the earth there will be rewards or punishments, according as they have lived virtuously or viciously in this life ; and the latter are to be detained in an ever- lasting prison, but that the former shall have power to revive and live again." * The influence that such teaching gained for the Pharisees among the people at large is vividly brought out by Josephus : " On account of which doctrines they are able greatly to persuade the body of the people, and whatsoever they do about divine worship, prayers, and sacrifices, they (the people) perform them according to their direction ; insomuch that the cities give great attestations to them on account of their entire virtuous conduct both in the actions of their lives, and their discourses also." * According to Acts 23*, the » Sanhedrin xi, 3. » Bell. Jud. II, viii, 14. » Aniiq. XVIII, i, 3. cf. Dan. 122. * Ibid. THE GOSPEL ACCOUNT OF THE PHARISEES 117 Pharisees taught the existence of angels and spirits ; this beUef was not held by the Sadducees. It is strange that this doctrine of the Pharisees is nowhere referred to by Josephus, any more than its denial by the Sadducees ; but both the belief and its denial are so obviously the logical outcome of what each party taught concerning the resurrection, that apparently it appeared unnecessary to make specific mention of it. There can be no sort of doubt that the passage in the Acts faithfully represents the actual facts. The data given in the New Testament concerning the Pharisees coincide with what Josephus tells us, viz., that " they valued themselves highly upon the exact skill they had in the law of their fathers," ^ and as " those who are esteemed most skilful in the exact explication of their laws " ; * thus in Acts 26' S. Paul speaks of them as being the straitest sect of our religion, which he expresses in Phil. 3* by sa5dng that as touching the law he was a Pharisee. In the Gospels this is fully illustrated ; there we read of their strict observance of the Saibbath (Mk. 2'*, Z^ *) of their fasting (Mk 2^*), of their practice of carrying out the minutice of the law (Mk. 7'' *).' But the picture which the Gospels present of the spirit in which these legal observances were practised shows how utterly different the standpoint was between what tradition regarded as sufficient, namely, a mechanical routine, and what the demands of the new teaching were (see Matt. 236. 13, 16, etc., Lk. ii^s 39' iS^"-"). The name Pharisee illustrates the main Pharisaic characteristic of strict observance of the law, for this strictness of observance differentiated them from the rest of the people, in a word it "separated" them from the mass of the population ; for " Pharisee " means literally " the separated one." Originally this name was one of » Antiq. XVII, ii, 4- * Bell. Jud. II, viii, 14. » See further Matt. 33 "" ; Luke ii""". 118 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP reproach, given them by their adversaries, because on account of their own special " cleanness " — i.e., legal purity — they separated themselves from the bulk of the nation. According to Schiirer this was certainly the original meaning of the name ; it is not probable that they gave it to themselves because other "positive self- designations would have been more obvious to ihem, and in fact they first appear in history under the name of Chassidim" ^ (the " Pious "). But though originally given them as a term of reproach, it was one which from the Pharisees' point of view was regarded as quite appropriate ; for they did consider themselves as " separated " from the bulk of the people by their superior hohness ; while in their own circle they spoke of each other as Chdberim (" col- leagues "), they regarded with contempt the mere common herd, the ' Am ha-aretz (" the people of land ") ; cf. the words in John 7**, This multitude which knoweth not the law are accursed, spoken by the Pharisees, which accords with what we read in Mark 2^*"^', Matt. g'~^*, Luke 5^'"*^, about their attitude towards publicans and sinners. " This exclusiveness of Pharisaism certainly justifies the calling of it an hceresis, a ' sect,' as is done both in the New Testament (Acts 15*, 26*) and by Josephus. Nevertheless it remains the fact, that it was the legitimate and classic representative of post-exihan Judaism in general. It did but carry out with relentness energy the consequences of its principle. Those only are the true Israel who observe the Law in the strictest manner. Since only the Pharisees did this in the full sense, they only were the true Israel, which was related to the remaining bulk of the people as these were to the heathen." ^ III. The Scribes. The rise of the Scribes is connected in the closest possible manner with the fact of the Torah. It will be seen in the » Op. cit. II. ii. 21. » Op. cit. II. ii. 25. THE SCRIBES 119 Chapter on the Law what a complicated matter its study, and understanding, and exposition were ; it followed, therefore, that the existence of a distinct body of experts on the subject became a necessity ; and thus there arose the Scribes, with whom Torah-stndy was a matter of pro- fessional occupation. Originally this occupation belonged to the priesthood, for the priests were at first both the guardians and teachers of the Law. Ezra himself was both priest and Safer {" Scribe ").' But by degrees the study of the Law was pursued by others besides the priests — for the Law was meant equally for layman and priest, and the one had as much interest in it as the other — so that there arose an independent class of Torah- students, who in time supplanted the priests as teachers of the people, and became the recognized official exponents of the Law. At the same time, this did not necessarily exclude Scribes from being priests, for, on the testimony of Philo, we know that in the synagogues priests often undertook the duty of reading the Law and expounding it to the people, * a duty which belonged specifically to the Scribes ; so that there is no rea- son to beUeve that Scribes were never priests. In the first instance. Scribes occupied themselves exclusively with study, they were not allowed to pursue any other calling, lest their thoughts should be withdrawn from Torah-study (see Ecclus. 38 ^**^) : The wisdom of a learned man cometh by opportunity of leisure : and he that hath little business shall become wise . . ." ; but in later days it became an absolute duty for them to have some other calling besides, in order to earn a Uvelihood, the reason being that all labour for the Law had to be gratuitous. For the most part the Scribes, as we have seen, belonged to the Pharisaic party ; but as the one qualification for being a Scribe consisted in being " learned in the > Ezra 7^ '"■ " ; Neh. 8'' *■ '• '^ ; 12'^- *. ' Cf. Holtzmann Neutestamentl. Zeitgesch, p. i6o. 120 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP Law," there must have been Scribes in the Sadducean party as well, indeed this is imphed in the New Testament (see Mark a^', Luke 5*", Acts 23»). As the Scribes were occupied with the administration of the Law as well as with its study, they were also called " Lawyers " (see Matt. 22", ,Luke 7»», 10", ii*"*' *«), or " teachers of the Law " (see Luke 5^', Acts 5") ; " Lawyer " and " Scribe " are synonymous, for which reason they are never mentioned together in the New Testament. But as administrators of the Law it fol- lowed, in a natural course, that the Scribes should also be among those who saw to its being carried out ; so that they also had the power of sitting as judges, and there- fore also of passing sentence upon those who were guilty of breaking the Law. Hence Scribes were among those who composed the great Sanhedrin at Jerusalem, and as they were the ones whose special study of the Law made them experts, it cannot be doubted that their influence in this supreme court must have been considerable. The difference between the Scribes and the Pharisees was briefly this — the Scribes handed down the traditional, i.e., the Oral Law as well as the Written Law, and explained it ; the Pharisees carried out in actual practice what was prescribed. This, of course, does not mean to say that the Scribes did not also strictly observe the legal enactments ; but that their special duties constituted them a class distinct from the Pharisees is clear from the way in which they are differentiated in the New Testament, for there we read of the " Scribes of the Pharisees " (Mark 2^*, Acts 23°), and of " the Pharisees and their scribes " (Luke 53"), showing clearly that the Scribes were distinct from the Pharisees. IV. The Sadducees. The name Sadducee takes its origin from that of Zadok the high-priest, whose family had exercised the priestly functions from the time of David (i Chron. 15^^, 16**"*"'). THE SADDUCEES 121 In writing of the Sadducees Josephus says that their doctrine is " received but by a few, yet by those still of the greatest dignity," ^ and in another passage he writes : " The Sadducees are able to persuade none but the rich, and have not the populace obsequious to them, but the Pharisees have the multitude on their side." * These passages bear out what is elsewhere implied, that the Sadducees were the aristocratic party ; for, as the New Testament points out (Acts 5i'),the high-priestly famihes belonged to the Sadducean party * ; but from the commencement of the Persian period, it was the priests who governed the Jewish State and the priests in general constituted the nobility of the Jewish people.* The origin, therefore, of the antagonism between Pharisees and Sadducees was probably owing to a differ- ence in social standing, which became emphasized later on by poUtical enmity, in the first instance, and still more by opposing religious speculations. The main opposition of the Sadducees to the Pharisees was based upon their view of the Oral Law ; while they fuUy acknowledged the binding character of the Written Law, they re- pudiated the authority of the Oral Law ; in the words of Josephus : " The Pharisees have delivered to the people a great many observances by succession from their fathers which are not written in the laws of Moses ; and for that reason it is that the Sadducees reject them, and say, that we are to esteem those observances to be obliga- tory which are in the written word, but are not to observe what are derived from the tradition of our forefathers. And concerning these things it is that great disputes and differences have arisen among them." * When it is remembered that this involved the rejection of the great mass of legal precepts which the Scribes had so laboriously 1 Antiq. XVIII, i, 4- ' Ibid. XIII, x, 6. » Cf. Antiq. XX, ix, i. * Schurer op. cit. II, ii, 29. » Antiq. XIII, x, 6. 122 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP developed out of the Written Law, and which the Pharisees regarded as of equal authority with this latter, one can understand the irreconcileable antagonism which must have existed between the two parties. But although the Sadducees so exalted the Written Law above the Oral Law, it must not be supposed that they held slavishly to the letter of the Law ; that this was not so will be evident on considering the distinctive Sadducean religious tenets. Their adhesion to the Written Law, as opposed to the Oral, was prompted rather from the desire to have a sure basis upon which to ground their objections to Scribal accretions.^ Regarding the special doctrines of the Sadducees, Josephus records that " they take away fate (providence) and say there is no such thing, and that the events of human affairs are not at its disposal, but they suppose that aU our actions are in our own power, so that we are ourselves the causes of what is good, and receive what is evil from our own folly." ^ Again : " The Sadducees take away fate entirely, and suppose that God is not concerned in our doing or not doing what is evil ; and they say, that to act what is good or what is evil, is at men's own choice, and each man attaches him- self to the one or the other as he will. They also take away the behef of the immortal duration of the soul, and the punishments and rewards in Hades ; " * they held that " souls die with the bodies." * Such beliefs make it clear that, as said above, the Sadducees did not hold aU too strictly to the letter even of the Written Law ; they permitted themselves a more independent scope for speculation. That they, furthermore, did not believe in spirits or angels we have already seen (see Acts 23 *). This negative behef was demanded by their refusal to believe in the immortality of the soul ; but if their behef > Cf. Friedlander Die rel. Bewegungen ... p. 14. « Antiq. XIII, v, 9. » Bell. Jud. II, viii, 14. « Antiq. XVIII, i, 4. THE ESSENES 123 that God is not concerned with the affairs of men was the outcome of transcendental ideas regarding the Deity.i then one may wonder at their not beUeving in angels (see further ch. viii.). V. The Essenes. The Essenes offer a very interesting, but somewhat problematical, phenomenon in history. The meaning of their name is unknown, their origin is unknown, and they disappear from history — during the second century a.d. — without leaving a trace behind them. In some respects they remind one of the order of Good Templars, as these existed in the late Middle Ages, while their manner of hfe recalls in certain points the strict simplicity of the sons of Rechab, of whom we read in the Old Testament. Josephus, who is our chief authority on the subject, always speaks of the Essenes as a " genos " (lit. " a kind "), which implies a closer communion than a " haeresis " (" sect "), the term he applies to the Pharisees and Sadducees. ^ This agrees with what Philo says as to their num- bers, namely that there were four thousand of them, though in other places they are spoken of as far more numerous. They Uved in various parts of Palestine ; the little commimity had a central house in each of the different cities and villages in which they settled ; aroimd this house they dwelt, but assembled in it for their religious observances, one of which was the common meal ; at this meal special holy garments were worn, which were put off again when their wearers returned to work ; a priest offered up prayer before and after the meal. In the even- ing another meal was partaken of ; at this guests might be present ; the greatest self-control and decorum reigned, food and drink were restricted to what was absolutely necessary ; no more than one spoke at a time. They had no private property, everything was in common ; all that > Cf. Holtzraann, op. cit. p. 212. ' Ibid. p. 216. 124 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP anyone earned was put into a common fund, from whicfe any member could draw as need required ; but the use of this fund was not restricted to members of the order ; the poor and the sick generally were assisted from it. " Overseers," elected from among the members, adminis- tered the fund and regulated all the affairs of the order. Marriage was eschewed by the Essenes,^ so that the order was only recruited from outside ; whenever a new candidate sought admission he had to pass a three years' noviciate, and on being admitted he had, after submitting to a form of Baptism, to take solemn oaths to obey the rules of the Order and to observe its secrets. As to their deeply rehgious character, Josephus says : " Their piety towards God is very extraordinary ; for, before sun-rising they speak not a word about profane matters, but put up certain prayers, which they have received from their forefathers, as if they made a supplication for its rising. . . . They dispense their anger after a just manner, and restrain their passion. They are eminent for fidelity, and are the ministers of peace ; whatsoever they say also is firmer than an oath ; but swearing is avoided by them, and they esteem it worse than perjury ; for they say that he who cannot be believed, without [swearing by] God is already condemned. . . ."' Further, before being admitted to the order, the aspirant had to take a very solemn oath that he would always be a lover of truth, and rebuke liars, that he would keep himself clear from thefts and all unlawful gains ; above all, that he would always exsercise piety towards God, and be just towards all men, that he would harm nobody, but that he would hate the wicked while always assisting the righteous. * If they fell into grievous sin they were cast out of the society ; but on showing true repentance, and after having been ' 1 " They neither maxry wives, nor are desirous to keep servants ; as thinking the latter tempts men to be unjust, and the former gives the handle to domestic quarrels." — Antiq. XVIII, i, 5. ' Bell Jud. II, viii, 5, 6. • Ibid. II, viii, 7. ESSENE DOCTRINES 125 sufficiently punished, they might be received into the circle again. Their heroism Josephus describes as follows : — " As for death, if it will come with glory, they esteem it better than immortaUty ; and indeed our war with the Romans gave abundant evidence what great souls they had in their trials, wherein, although they were tortured and distorted, burnt, and torn to pieces, and went through aU kinds of instruments of torment, that they might be forced either to blaspheme their legislator, or to eat what was forbidden them, yet could they not be made to do either of them, no nor once to flatter their tormentors or to shed a tear ; but they smiled in their very pains, and laughed those to scorn who inflicted the torments upon them, and resigned up their souls with great alacrity, as expecting to receive them again." i A strange fact about the Essenes was that they would never enter the Temple, lest they should become unclean through contact with the crowds there ; sacrifices were therefore not offered by them, but they nevertheless sent offerings to the Temple. Some religious grounds evidently lay at the back of their refusal to use oil, or to spit ; similar reasons must also account for other strange customs to which Josephus refers." As regards the doctrines of the Essenes, we are told, in the first place, that they affirm that " fate governs all things, and that nothing befalls men, but what is accor- ding to its determination ; " ' on this point, therefore, they and the Sadducees were at opposite extremes, while the Pharisees occupied a middle position between the two. Secondly, they had a great veneration for the Law ; as regards Sabbath-observance, Josephus teUs us that "they are stricter than any other of the Jews in resting from their labours on the seventh day . . ." * and Philo says : » Ibid. II, viii, lo. » Ibid. II, viii, 3, 9. » Bell Jud. XIII, V. 9. * Bell Jud. II, viii, 9. 126 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP " Their pursuit of ethic isTespecially thorough since they take for instructors the laws of their fathers, which no human soul could possibly have conceived without Divine inspiration." i In their worship they read and expounded the Holy Scriptures, delighting especially in allegorical interpretation. A third point is this, in the words of Josephus : " The opinion is strongly held among them, that bodies are corruptible, and that the matter they are inade of is not permanent ; but that the souls are immortal, and continue for ever, and that they come out of the most subtile air, and are united to their bodies as to prisons, into which they are drawn by a cer- tain natural enticement ; but that when they are set free from the bonds of the flesh, they then, as released from a long bondage, rejoice and mount upward. And their opinion is Uke that of the Greeks, that good souls have their habitations beyond the ocean, in a region that is neither oppressed with storms of rain or snow, or with intense heat, but that this place is such as is refreshed by the gentle breathing of a west wind that is perpetually blowing from the ocean, while they allot to bad souls a dark and tempestuous den, full of never-ceasing punishments," * Lastly, the Essenes had an elaborate Angelology ; the novices had to swear to keep secret the names of their angels ; they believed further in the sanatory powers of roots, and in the properties of stones*; and they were accredited with the faculty of foretelling the future ; Josephus says they were seldom mistaken in their pre- dictions, and he gives three examples of the correctness of their prophecies.* With regard to the difficult question of the relation of Essenism to early Christianity, Ht is not possible here to do more than refer to the matter. It is clear that our 1 Quoted in Schiirer op. cit. II, ii, p. 202. » Bell. Jud. II, viii, 11. ' Ibid. II, viii, 6-12. I, iii, 5. II, vii, 3. * Antiq. XIII, xi, 2 ; XV, x, S ; XVII, xiii, 3. , THE KARAITES 127 Lord, at any rate, with His frank acceptance of and joy in the social conditions of ordinary life could have been no Essene. See the matter fully discussed in Friedlander, Die religiosen Bewegungen . . . referred to above, and in JE, V, 231 ff. S.V., Essenes. VI. The Karaites. Although the rise of the Karaites dates in post-Tal- mudical times, a word may be appropriately said here regarding them, inasmuch as they appear, in their fun- damental characteristic, as the spiritual descendants of the Sadducees. In its Hebrew form the word for Karaites is Beni Mikra, i.e., "Sons of reading." As their name implies, they professed to follow the teaching of what they read in the Bible, ignoring altogether that of the Rabbis. It is a repetition of the Sad- ducean attitude, viz., loyalty to the Written Law, but repudiation of the Oral Law. The rise of the Karaites was, in fact, a protest against Rabbinism, just as the existence of the Sadducean party was a protest against Pharisaism. The founder of the sect — which originated about 800 A.D.. — was named Anan, and originally his followers were called, after him, Ananites ; but as, in some respects, the tenets of the early Ananites became modified, they adopted the name of Karaites, which they have held ever since. Karaism owes its origin as much to the influence of Mohammedanism as to Judaism, for it borrowed from Islam as well as from early Jewish sects, such as the Sadducees and Essenes. The Arabs, among whom the Jews lived, had enthusiastically accepted the simple faith which Mohammedanism originally was ; but just as among the Jews the Talmud had arisen and become the prime au- thority in Jewry for explaining and amplifying the Law, so among the Mohammedans the " Sunnah " arose to supplement the teaching of the Koran. Each, the Talmud and the " Sunnah," sought to impose a more 128 SYNAGOGUE REUGION AND WORSHIP elaborate and a stricter carrying-out of legal observances than was enj oined in either the Old Testament or the Koran. One result was that an Arab sect arose, the members of which protested against this stricter observance ; their example was followed by a number of Jews who in a like spirit rebelled against Talmudism, and who thus originated the Ananite, later Karaite, sect. The desire of the Karaites to stick closely to the letter of Scripture soon involved them in considerable difficulties and some- times in impossibilities ; so that they were forced, to some extent, to modify their original position. They never reached large numbers ; but they have continued to exist up to the present day, and are to be found in Jerusalem, Turkey, Egypt, and Russia. In one direction, however, the influence of the Karaite sect was profound and far-reaching. As already remarked, the main prin- ciple of Karaism was to regard Scripture as the sole authority in matters of faith ; this meant, on the one hand, an entire disregard of all Rabbinical interpretation and tradition ; but it entailed, on the other hand, a new examination of the text of Scripture. The Karaites, therefore, undertook a most minute and critical study of the Biblical text, a study which concerned itself with the smallest details, even down to the consideration of each individual letter. In order to oppose and refute the Karaite teaching which resulted from this examination of the text, the Rabbis were compelled to undertake a similar task. This critical study developed into a vety keen contest between Rabbinic and Karaite champions. There is no doubt that the bulk of the work of compiling an authoritative text must be assigned to the heretical Karaites. The outcome of this literary conflict was of the highest importance, for it produced what is called the " Massoretic " text (from the Hebrew word Massora, "Tradition") ; his is the text of the Hebrew Bible at the present day, and it is also that from which the EngUsh Bible (Old Testament) is translated. THE CHASSIDIM 129 VII. The Chassidim (The "Pious"). Leaving on one side the mystical Kabbahstic movement (thirteenth century), ^ which has had such a profound influence on later Judaism, especially among the unpro- gressive communities of eastern Europe, and which has left unmistakable traces on the Jewish Liturgy, a word must here be said about the remarkable sect of the Chassidim. The rise of Chassidism, which may be dated from the death of its founder, Israel Baal Shem (died 1761), is one of the most remarkable events in the more recent history of Judaism. Chassidism marks, it has been well said, " a revolt among the Jews of Eastern Europe against the excessive casuistry of the contemporary Rabbis." ^ Kabbalistic influence, as would be expected, is prominent in these circles. The history of this remarkable sect, which at the present time numbers about half a miUion adherents in Europe, deserves more attention than it has received from students of religious history. Prof. Schechter, whose essay is by far the best available authority on the subject in English, goes on to remark : " It {Chassidism) was the protest of an emotional but uneducated people against a one-sided expression of Judaism, presented to them in cold and over-subtle 1 Kabbalistic teaching assumed its most extravagant propor- tions in the extensive work known as the Zohar (thirteenth cen- tury), which claims to be the production of R. Simon ben Jochai, the famous mystic of the second century. The Zohar in its present form, however, is in date more than a thousand years later. There was, undoubtedly, an earlier mystical tradition (Kabhalah) which can be traced to very early beginnings. This earlier tradition is embodied more or less in the Sefer Yetsirah (see JE, s.v., Yezirah Safer xii, 602 f). The Zohar has exercised a considerable (and not always a healthy) influence on popular Judaism. It powerfully appealed to Christian students as well as to Jewish mystics, and has often been printed (in the Hebrew text). Too much impor- tance has sometimes been assigned to it, especially by earlier Christian scholars, and notably by Gfrorer. ' Schechter, Studies, pp. i ff. Essay on Chassidism. to— (3417) 130 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP disquisitions which not only did they not understand, but which shut out the play of the feelings and of the affections, so that religion was made almost impossible to them." ^ An attractive study of the founder of Chassidism is to be found in Zangwill's Dreamers of the Ghetto, pp. 201-257. VIII. Minor Divisions. For the sake of completeness the following minor divisions among the Jews must here be mentioned : [a) The Chinese Jews, an interesting survival; [b) the B'nei Israel, in Bombay and other parts of India ; (c) The Yemenite Jews, i.e., the Jews of southern Arabia ; {d) The Falashas i.e., the Jews of Abyssinia. FuUer details as to these communities can be foimd in two articles in the JQR (viii, 123 ff., x, 584 ff.) on the liturgy and rites of the Chinese Jews, by Neubauer and Elkan Adler ; The Jews in India and the Far East, by J. H. Lord ; JE, art. " Yemen," xii, 592—594 ; Wanderings among the Falashas in Abyssinia, by H. A. Stem. IX. The Reform Jews. Lastly, since the time of Moses Mendelssohn (1729-1786) , various Jewish communities on the Continent, in England, and especially in America, have, in varying degrees, abandoned the rigid and unbending attitude characteristic of Jewish orthodoxy, and put themselves, with greater or less freedom, under the influence of Liberal ideas. Reform Judaism, however, in spite of the ethical fervour that usually marks its adherents, is the result rather of the operation within Judaism of the disintegrating forces of Western culture than of any deep-seated religious motive- power. It is painfully deficient in anything like religious warmth. The main and fundamental difference between Orthodox, ' Schechter, Studies, p. 2. THE "BRESLAU" SCHOOL 131 or Conservative, and Reform, or Liberal, Jews lies here : the former, as of old, declare that the laws concerning sacrifice and Levitical purity are integral parts of Judaism ; the latter deny this. ^ It follows quite naturally that as the authority of the Bible is disputed, so that of the Talmud shoidd also be called in question. Between the extremes of Orthodoxy and Liberalism Kes the so-called " Breslau School," with Zacharias Frankel at its head. The champions of this intermediate position en- deavour to smile on both Orthodoxy and Reform Juda- ism by coupling the cry, "Positive Historical Judaism," with the principle of tempering Conservatism with Reform. They no longer believe in the Mosaic origin of the Penta- teuch, nor in the divine character of tradition.^ Clearly, therefore, the middle party cannot be regarded as belong- ing to the orthodox party at all ; their position would be more correctly defined as Moderate Liberals. But even among the Reform Jews there is not unanimity. It is admitted that there are many who might rightly be called " indifferentists " ; religion does not appeal to some, to others Judaism is far off and uninteresting ; these, it is said, " will remain quietly discontented and distant, while their children may be expected to drop off more completely still, or to join other religious denominations." ^ It is, however, not enough to say that the repudiation of the authority of Bible and Talmud is alone that which has brought about the Reform Movement ; there is no doubt that many Jews have never really taken the trouble to think out for themselves whether or not these authori- ties are binding and why they should or should not be. Leading men among the Jews, to whom religion was of the deepest import, noticed with sorrow that attendance at divine worship in the synagogue was getting worse > JE, vii. 367. 2 Ibid. ' JQR, xii, pp. 620-622. 132 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP and worse ; what was the reason of this ? According to one of the leaders of the Reform Movement, there were several reasons ; it will be instructive to examine these very briefly. 1. The Services in Synagogue are conducted in Hebrew — ^i.e., in a language "not understanded of the people." This will come as a surprise to many Christians, who are, for the most part, under the impression that Hebrew is the current language of the Jews. But this is not the case. Every boy is taught Hebrew in the Jewish schools, but the majority do not keep it up after leaving school. The language of a large proportion of the Jews in England is not English, it is true, nor is it Hebrew, but Yiddish, a corrupt form of German. The fact is that when Jews go to Synagogue, most of them understand very little of the language in which the Services are conducted. The Jewish Prayer-Book has Hebrew on one side and English on the other, so as to be of some help ; but obviously, if Hebrew is not known, it must be very difficult to foUow the service even with a translation. The result is that many, finding it impossible to take an intelligent part in Synagogue Service, stay away altogether. 2. Many complain of the dulness and uninspiring nature of the Services ; they are very long and a great part is taken up with the Reading of the Law, " which is often dull and unspiritual," and the method of reading, a kind of nasal droning, is certainly not calculated to inspire listeners. 3. Then, it is said that the congregation are unable to take any active part in the service ; there is no singing, at least for them, no organ, and no opportunity for lifting up the voice in praise and thanksgiving. 4. Again, there are customs, ancient customs, in THE REFORM MOVEMENT 133 vogue in the Synagogue which are ahen to the modem, or at least to the Western, mind; e.g., no women are allowed in the body of the Synagogue, they have to sit in a high gallery closely railed off from the rest of the building ; the wearing of the Praying-shawl and Phylacteries appears ludicrous to many Western minds. 5. One other reason is of great significance ; the chief service is on Saturday (Sabbath) morning ; the world around them is busy, while the Jews are in Synagogue. What this means to the Jew in the city, in the warehouse and in the shop, needs no explaining.* But perhaps the most potent reason of all, at least for the cultured, intellectual Jews, who are the back- bone of the Reform Movement, is the following, which is given in the words of one of themselves : " I do not attend the Synagogue because (apart from the historic interests connected with the ancient cult) I have no sympathy with and cannot realize the benefits that can be derived from the services performed in the Synagogue or with the recitals of narratives relating to the early history, which, being miraculous, and of the highest improbability, I cannot regard as true, or to speak frankly, of any value whatever. The theories of ethics that I hear are not those which I believe, and, to use general terms my mind, is transferred into a totally different sphere of thought. And as I am unable to accept the doctrines inculcated within the Synagogue, I, as every honest thinker would do, absent myself from attendance at the services. The position I am bound to assume, is, I regret to say, not only absence of sympathy with, but actual repugnance to, the whole scheme of Judaism. I cannot accept the chief dogmas which underlie historic Judaism. I cannot comprehend the ' Chosen People.' » Cf. C. Montefiore, JQR, xii, pp. 624 ff. 134 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP It is a phrase that has no meaning to me. The Divine Revelation at Sinai is to me a legendary epic of unknown authority. The miraculous element is to my mind inj urious to piety, and creates in me the sentiment of repulsion. Without considering whether miracles can or cannot take place, it is no exaggeration to allege that no recorded miracle rests on evidence sufi&ciently trustworthy to convince any but the most credulous of mankind. Judaism rests on the ' Book ' and on tradition — neither support can be regarded at the present day as valid." ^ And so on for a number of pages ; — the most curious part of it all is that a thinking man, whether Jew or Gentile, who presumably is not ignorant of the questions of the day, should be found to take up a position as antiquated as the seventeenth century atheist ; things have moved since those days, and the intellectual unbeliever of to-day uses far more cogent arguments than the mere assertion that miracles cannot happen. That, however, by the way, the point for us to notice is that this attitude is char- acteristic of thousands of Jews to-day, many, no doubt, not quite so extreme as the writer quoted. But this attitude is one of the characteristics of Modern Judaism. It therefore cannot be wondered at that among Jewish religious leaders, there are to be found some who feel impelled to employ new methods in seeking to stem this tide of unbelief. It is thus that the Reform Movement has come into being. » JQR, xiii, p. 64 ; see the whole article, pp. 63-85. Tlic Reader at the Desk (or Bemn ) (See p. 311) To face p. 134 PART II. DOGMATIC JUDAISM. CHAPTER VII. The Law. The Torah the final Revelation of God for all Time — Salvation only through the Torah — The Legalistic Element in Jewish Piety — Israel the People of the Torah— Christ and the Law — The Oral Tradition. [Literature: — HJP, II, ii, pp. 90-125; Friedlander, The Jetvish Religion, pp. 57-62; Weber, pp. 1-47; Bousset, pp. 87-120; Toy, Judaism and Christianity; Holtzmann, pp. 322-353 JE, art. Torah.] I. The Torah the Final Revelation of God for ALL Time. Nothing reveals more truly the real essence of Judaism than the position assigned by it to the Law or Torah. This was the great theme of controversy between the early Church as represented by St, Paul and Gentile-Christian communities, and the Synagogue. A fuU discussion of that controversy would be out of place here ; but it may be said that some injustice has unquestionably been done to the Jewish position by Christian theologians. The Law was by no means usually the burden that it has been supposed to be to pious Jews ; but the apologists of Judaism as a rule forget that what St. Paul was mainly concerned to secure was the freedom of non-Jews from the yoke of the Law. He felt that this yoke was intolerable to all who were not bom Jews, or who wished to be something more than Jews of the orthodox type ; in other words, he felt that a legahstic reUgion was incompatible with the claims of a world-religion. Was any man called being circumcized? Let him not become uncircumcized ; 135 136 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP hath any been called in uncircumcision, let him not be circumcized (i Cor. 7^*).^ It was by means of the Torah, so the Rabbis taught, that God revealed Himself to His people. In it the Divine Mind was reflected, and in it the Divine Will was stated once for all ; " that which is of the Torah needs not con- firmation" ^i i.e., there is no appeal from the decisions of the Torah. It contained, moreover, the essence of the Divine Wisdom ; indeed, it is again and again stated in Rabbinical hterature that Wisdom and the Torah are identical.^ This is also true of the Apocryphal Writings, see Ecclus. 24 ; after the praise of Wisdom (vv. 1-22), there follow these words (v. 23): All these things are the book of the covenant of the Most High God, even the Torah which Moses commanded for an heritage unto the congregations of Jacob.*' See, too, Baruch, 4' (cf. Kautsch in loc, and Taylor's Pirke A both (p. 173). A thing that so closely corresponded with the mind of God, and expressed the fulness of His Wisdom, must logically have existed with God from all eternity ; in fact, the Torah was not to be reckoned among created things in the ordinary sense, for its pre-existence before the Creation takes it out of the category of created things. This is practically stated in so many words in Bereshith rabbah c. 8, and Pesikta 109*, where it is said that the Torah is two thousand years older than the Creation. But the identi- fication of Wisdom with the Torah necessitated caution ; for if, as certainly was the case, Wisdom was personified, and existed before the Creation, which was believed to be the case, then we get a personality other than God in existence before the Creation, and this would, of course, 1 For an excellent exposition of the Jewish point of view in criticism of St. Paul, see an article by Mr. C. G. Montefiore, " Rab- binic Judaism and the Epistles of St. Paul," in JQR, xiii (Jan., 1901). ' Rosh hashanah 19*. 3 Midrash Tanchuma, Bereshith, passim ; see JE, xii, 197. ♦ See further the notes on this passage in Kautsch. GOD AND THE "TORAH" INSEPARABLE 137 have endangered the fundamental Jewish tenet of the Unity of God. In order to avoid this, it was taught that although the Torah existed before the Creation, it was nevertheless the result, too, of an act of creation on God's part. The existence of the Torah before the Creation, though itself created, is taught, for example, in Bereshith rabbah c. i : " Six things preceded the Creation of the world ; among them were such as were themselves truly created, and such as were decided upon before the Creation, the Torah and the throne of glory were truly created." The teaching that the Torah expresses the fulness of the Divine Mind is fully in accordance with the idea that God and the Torah are inseparable ; this is illustrated in a beautiful little parable from the Midrash:^ It is as though a king had an only daughter ; and one of the kings comes and marries her. He then wants to return to his own country and to take his wife back with him. Then the king says to him : "She whom I have given to thee is my only daughter ; I cannot bear to be separated from her ; yet I cannot say to thee, Take her not, for she is thy wife. But show me this kindness : wherever thou goest prepare me a chamber that I may dwell with you, for I cannot bear to be separated from my daughter." Thus spake the Holy One to Israel : "I gave you the Torah ; I cannot separate myself from it ; yet I cannot say to you, Take it not. But whithersoever ye journey make Me a house wherein I may dwell." For it is said : And lei them make me a sanctuary that I may dwell among them (Exod. 25 '). The supreme importance, however, of the Torah lies in the fact of its being the final revelation of God for all time. Everything that is needed for salvation is con- tained in the Torah, and therefore nothing can ever supplement it ; it is the expression of the Divine Will and Purpose which holds good for all eternity. As it existed before the world was created, so it will continue to exist after the world has come to an end, for as it contains God's revelation of Himself to man it must of necessity continue for ever. This Icisting character of the Torah is 1 Weber, p. 17. 138 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP referred to even in the Apocr5rplia, for in Baruch 4^ we read : — She (i.e., Wisdom) is the book of God's commands. The Torah that abideth to eternity ; All that hold by her [shall attain] to life, They that forsake her shall die. So, too, in Wisdom 18*, there is mention made of the "eternal light of the Torah." In later writings we find the same thing, e.g. , in Shemoth rabbah c. 33 the Torah is spoken of as being " a possession for eternity" ; elsewhere it is said that the Torah alone among all the books of Holy Scripture will endure to eternity ; all the other books of the Bible will disappear, having served their purpose, but the Torah can never become antiquated, nor will it ever become unnecessary ; " the Prophets and the Hagiographa wiU cease, but the five books of Torah will not cease," Megillah, i, 7. Quite in accordance with this teaching that the Torah is the absolute, final, and eternal revelation of God Almighty, is the further teaching that it was intended for aU mankind. This seems, at first sight, to run counter to the Jewish contention that they are the " chosen people," the " peculiar " treasure of God, and appears to modify the idea of their exclusiveness ; but it is not really so ; indeed, what is taught tends rather to emphasize this latter, for it is said that, although God originally intended His Torah to be a revelation of Himself and of His sovereign will to all nations, yet that only Israel accepted it when it was given ; in fact, this acceptation of it on the part of Israel enhances the sense of their superiority over all other nations ; and the " fence " around the Law which, in consequence, the teachers of the Law so dihgently and painfully erected, became a barrier between Israel and the nations, and contributed still further to the exclu- siveness of the Jew. What its confessors regarded as their chief glory became in the eyes of the non-Jew a source of reproach. THE "TORAH" AND THE GOSPEL 139 II. Salvation is through the " Torah." The trae Jew is prepared to lose everything so long as he retains the Torah, for if he has that he has eternal salvation. In Pirke Aboth vi, 7 it is said : " Great is Torah which gives life to those who practise it in this world and in the world to come." The Torah is the source of Hfe, according to Sifre 84* : " As water gives hfe to the world, so do the words of the Torah give Hfe to the world " ; by the life which the Torah gives is meant eternal life. So, too, in Shir rabbah i, 2 the Torah is compared to water : " As water refreshes the body so does the Torah refresh the soul." The thought in these passages strongly reminds one of Jn. 4^* : Whosoever drinketh of the water that I shall give him shall never thirst : but the water that I shall give him shall become to him a well of water springing ttp unto eternal life. Perhaps even more striking in this con- nexion are the words of Christ, as recorded by the Fourth EvangeHst, on the last day of the feast (7^^) : // any man thirst, let him come unto me, as the Scripture (Isa. 12') hath said, out of his belly shall flow rivers of living water. Remembering that so much which is preserved in the Rabbinical writings was traditional teaching for centuries before it was reduced to writing, it is scarcely fanciful to see in these words from the Gospel, Christ contrasting the real salvation which He brought with that which the words of the Torah were beUeved by the Jews to bring. This figurative use of water in connexion with the Torah may be paralleled by a similar use of bread, as s3anbolic of the Torah in its character of spiritual food, i.e., that which sustains the life of the soul unto eternity ; for example, the words of Isa. 3^ the whole stay of bread, are explained as referring to the Torah {Shabbath 120*) ; likewise in Bereshith rabbah 70 it is said that the proselyte may find in Israel the " bread of the Torah." Here, again, we are reminded of the well-known words of Christ, / am the bread of life (Jn. 6^^' *'' *^' ^). In very significant 140 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP contrast to what the Jews taught about the Torah is what Christ teaches in verses 32, 33 of the same chapter : Verily, verily, I say unto you, it was not Moses (i.e., the Torah) that gave you the bread out of heaven, but my Father giveth you the true bread out of heaven. For the bread of God is that which cometh down out of Heaven, and giveth life unto the world, {see also v. 58). Obviously "life" here is " eternal Ufe," just that life which, according to Jewish teaching, the " bread of the Torah " gave. Again, the Torah is said to be like wine ; as wine rejoices the heart in a temporal sense, so the Torah rejoices the heart after a spiritual manner (see Shirrabbah i, 2). One recalls, in this connexion, the words of Christ in Jn. 15^, , / am the true vine . . . ; and more especially Jn. 6^*' ^* . . . My blood is drink indeed, and cf . Mark 12'*"**. Once more, it was taught that the Torah gives light to the spiritual understanding, a light which was the guide to eternal life ; for example, the words in Num. 6 *^, The Lord make His face to shine (lit. " give light ") upon thee, is explained as meaning the light of the Torah (Sifre 12*) ; again in Debarim rabbah c. 7, we read : " As oil gives light to the world, so too do the words of the Torah give hght to the world." With this we may compare, again, the words of Christ in Jn. 8^*, I am the Light of the world ; the reference to the Torah a httle further on in the chapter (v. 17), makes it very probable that these words were intended to contrast the teaching of Christ with that of official Judaism concerning the Law ; the same must be said of the words of the Evangelist : There was the true light (i.e., not the false light of the Torah), even the light which lighteth every man coming into the world, Jn. 1' ; here again, the words gain in significance by the refer- ence to the Law a little further on (v. 17) : For the law was given by Moses ; grace and truth came by Jesus Christ. Another, and from the Christian doctrinal point of view exceedingly important, way in which the Torah is seen to be the means of salvation, is the merit whifch is EFFICACY OF " TORAH "-STUDY 141 imputed to tjiose who observe its decrees ; in fact, we touch here, though but incidentally, upon the general subjects of Works, of which the greatest is obedience to the precepts of the Torah.^ We may note, first of aU, these important words from Pirke Aboth, ii, 2 ; * " Excellent is Torah-study together with worldly business, for the practice of them puts iniquity out of remembrance ; and all Torah without work must fail at length, and occasion iniquity. And let all who are employed with the congregation act with them in the name of Heaven, for the merit of their fathers sustains them, and their righteousness stands for ever. And ye yourselves shall have reward reckoned unto you as if ye had wrought." Again, in ii, 8 we have : " He who has gotten to himself words of Torah has gotten to himself the life of the world to come." The pre-eminent merit of studying the Torah is well brought out in vi, i : " Whosoever is busied in Torah for its own sake merits many things ; and not only so, but he is worth the whole world ; he is called friend, beloved ; he loves God, loves mankind ; he pleases God, pleases mankind." Once more : " Great is Torah, which gives life to those who practise it in this world and in the world to come." Then, further, it is said, in Chagigah X2^, that a cord of grace is drawn in the future world by God around those who study the Torah ; in Genesis R. 23 * it is said that " the righteous have the power to change the attribute of justice to the attribute of mercy." The condition of righteousness, however, is strict observance of the Torah ; this is the Alpha and Omega of the rehgion of the Synagogue. As expressive of the high merit attach- ing to those who study the Torah, it is said in Shemoth rabbah c. 51 that death has no power over such ; as in the Torah all is contained that is required both in this world 1 See further the chapter on "The Jewish Doctrine of Sin," ch. xii. ' Taylor's edition, pp. 28, 29. 142 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP and in the world to come, he that faithfully studies the Torah and observes its precepts is doing all that lies in his power to ensure for himself eternal hfe ; therefore one is not surprised to read inSifre 40*, for example, that it is the Torah which leads men to eternal hfe in the next world ; in other words, the Torah is the medium, and its study is the condition, of immortality. It is worth recaUing in this connexion the striking words in Jn. 11*' : Whosoever liveth and believeth on me shall never die. What must strike the Christian reader in considering the quotations given above — and others of a hke nature could be given to almost any extent — is the fact that the initative in doing anything that is good seems to lie Solely with man ; man is justified both in his own eyes, and in the sight of God by doing these " works of the Law " ; and since salvation is through the Law it follows logically that the attainment of salvation is a matter for man's unaided exertions ; this is certainly not the teaching of either Biblical, Apocryphal or Pseudepigraphical litera- ture, nor, as we shall see in a later section, would it fairly represent the teaching of present-day Judaism ; but it does seem to be characteristic of Rabbinical teaching proper, at all events as crystaUized in the Talmud and aUied writings. We shaU have to return to the subject of " Works " later on ; it is sufficient to point out in the present connexion that it must clearly have been the more specific Rabbinical teaching of which St. Paul was thinking when he said, for example : By him every one that believeth is justified from all things, from which ye could not be justified by the law of Moses (Acts 13**), or when he wrote : By grace ye have been saved through faith ; and that not of yourselves ; it is the gift of God ; not of works, that no man should glory (Eph. 2*"*). This Pauline teaching is identical with that of the Founder of Christianity as expressed, for example, in such words as : Apart from Me ye can do nothing (Jn. 15*), or as more elaborately set forth in the parable of the labourers in the vineyard THE "TORAH" OBSERVED BY GOD 143 (Matt. 20^"^*). As we have seen, Rabbinical teaching was quite contrary to this ; according to it, salvation was through the Law, and the observance of the Law or Torah was purely a matter of the individual will. III. The Legalistic Element in Jewish Piety. What has been said in the preceding section receives emphasis in considering that the essence of Jewish piety consisted in love to the Torah. Faith, Obedience, Love, and every virtue, had as their condition single-hearted observance of the Torah. All that was done in the way of what was right was done in reference to the Torah ; the whole of man's relations with God were conditioned by faithful adherence to the Torah; it was the guide in all things, heavenly as well as earthly. This is pointedly brought out in St. Paul's words : so that the Law has been our tutor to bring us unto Christ, that we might be justified by faith. But now that faith is come, we are no longer under a tutor (Gal. 3"*' ^^). The Rabbis cited aU kinds of queer examples of how the patriarchs and other heroes of old showed forth their piety by obedience to the Torah ; they were the patterns upon which Jews of aU ages were required to frame their manner of Hfe. For example, it was said that Adam was created on the day before the Sabbath, in order that he might commence life by an act of Tom^observance, viz., in keeping the Sabbath (Sanhedrin 38*) ; again, Abraham, Isaac and Jacob kept as many Mitzvoth (i.e., " Com- mandments of the Law ") as there are waves in the sea {Sanhedrin 94''), a picturesque way of expressing "without number." Such acts of piety were done in imitation of divine example, for it was firmly believed that God Almighty was both a dihgent student of the Torah, and also Himself obeyed its precepts. In Aboda zarah 3'' we read : " There are twelve hours in the day ; during the first three the Holy One sits down and occupies Himself with the Torah " ; even in the Tar gum similar ideas are 144 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP entertained, thus in the Jerusalem Targum to Deut. 32*, it says : " For three hours (daily) does He (God) occupy Himself with the Tor ah." Further, in Bereshith rabhah c. 49 we read that, according to Rabbi Jehuda, " there is no day on which the Holy One does not announce a new Halakah to the Sanhedrin above. And just as the Most High deeply meditates upon the mysteries of the Tor ah, so does He also fulfil its precepts." Once more, in Shemoth rabhah c. 3 we read : " The way of the Holy One, Blessed be He, is not like the way of flesh and blood. He that is of flesh and blood teaches others how they should act, but does not do as he teaches. Not so the Holy One, but what He Himself does, that He commands Israel to do and observe." Clearly no piety could be deeper than that which took as its pattern the acts of God Himself, and therefore ful- filling the legal enactments of the Mosaic Law was most earnestly striven after. But when it is realized that this form of piety, this mere fulfilling of legal requirements, was per se believed to justify man in the sight of God, then one can understand better the point of many a Pauline saying on the subject of the Law ; such are, for example, Rom. 3^° : By the works of the Law shall no flesh be justified ; 5"* : We reckon, therefore, that a man is justified by faith apart from the works of the Law ; 6^* : Ye are not under Law, but under grace ; cf. further 7* ; §3 . gsi f . Qal. 2^^ ff., 3^^ ff. One. can easily understand how repugnant teaching of this kind must have been to the Jews in St. Paul's day ; it fully accounts for the fierce enmity which he encountered at their hands. IV. Israel the People of the Law. We have seen above that the Torah was believed to have been offered to all men originally, but that Israel alone, among all the nations of the world, accepted it {Pesikta 186*). It was this fact that constituted the children of ISRAEL THE PEOPLE OF THE LAW 145 Israel the " Chosen People " of God.i The titles " Chosen People," " Peculiar treasure," the " People of God " had their raison d'etre in the fact that the Israelites were the people of the Law. By their acceptance of the divine revelation at Sinai the Israelites beUeved themselves to be a holy nation in a sense in which it was impossible for any other nation to be. A relationship was here formed which made them in a very special way the " People of God." In the prophetical writings this relationship between the nation of Israel and God is hkened to that of a wife and her husband (e.g., Hos. 2'^, Isa. 54* ; 62^). The same thought is found also in Rabbinical literature ; for example, in Shemoth rabbah c. 51, after the nation has been referred to as Jehovah's spouse, it is said that the nuptials were celebrated at the giving of the Law on Mount Sinai. The identical thought, as is well known, is found in the New Testament regarding Christ and His Church (Eph. ga2-32) Another way in which the fact of Israel being the people of the Law is emphasized is by describing them as the people of the Covenant ; the Old Testament teaching on the Covenant at Sinai is often re-echoed in later Jewish writings ; in Wayyikra rabbah c. 6 we read of the covenant between God and Israel as that between the " God of the Torah" and the "people of the Torah." This, too, is a thought which finds expression in the New Testament, see especially Gal. 3""^', 4''*, Heb. 8« ff. The keeping of the Law by the Israelites differentiated them from all other nations of the world ; and the feeling of superiority over these which resulted from this had the natural tendency of increasing among the Israelites the spirit of exclusiveness, for the " holy nation " felt that they would become polluted if they came into contact with the profane outside world. How this feeling was fostered from the time of Ezra onwards we have already seen 1 Cf. the words of the prophet : You only have I known of all the families of the earth (Am. 3*). II— (2417) 146 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP (ch. i). In post-biblical Jewish literature this is well expressed in Shemoth rabbah c. 33, where it is said that the Gentiles may have nothing to do with the Torah, because it has been entrusted to Israel in the same way that a wife is entrusted to her husband. In Zehachim 116* an old tradition is preserved, according to which Balaam said to the Gentile Kings : " Jehovah has a precious jewel in His treasure-house, which was held hidden for nine hundred and seventy-four generations before the creation of the world ; this treasure He will give to His children (i.e., the Israelites)." So that this " treasure of treasures," as the Torah is also called, became the exclu- sive possession of the chosen people ; the Gentiles having once refused it, would not understand it now, even if it were offered to them ; therefore the Jews were forbidden to speak to them about the mysteries of their Torah. One is reminded of the words in Matt. 7* : Give not that which is holy unto the dogs} neither cast your pearls before swine, lest haply they trample them under their feet, and turn and rend you. The cleavage which this attitude occasioned between Jew and Gentile was naturally very marked ; the need of it is insisted on again and again in Jewish writings, nor are signs of it wanting in the Gospels ; for example in Matt. 10^' ' we read : Go not into any way of the Gentiles, and enter not into any city of the Samaritans, hut go rather to the lost sheep of the house of Israel ; or again 15''* : / am not sent but unto the lost sheep of the house of Israel ; 7* and 15*' have already been referred to. V. Christ and the Law. It will not be inappropriate here to devote a short section to this subject. In studying the attitude of Christ to the Law as presented in the Gospels, it will be noticed that the evidence is of a two-fold character : two sets of 1 A word similar to this is used of the Gentiles in Matt. 15*' CHRIST AND THE LAW 147 passages come before us which seem to differ in what they tell us concerning Christ in His attitude towards the Law. On the one hand, Christ recognizes the validity of the Law and emphasizes its binding character ; this is clear from such passages as the following :— Matt. S*'' ", Think not that I came to destroy the law or the prophets : I came not to destroy but to fulfil. For verily I say unto you, till heaven and earth pass away, one jot or one tittle shall in no wise pass away from the law, till all ihings be accom- plished, cf. Luke i6". Again, Matt. 7^*: All things therefore whatsoever ye would that men should do unto you, even so do ye also unto them ; for this is the law and the prophets. Luke le"' . . . They have Moses and the prophets ; let them hear them ; see, further, Matt. 5^* ; 125 ; 19I' ; 233 ; Luke lo"*. Not only does Christ thus emphasize the authority of the Law, but He rebukes the Pharisees for their wrong observance of it ; Ye have made void the word ' {law) of God because of your tradition. Matt. 15* ; ... and have left undone the weightier matters of the law. . . Matt. 23^'- While passages like these show Christ's zeal for the Law, there are, on the other hand, not a few in which Christ manifests a certain depreciation of it ; for example the whole passage, Mk. 2^*"^^, (with the parallel passages in Matt, and Luke,) especially vv. 2 j and 22 : No man seweth a piece of undressed cloth on an old garment : else that which should fill it up taketh from it, the new from the old, and a worse rent is made. And no man putteth new wine into old wine-skins, else the wine will burst the skins, and the wine perisheth, and the skins ; but they put new wine into fresh wine-skins. Luke 16^* : The law and the prophets were until John : from that time the gospel of the kingdom is preached ; cf. Matt. g^\ These few quotations will suffice to illustrate this ' The context shows that the Law is referred to ; some ancient authorities read law instead of word. 148 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP twofold attitude towards the Law, which is probably to be explained by the two following considerations. Though, in general, Christ recognized the validity of both the lettet and the spirit of the Law, it is clear that the Pharisaic inter- pretation of the Law called forth Christ's condemnation as violating at times both the letter and the spirit of it. In such cases it was, therefore, not the Law that Christ condemned, but the Pharisaic interpretation of it ; for example. Matt. 23"'' '*, Woe unto you, Scribes and Pharisees, hyprocrites ; for ye tithe mint and anise and cummin, and have left undone the weightier matters of the law, judg- ment and mercy and faith ; but these ye ought to have done, and not to have left the other undone. Ye blind guides, which strain out the gnat, and swallow the camel; Mark ^9-13^ p^ll jjygii ^0 yg ffgjgct the commandments of God, that ye may keep your tradition .... making void the word of God by your tradition which ye have delivered. See further, Matt, s^" ; 2y>' *; Luke ii"- "• ". In none of these passages does Christ seem to condemn the Law itself, but rather the Pharisaic traditions which had unwarrantably added burdens to it which it was never intended that men should bear. But there is a further consideration which is worth emphasizing. It will not be questioned that by degrees Christ's realization — as far as His human nature was concerned — of His mission on earth became fuller ;* deeper and wider conceptions arose regarding the all- embracing, world-wide character of His Kingdom on earth ; that He and His teaching would of necessity transcend all limitations must have been a conviction which asserted itself with ever-increasing insistence. And if this was so, then He must have recognized more and more the temporary character of the Law, and His words in Matt. 11^*, Luke 16^*, — The law and the prophets were 1 Cf. the words in Luke 2^2, And Jesus advanced in wisdom and stature . . . THE ORAL LAW 149 until John ; from that time the Gospel of the Kingdom of God is preached, — become very pregnant with meaning ; and even such a passage as Matt- s^'- ^^, which so empha- sizes the vahdity of the Law, may, in view of the words " till all things be accomplished," be really witnessing to its temporary character ; for one may take it that the " all things " refer to Christ's work on earth.' Then, too, the attitude of St. Paul towards the Law, which has not infrequently been regarded as antagonistic to Christ's example, is seen to be based, in effect, upon the later attitude of Christ Himself ; for if our surmise, mentioned above, be correct, it will be abundantly evident that, in reality, Christ was equally anxious with St. Paul to " break down the middle wall of partition " (Eph. 2^*). The Oral Tradition. A word must here be added regarding the authority of the Jewish Oral Law. This matter has an important bearing on the modem criticism of the Pentateuch {The Torah) as affecting Judaism. It might seem as if the accept- ance of modem critical results regarding the composite nature and varying dates of the elements that make up the Pentateuch must undermine the whole historical basis on which Judaism is reared. But these consequences do not necessarily follow. A Jewish theory of development based upon the view that the whole body of tradition as accepted by the living community — the Synagogue — constitutes the essence of Judaism has been developed. Its most briUiant exponents have been Kfochmal (1785- 1841), Rappoport (1790-1867), and Zunz (1794-1886).^ These scholars not only accepted, to a large extent, the main results of modem biblical criticism, but even contributed their own share to these ; they sought to ' Cf. John 17*, / glorified Thee on the earth, having accom- plished the work which Thou gavest me to do. " See the valuable introductory essay in Schechter's Studies (London, 1896). 150 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP compensate for the loss of the Bible as fornlerly interpreted by elevating the authority of tradition. And Jewish tradition, it need scarcely be added, is mainly embodied in the Oral Law, which on the Rabbinical view is regarded as expressing the secondary meaning of tl^e Scriptures. The origin of tradition in this sense was placed by Zunz in the Bible itself, and its continuity has been unbroken down to the present time. The voice of God is still heard, if no longer through prophets, yet through the mouth of " the scribes, the sages, the in- terpreters, the Law," and in the Synagogue Liturgy. " Indispensable," says Zunz, "is the free Spoken Word. Mankind has acquired all its ideal treasures only by Word of Mouth; an education continuing through all stages 6i life. In Israel, too, the Word of Instruction transmitted from mouth to mouth was never silenced." ^ AU this is nothing more nor less than the Jewish coun- terpart of the Christian doctrine of the living Catholic Church ; and this is explicitly stated in Prof. Schechter's essay. " Since . . . the interpretation of Scripture, or the Secondary Meaning, is mainly the product of changing historical influences, it follows that the centre of authority is actually removed from the Bible, and placed in some living body which, by reason of its being in touch with the ideal aspirations and religious needs of the age, is best able to determine the nature of the Secondary Meaning. This living body, however, is not represented by any section of the nation, or any corporate priesthood, or Rabbi-hood, but by the collective conscience of Catholic Israel, as embodied in the universal synagogue. The Synagogue ' with its long continuous cry after God for more than twenty-three centuries,' with its unremittent activity and teaching and developing the word of God, with its uninterrupted succession of Prophets, Psalmists, Scribes, Assideans, Rabbis, Patriarchs, • Cited in Schechter, op. cit. p. xx. ^ MODERN VIEWS ON THE ORAL LAW 151 Interpreters, Elucidators, Eminences, Teachers, with its glorious record of saints, martyrs, sages, philosophers, scholars and mystics ; this Synagogue, the only true witness to the past, and forming in all ages the sublimest expression of Israel's life, must also retain its authority as the sole true guide to the present and future." ^ As illustrating the views of another modem exponent of Jewish thought, the following passage is also instructive: " We must uphold Truth as the foundation of our Judaism. Not in a spirit of arrogance or contempt for the ignorance of the past, but with all humility. . . . The things we regard to-day as fictions were honestly believed by our forefathers to be true in their day, and we imply no pride or assumption of superiority, no slur or censure on their early historians, when their statements are discredited by our altered views due to the advance of human knowledge. If it be our duty to be honest and truthful to our fellow-men, surely it must be no less a duty to be honest and truthful to ourselves and to our conscience. In Religion then, seeing that God is the God of Truth, Truth must have precedence over all other considerations, and we must recognize that Religion can only continue to exist if founded on Truth and Reason." * The views just sketched are, however, by no means universally shared by the official exponents of present- day Judaism ; the attitude of the orthodox Synagogue is still conservative and anti-critical, on the whole. > Schechter, op. cit. pp. xxi f. « N. S. Joseph, Essentials of Judaism (published by the " Jewish Religious Union," London. 1906). CHAPTER VIII. The Jewish Conception of God. The Unity of God — The Nature and Attributes of God — The Relation of God to Israel and to the World. [Literature :— Weber, op. cit., pp. 48-65, 148-165 ; Schechter, Some aspects of Rabbinic Theology in JQR vi, pp. 405- 427, 633-647; Jacobs, Jewish Ideals, pp. 24-$g; Friedlander, The Jewish Religion, pp. 38-46; Dahnan, Die Worte Jesu, pp. 7^-82; Bousset, op. cit., pp. 170 fl., 291-313, 354 fi; Morris Joseph, op. cit., pp. 51-83. Oesterfey, Religion a Permanent Need of Human Nature, pp. 2^S•, Holtzmann, op cit., pp. 353-366; JE, Art. " God " ; Abrahams, Festival Studies, pp. 96-102.] I. The Unity of God. The second article of the Jewish Creed runs : " I firmly beUeve that the Creator, blessed be His name, is One ; that there is no Oneness hke His, in any way, and that He alone was, is, and will be our God." This behef is based upon the words of Deut. 6* : Hear, Israel ; the Lord, our God, the Lord is One. This belief was originally asserted against the Polytheism £ind idolatry of all the nations by whom the Israelites were surrounded ; I am the Lord thy God, who brought thee out from the land 0/ Egypt, out of the house of bondage ; thou shalt have no other gods before me (Exod. 20^ ^) ; the prohibition suggests that polytheism prevailed among the Israelites themselves untU a comparatively late period. Be that as it may, it seems certain that the nation as a whole had from the Exile onwards adopted the belief in One God, and One only. According to Berachoth i, i, it was from the time of the Exile that the daily — morning and evening — recitation of the Shema' became the solemn duty of every Jew. To the present day the unity of God is a behef to which every true Jew bears witness on his 152 THE PERSONALITY OF GOD 153 death-bed, vnth. his last breath he makes this confession of his faith- It is said that Rabbi Akiba, who suffered the martyr's death, breathed out at the last the word, " One," in reference to this belief. The intense importance laid upon the frequent articulate expression of this truth led to the utterance of some bold statements regarding the recitation of the Shema', which has always been looked upon as the embodiment of the doctrine of God's Unity. Thus in Berachoth 15'' it is said : " They cool the flames of Gehinnom (Hell) for him who reads the Shema' ;" again, in Berachoth i, 2 (ed. Fiebig) it is affirmed that to him who goes on reading the Shema' after the prescribed time no harm wiU come. As in the Old Testament, so in post-biblical literature, the single personality of God is frequently insisted upon. Moreover, it is interesting to note that in some of the books of this Hterature anthropomorphisms are toned down, in others they are altogether avoided ; thus, for example, in Ecclus. 33* [English Version 34*] : " Thy hand," in reference to God, is expressed in the second half of the verse by " Thy power," this being a more abstract conception ; or again in Wisdom 11^^ God's " arm " is spoken of as His " might," in Bar. 3* 2=*, God's " voice " is referred to as His " will." In the Targums anthropo- morphic expressions are put aside altogether. On the other hand, the impossibility of speaking about God without using expressions which are properly only apphc- able to man, is naturally often noticeable when God's action is spoken of ; so, for example, in the book of Baruch, God's eyes, and His ear, are spoken of (2^*, ") ; in Wisdom 11' we read : " Thy almighty hand, that made the world of matter without form " ; in 2 (4) Esdras 2^ ff., God is spoken of as sorrowing Uke a widow. Such anthropomorphisms and the like are inevitable, they are also interesting as showing the intensity of the belief in the Personality of God. They increase very greatly in Rabbinical literature, in which insistence on 154 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP God's Unity, in the strictly Jewish sense, was regarded as far more important than the inculcation of His spiritual nature. For this reason it was laid down [Berachoth i, i) that the Shema' should be recited every day twice ; and in the Talmud it was ordered that the concluding word, 'Echad {" One "), should be specially emphasized while it was being enunciated by holding out each syllable (Berachoth 19*). This word 'Echad is understood not only in the sense of "One," but also as implying " uniqueness " when used in reference to God (Megillah 28).^ The Hebrew word for God {'Elohim) which is plural in form, necessarily exercised the minds of Israel's post- biblical teachers, and pains were taken to refute the inference which Israel's enemies would naturally draw. It is pointed out that the context of the passages in which this word occurs contains verbs in the singular — ^though this is really no argument from a grammatical point of view ; — in Jer. Berachoth ix it is said that the phrase in Gen. i^'. Let us make mart in our image, is proved by the subsequent statement in verse 27, So God created man in his own image, to refer to one God only. Other curious arguments are used for " proving " God's unity ; for example, it is said, that the reason why in the beginning one man only was fashioned was to disprove the conten- tion of those who believe in more than one personahty in God {Sanhedrin 38*) ; God had neither associate nor helper, according to the same authority, 38^. " The ever recurrent principle throughout haggadic theological speculations is that there is only one Reshuth, ' personality,' or ' power.' " * As far as the Jewish belief in the Unity of God — as distinct from the Trinity in Unity — is concerned, Chris- tian and Jewish teaching are identical ; in Mark 12 *" in answer to the question. Which is the first commandment ' JE, vi, s- « JE. vi, 6. THE UNITY OF GOD 155 of all ? Christ replies : The first is, Hear, Israel ; the Lord our God, the Lord is One. But in Jewish Rabbinical Uterature this fundamental article was sometimes believed to be impugned by Christian teaching concerning God ; we find, therefore, that the truth of this article is frequently insisted upon in opposition to what was erroneously believed to be a denial of God's Unity on the part of Christians ; thus, for instance, in Koheleth Rabbah to iv, 8 it is said : " He is One, there are not two (i.e.. Father and Son) ; He is One, that is, the Holy One, Blessed be He ; for it is said of Him, ' Jehovah our God is One Jehovah,' and not two, for He has none that is related to Him in His world. He has no son, no brother" ; or again, in Bemidbar rabbah c. 15 there is a warning against those who teach that there are two divine Persons in the world ; or, once more, in order to get over the diffi- culty of Psalm 2^*, Kiss the Son lest He he angry, it is said {Ibid c. 10) that " son " means Torah ; cf., too, the passage Sanhedrin 38'', quoted above. But real, formal proofs — other than such incidental attempts referred to above — of the Unity of God are not met with in the Rabbinical literature proper ; it was unnecessary, for a fact which was regarded as so funda- mented, as so axiomatic, was not believed to require — ^was not conceived of as even permitting of formal proof ; besides which, every Jew in those days believed firmly that the doctrine of God's Unity had been once and for all declared to his forefathers by a direct act of divine revelation — a thing which is not believed by all modem Jews to have been the case. Therefore, the fact is always taken for granted, and is put forth as the foundation- stone on which the Jewish faith is reared. But in later days, owing in great measure to the influence of the speculations of Arabian philosophers, pantheistic ideas concerning the Godhead arose. Among some of the leading Jewish teachers doctrines were held which seemed 156 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP to impair the reality of the divine personality. For example, although it is clearly impossible to conceive of personality without imputing attributes, yet Saadya taught that no attribute could in strict construction be ascribed to God. " God has created the concept ' attribute ' ; but created things cannot belong to the essence of the Creator. Man may only predicate God's existence {Yeshuth)." In the same way Solomon Ibn Gabirol was the exponent of a system " bordering on theosophy, certainly approach- ing obscurity and the mystic elimination of individu- ahty in favour of an all-encompassing all-Divinity (Pantheism)."! This is the logical outcome of the Jewish definition of God by negations. But teaching of this kind, although undertaken in conscious opposition to the Christian doc- trine of the Triune Godhead, constituted a new danger in the opposite direction, and therefore necessitated a re- statement of Jewish belief on the subject ; so that attempts at a formal proof of the Unity of God were now put forth. The first of the later writers who endeavoured to formu- late a proof of this kind is Bachya, in his work Choboth ha-Lebaboth ; he is followed by Jehudah Halevi, who in his " Kuzari '^ follows something of the same line of argument. The arguments set forth are certainly ingenious at times ; the following may serve as an example : " The Unity of God is involved in the very conception of Him. If there were more gods than one, this dilemma would be presented : — (a) These many gods are of one essence ; then, according to the law of absolute identity, they are identical, and therefore only one ; — or, (J) These gods are differentiated by differences of essential qualities ; then they are not gods ; for God, to be God, must be absolute and simple (non-composite) being." " The argument does not run quite logically, but > JE vi, 9, lo. « JE vi, ii. MAIMONIDES ON THE UNITY OF GOD 157 it is clever, and was evidently acceptable in Halevi's day among his own people. Somewhat jejune, on the other hand, is the following : " The harmony and concordance prevaiUng in creation necessitate the apprehension of the world as the work of one artist and creator. Without a creator there could be no creation. Thus reason and logic compel the assumption of a creator ; but to assume more than one creator is irrational and iUogical." ^ More striking is the reasoning of Maimonides on the subject, as developed in his Moreh Nebukim (" Guide to the Perplexed "), though it is easy to see that not aU his statements can have been acceptable in Jewish orthodox circles. According to him, " philosophy recognizes the existence and perfection of God. God's existence is proved by the world, the effect, whence he draws the inference of God's existence, the cause. The whole Universe is only one individual, the parts of which are interdependent. The sublimar world is dependent upon the forces proceeding from the spheres, so that the Universe is a macrocosm {Moreh, ii, i),and thus the effect of one cause. Two gods or causes cannot be assumed, for they would have to be distinct in their community ; but God is absolute ; therefore He cannot be composite. The corporeal alone is numerical. God as incorporeal cannot be a multiple. But may God be said to be one ? Unity is accidence, as is multiplicity. ' God is One,' connotes a negative, i.e., God is not many. Of God it is possible only to say that He is, but not what He is. All attri- butes have a negative imphcation, even existence. . . All that is, save God, is only of possible existence ; but God is the necessarily existent {Moreh, i, 57). In Him there is no distinction between essence and existence, which distinction is in aU other existing beings. For this reason God is incorporeal, One, exalted above space and time, and most perfect {Moreh, n. Preface, 18, 21, 23, 24)." * • /£ vi, II. « IJnd. 158 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP Subtle and ingenious as arguments of this kind were, it may be safely asserted that they were not likely to convince unbelievers ; nor is it probable that they influ- enced the people at large ; what was required, and what must always be vastly more acceptable to the masses is a definite statement of behef, clear and concise. The doctrine of the Unity of God, according to its Jewish presentation, could hardly be more adequately and beautifully expressed than in the opening act of praise for the daily Morning Service of the Ssmagogue : "Magnified and praised be the living God. He is, and there is no limit in time unto His being. He is One, and there is no Unity like unto His Unity ; inconceivable is He, and unending in His Unity. He hath neither bodily forin nor substance : we can compare nought unto Him in His holi- ness. He was before an3K:hing that hath been created, even the first ; but His existence had no beginning." II. The Nature and Attributes of God. In this and the following section we have to deal with a subject upon which acute differences have existed, and do exist, between Jewish and Christian theologians ; we cannot help feeling, on the one hand, that the latter have not always treated the subject in the way that a greater knowledge of the facts would have demanded ; on the other hand, Jewish theologians do not, as a rule, acknowledge sufficiently what may be called the " extenu- ating circumstances " which have led Christian writers to lay undue stress on one side of the question. There is a very great deal in post-biblical, and especially in Rabbinical Mterature, to justify what Christian theologians have written regarding the Jewish belief in God ; there is also a very great deal in those writings to show that the Christian representation of the case is only partial. Prof. Schechter writes : " According to what we are told by so many theologians, God must be too far, the ' Singer, p. 2. JUDAISM VERSUS PANTHEISM 159 King of the Universe, too cosmopolitan, and the Father in heaven too high for the mind of the Jew, and thus an impossible object for worship." ^ It is impossible not to feel sympathy with this complaint ; but, on the other hand, it will be seen later on that it is not without some grounds that Christian theologians have written as they have ; where legitimate fault may be found with them is in the fact that too much stress is laid on one aspect of the question, while the other is more or less ignored ; that is to say, too much stress has been laid upon the transcendentalism of God, as presented in Jewish writings, while His Fatherhood and loving mercy. His interest in His people and His guiding of them — as likewise presented in Jewish writings — has for the most part been ignored. As a matter of fact, these Jewish writings cover long periods of time, reflect varying conceptions and beliefs, sometimes of individuals, sometimes more generally, and preserve the echoes of controversies in which the desire to refute an adversary often involves the utterance of statements which in their exaggeration run into another extreme. We are therefore convinced that the only fair way to treat this subject is to present, as far as possible, all the elements for consideration. Judaism rightly teaches, in centra-distinction to Pantheism, that while God is the Creator and Sustainer of the world and the fulness thereof, while He is in the world as being omnipresent, yet that God and the world are wholly distinct. According to one aspect of Jewish teaching on this subject, the belief in the absolute distinctness of God from the world was pushed to such extremes that His direct action and interference with the world of His own creation became to a great extent obscured, and His activity, so far as humanity was concerned, was said to b^ accomplished by means of ' Some Aspects of Rabbinic Theology, JQR. vi, 418. 160 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP intermediate agencies. ^ This teaching owed its origin to the Jewish conception of God's transcendent Righteousness and Holiness. This is insisted on with great urgency and frequency ; it is of course based on Old Testament teach- ing, but it occurs also again and again in Apocryphal and Pseudepigraphic literature, e.g., in the prayer of the High-Priest Simon II (3 Mace. 2^ ff.) God is addressed as the " All-holy " ; in Bar. i", 2" we read of " righteousness belonging unto God " ; in Wisdom 5* righteousness is spoken of as " God's Breastplate " ; in 12^^ we read : " Forasmuch as thou art righteous thyself, thou orderest all things righteously " ; in the Book of Jubilees 21*, it says : " A hving God is He, and holy is He, and true and righteous more than any other " ; and in the Psalms of Solomon 10*, " Righteous and holy is the Lord " ; in the Book of Enoch the thought occurs very often, e.g., i' ; 10^ ; 15' ; 25*, etc. And the same goes on all through Jewish literature, until we come down to the modem Jewish Liturgy, where the frequency of the phrase, " The Holy One, Blessed be He," eloquently expresses the same idea. One, therefore, so pure and holy and majestic, could not fittingly be thought of as having direct intercourse with man. This is further illustrated by the sanctity of God's name, which was not permitted to be pronounced by the lips of men ; for by a natural transition the holiness of God was also conceived of as attaching to His name, so that the articulation of the name of God came to be absolutely forbidden. This process can be seen at work in the Old Testament, where in some of the later books the name of God, i.e., Jahweh, is mostly avoided ; thus in Esther ^ and Ecclesiastes it is never mentioned, in Job 1 See chap. ix. ' In this book God Himself is never mentioned ; the same is true of I Mace., where the expression " Heaven " is often used instead, e.g., 4",*'',*'', etc., the EngUsh Version inserts " Lord " in several cases, but without textual justification. Cf. in Matt, the frequent expression " Kingdom of Heaven " for " Kingdom of God." THE MAJESTY OF GOD 161 only in two passages. Moreover, as is well known, in order to avoid pronouncing the name of " Jahweh," the Massoretes have everywhere altered the vowel-points, inserting instead those of " Lord " {Adomi), or of " God " (Elohim) if " Jahweh the Lord " was written in the text. In early post-biblical times this name was never mentioned excepting when the Blessing, in the name of the Lord, was given in the Temple.^ Various expedients were resorted to in order to avoid expressing the words " Jahweh," and even " God " ; thus, as a substitute, " The Highest " occurs with great frequency, so too " The Immortal," " Heaven," " The Blessed One," " The Holy One," and others of a like nature. Then, again, the expression " King of the World," for God, is often met with. In Talmudic literature this is frequently the way in which God is spoken of in parables ; in these the thought of God's Majesty and HoUness, which the title is intended to express, is emphasized by the fact that man is always represented as merely a material, not also a spiritual, being-; for as Weber has pointed out,^ in the parables in question man is usually spoken of as flesh and blood, i.e., as that which is transient and destructible, in contrast to the eternal King ;» cf. Matt. i6"; Jn. i^*; iCor. is""; Gal. i^\ These considerations all point to the conception that God is far removed from men and the world of His crea- tion, and that His Holiness and Majesty forbid conceiving of Him as coming into direct contact with humanity. This is, however, only half the truth ; there is another side to the Jewish conception of God which must be balanced against what has been said above. And here we cannot do better than quote the words of one who is probably better quahfied to write on the subject than any one else : * " To the Rabbis God is not only the Creator of the 1 Sotah, vii, 6. Joma, vi, 2. Sanhedrin, x, i. a Weber, op. cit. p. 149. ' Pesikta, 30". * Schechter, op. cit. pp.420 £f., where all references to the original authorities are given. 12— (2417) 162 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP world, or ' he who spake and the world existed,' but also the Father of the World, the goodness (or the good one) of the world, the Hfe of the world, the eye of the world, the secret of the world, the only one of the world, the old one of the world, the righteous one of the world, the master or lord of the world, and the space [makom) of the world, whilst in another place it is said of the divine presence that his chief dwelling is among those below. It is only sin which causes his removal to the upper regions. He is also compared by a Rabbi to the soul ' filhng the whole world, as the soul fills the body.' .... ' Thou art the Lord our God,' runs an ancient prayer, which is still recited every day, ' in heaven and on earth and in the highest heavens of heavens.' . . . Nor does ' height,' even if we do not take it metaphorically, imply remoteness of God, or any interruption in his communion with man. Notwithstanding all distance, ' God is near in every kind of nearness.' For though the distance between heaven and earth is so infinitely great, yet ' when a man comes to the sjnagogue and prays, God listens to him, for the petitioner is like a man who talks into the ear of his friend.' Directly a man has a thought of repentance, it instantly reaches the throne of God. The fact is, that the nearness of God is determined by the conduct of man, and by his realization of this nearness, that is, by his knowledge of God." Again : "To the Jew, God was at one and the same time above, beyond, and within the world, its soul and its Ufe." ^ There is yet another element which must be briefly referred to ; in their desire to emphasize the nearness of God to man, and His interest in all that concerned man, and in their eagerness to balance those transcendental conceptions of God already referred to, the Rabbis were sometimes led into an extreme of the opposite kind, and said things about God which to our ears border on ' Schechter, op. cit. p. 633, where all references to the original authorities are given. GOD AND THE "TORAH" 163 irreverence. It is mainly in connexion with the forah that these things are said, and though, strictly speaking, the references now to be given belong to the Chapter on the Tora/f, yet as they touch directly on the PersonaUty of God, they will not be inappropriate here. Reverence for the Torah, as we have already seen, almost rivalled that for God Himself, so that it was a natural consequence that the Divine thoughts, desires and actions should have been conceived of as being to a great extent bound up with the Torah. Thus God's whole life and activity are represented as being regulated by it ; it is said that He is subject to the authoritative decisions of the Rabbis concerning the precepts of the Torah (Sanhedrin 39") ; according to Berachoth 6», 7", God wears phylacteries and the Praying- shawl 1 when He prays ; once, it is said, the angels asked God when Rosh ha-shanah (i.e., " New Year's Day ") and Yom Kiffur (i.e., " The Day of Atonement ") were to be observed in heaven ; He referred them to the use which obtains on earth, where they were, of course, kept in accordance with the ordinances of the Torah [Pesihta 53^, 54")- Much more to the same effect could be quoted, but it is unnecessary. It was in such ways as these that the Rabbis sought to make God's nearness more real ; they were practical, rather than speculative ideas of God, and if the language savours of exaggeration to Westerns, it is only fair to remember that to Oriental ears exaggeration is the normal way of expressing things. III. The Relation of God to Israel and to THE World. It is impossible to separate altogether the Jewish conception of God from Jewish ideas concerning the Torah ; one may almost go so far as to say that the two ideas are inter-dependent. The Torah, as we have already seen, is the embodiment of the Divine mind as revealed ' See on these ch. xxi. 164 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP to men ; and only in so far as men observe the Torak will God have anything to do with them. As the Torah is the final expression of the Divine will and purpose, Jewish ideas of God must obviously to a great extent be guided and conditioned by it. If the Torah mirrors God's " way of thinking," then in it men wiU search for a knowledge of God, His Person, attributes, and the like. And this is the case with the Rabbinical teaching. As has been already pointed out in an earlier chapter, the Torah, although beheved to have been offered to aU the world, was yet only accepted by Israel — by Israel a/owe; the Israehtes alone placed themselves under its guidance as expressive of the will of God. Therefore, Israel became specifically the people of God, His " Pecuhar People " {'am segullah), the " Chosen race." ^ While this is the most characteristic view held by the Jews regarding God's relatiohship to them, yet its narrowness in face of their exalted conceptions regarding His Personality impelled them often to recognize that the Divine interest in Creation was of a wider character ; hence we find many passages which speak of God as One whose concern is with all men. Each of these ideas-may be illustrated by a few references. For the more usual view that, generally speaking, God is conceived of as the God of Israel alone or at least primarily so, the following passages wiU be found instructive : Ecclus. 17^', " He set a prince over every nation, but the portion which God appointed for Himself was Israel " ; 47^8^ " gy ^he name of the Lord God, that is called the God of Israel," " ; 50^*, " Praise ye now, therefore, Jehovah the God of Israel," * see also 33^"", 36"'^" ; Wisdom ig^^, " For in all things, Lord, thou didst magnify thy people, and glorify them, 1 Cf. Rashi on Gen. i». " Or, according to a more correct reading, " By the name of the Lord God that is called over Israel," see Kautsch in loc. • This seems to be the most correct reading, see Kautsch in loc. ISRAEL AND GOD 165 neither didst thou lightly regard them, but didst assist them in every time and place " ; in 2 Mace. 8" it says that " God fights for the Jews, and the Jews are therefore invulnerable, because they obey the commands that He has laid upon them." Turning to the later literature, we find the same thought frequently emphasized ; thus in Shemothrabbahc. 49 the relationship between God and Israel is represented as that between husband and wife ; ^ an inseparable bond in this sense was initiated at the giving of the Law on Mount Sinai. In the same passage it goes on to say that " if all peoples united in seeking to snap the bond of love that exists between Jehovah and Israel, they wovdd not be able to succeed." Wayyikra rabbah c. 6 tells of the covenant made on Mount Sinai, between God and His people, which neither will violate (cf. Gal. 3*", 4**). In Mekilta 46*, 47* it says : " Whosoever lifts himself up against Israel, shall be regarded as having lifted himself up against God " ; in the same tractate, 35*, Israel is spoken of as the " congregation of holy ones," in contradistinction to the nations of the world ; and this holiness can never be obliterated, even if Israel sins, for according to Wayyikra rabbah c. 24, God has given holiness to Israel for an everlasting possession. Again, it is said in Pesikta 76'', that on three occasions God was going to bring Israel to account, but each time He desisted because the Gentiles were going to gloat over it, and He did not wish to shame His people in the sight of the heathen. A rather striking way of expressing the special relation- ship that exists between God and Israel is contained in Pesikta rabbati 146*, where it is said that God only forgets the bad deeds of the Israelites, not the good ones.' But, on the other hand, more worthy conceptions regarding the Divine interest in the whole of His creation 1 Cf. Christ and His bride, the Church (Eph. 5", »-") ; here the Church corresponds to " the Congregation of Israel " (Keneseth Israel). ' See further Schechter op. cit. pp. 634-638. 166 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP are not infrequently expressed ; the book of Wisdom often lays stress on this, see especially iia*"^* ; 13I"' ; a very striking passage is Ecclus. 10^', " Of what kind is an honourable seed ? A seed of man. Of what kind is an honourable seed ? They that fear the Lord. Of what kind is a seed without honour ? A seed of man. Of what kind is a seed without honour ? They that transgress the commandments." ^ The general applica- tion of this catechetical verse shows clearly that no differentiation is contemplated between Jew and Gentile. The long passage in the same book, 17^"^*, is in the same sense, viz., that all men, being created in God's image, alike share His interest and love ; the last verse in this passage admirably sums up the underlying thought throughout : " The mercy of the Lord is upon all flesh." Nor is this wider outlook altogether wanting in the later Rabbinical literature ; for example, Sifre, Deuf. 40 : " God does not provide for Israel alone, but for all men." To quote Schechter again : " ... A God ' who had faith in the world when He created it,' * who mourned over its moral decay, which compelled him to punish it with the deluge, as a father mourns over the death of his son, and who, but for their sins, longed to make his abode among its inhabitants, is not to be supposed to have entirely given up all relations with the great majority of mankind, or to have ceased to take any concern in their well-being. ' Though his goodness, loving-kindness and mercy are with Israel, his right hand is always stretched forward to receive all those who come into the world, ... as it is said. Unto me every knee shall how, every tongue shall swear ' (Isa. 45^'^). For this confession from the Gentiles ' the Holy One is waiting.' "* Again, the words of Exod. 34^3, The Lord God, the God of Israel, are explained by 1 The English Version is unreliable in this passage, see Swete's text (Cambridge, 1896). 2 Sifre, 132^. 3 Schechter o^. aV. p. 638. GOD AND THE GENTILES 167 the Rabbis " to indicate the double relation of God to the world in general, and to Israel in particular. He is the Lord of all nations, while His name is especially attached to Israel. ^ Of more importance is the interpretation given to Deut. 6*, Hear, Israel, etc. (the Shema'), which runs as follows : — ' He is our God by making his name particu- larly attached to us ; but he is also the one God of all mankind. He is our God in this world, he will be the only God in the world to come, as it is said. And the Lord shall be King over all the earth ; in that day there shall he one Lord and his name one' (Zech. 14^).* For, 'in this world, the creatures, through the insinuations of the evU inclination, have divided themselves into various tongues, but in the world to come they will agree with one consent to call only on his name, as it is said. For them will I turn to the people a pure language, that they may all call upon the name of the Lord to serve Him with one consent ' (Zeph. 3*). Thus the Shema' not only contains a metaphysical statement (about the unity of God), but expresses a hope and belief — for everything connected with this verse has a certain dogmatic value — in the ultimate universal Kingdom of God." ^ This two-fold conception of God's attitude to man dates back to Old Testament times. It must be remem- bered that during the prophetical period and onwards the Israelites had much justification for the belief that they were the favourites of Heaven. The purity of their faith, as expressed by prophet and psalmist, their moral code, and their religious literature, marked them out as being, from a religious point of view, superior tojthe nations of the world. Their conception of God, as pictured in the later biblical books, was immeasurably higher than the beliefs of the nations concerning their gods. The knowledge of aU this, therefore, must have forced the 1 See Mekilta, 102^ , Sifre, yf- . 2 See Mekilta and Sifre, ibid. ' Schechter, ibid. pp. 639, 640. 168 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP conviction upon them that as they alone served the One and only God, the God of the whole earth, that therefore He regarded them as different from other races, as a people who alone of all nations had dedicated themselves to Him, and thus that His interest and care for them must be proportionately greater than for other men. On the other hand, with ever-widening views of the world, and with ever-growing conceptions of God, some, at all events, of Israel's thinkers realized that if there was indeed only One God, only One Creator of all the world, only One who was merciful, how could His activity and love be turned from the great mass of His creation, and be restricted to one race ? It was certainly to combat particularistic ideas, and with them conceptions which were derogatory to God's Greatness and Majesty that, for example, the book of Jonah was written, with its sublime doctrine of the universal Fatherhood of God. Thus, there must have arisen, even before the close of the Canon, two parties, the " Exclusivists " and the " Universalists " ; and their respective conceptions of God were coloured and influenced by these two antagon- istic ideas. And therefore it came about that two entirely different doctrines arose regarding the relationship between God and the world — doctrines which are found side by side in biblical, apocryphal, pseudepigraphic and rabbinical literature. CHAPTER IX. Intermediate Agencies between God and Man. QuASi-PERSONiFiCATiON of Attributes proper to God — Mefatron — Memra — The Holy Spirit — Bath kol — The Shehhinah — The Name — Bearing of these on Christian Doctrine. [Literature : — ^Weber, ch. xiii ; Bousset, pp. 336-350 ; Ausgewdhlte Mischnairactate (ed. Paul Fiebig), passim; Herford, Christianity in Talmud and Midrash, passim ; Taylor, Sayings of the Jewish Fathers (" Pirke Aboth ") 2. ed., passim; M. Friedlander pp. 22-38. 2 ed; The various articles in the JE which deal with the subject ; The Art. Shekhinah in Hastings DCG ; Holtzmann, pp. 317-322 ; Schiirer HJP, 11, iii, pp. 321-381.] One of the most striking elements in the oificial religion of the Synagogue, as contained in Targum, Talmud and Midrash, is the quasi-personification of certain attri- butes proper to God. They occupy an intermediate position between personalities and abstract beings. While on the one hand they are represented as being so closely connected with God as to appear as parts of Him, or attributes, they are, on the other hand, so often spoken of as undertaking individual action that they must be differentiated from God. The consideration of this Jewish doctrine of intermediate beings is of great importance to the Christian theologian, for it offers a striking com- mentary on the Christian doctrine of mediation ; this will become especially apparent on reading § i, below. In how far the two rehgions have influenced each other in this respect, it would be difficult to say ; but it is worth remembering that the Talmud and kindred writ- ings only crystalhze what had in very many cases been current long before. One may well ask how it came about that this teaching on intermediate beings arose ; and perhaps this is best explained by a reference to the well-known prohibition, 169 170 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP amongst Jews, of pronouncing the divine name. Just as there was a disinclination, on account of its transcendent holiness, to utter the name of God, and instead to sub- stitute paraphrases for it, so there arose a disinclination to ascribe action directly to God, because of His inexpres- sible majesty and holiness ; and, therefore, the different departments of divine activity were accomplished by means of these intermediate beings. Historically, angels and spirits precede the personifica- tions which we are about to consider,^ and indeed the germ of the conception of all these intermediate beings is to be sought in the Old Testament ; it follows, therefore, that for a proper understanding of the whole subject. Old Testament teaching must to some extent be taken into consideration. The intermediate beings to be dealt with are four in number : — I. Metatron. II. Memra. III. The Holy Spirit. IV. The Shekhinah. A fifth, the Name, which occupies, however, a much less prominent position, will also be considered ; and in § iii a brief reference will be made to the curious conception expressed by the term Bath Kol. I. Metatron. The etymology of this word is the subject of contro" versy ; but it is necessary to form some opinion as to its derivation, for, clearly, the name must originally have given some indication regarding the functions of this personality. The date of the first mention of the word is not without importance in seeking to fix its derivation. According to the JE (viii, 519), it is Elisha ben Abuyah ^ who first 1 Cf., for example, the following passages : Exod. 23'"-*', 32", 33^ ; Num. 22, I Sam. i6" ft. ; i Kings. 22" fE. ; Job 1, 2. = In the Babylonian Talmud, tractate Chagigah 15" . DERIVATION OF " METATRON " 171 refers to Metatron under this name ; this Rabbi lived during the first half of the second century a.d. ; therefore the behef regarding Metatron must have been much earlier than this date, for, as we have had to remark before, the beliefs which are crystallized in the Talmud have a history before their appearance there. This early date of the mention of the word makes it improbable that it was derived from the Latin, for Roman influence upon Jewish literature is not likely to have been sufficiently powerful to have induced Jewish teachers to derive such a word as Metatron from the Latin. A Latin derivation is the less likely in that the first mention of Metatron occurs in the Babylonian Talmud. We cannot, therefore, agree with the writer on this subject in the JE, when he says that " the derivation from the Latin ' metator ' ( = ' guide ') is doubtless correct." It would be difficult to point to any instance of the Latin word being used in this sense. " Divider " or " Measurer " ; is what the word means, but not " Guide." There is, it is true, at least one passage which could be quoted in favour of this derivation when first read, but not on considering it further. The passage is from Bereshith rabbah, c. 5 ; it is here said that the voice of the Holy One became to Moses a Metator, in order to show him the boundaries of the Promised Land. There is, however, here nothing about dividing or measuring, it is only a question of indicating whereabouts the Promised Land lay ; so that the fact that in this passage Metator is used instead of Metatron points to a confusion of ideas, and cannot be said to throw any real light upon the derivation of Metatron. Further, Mr. Herford has shown ^ how untenable is the theory ^ Which regards the idea of Metatron as of Gnostic origin, or which identifies him with the " Logos " of the Jewish Alexandrine phil- osophy. Another improbable theory is that which seeks 1 Op. cit., pp. 285-290. 2,73-376. 2 See JE. viii, 519. 172 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP to identify Metatron with the Zoroastrian Mithra ; but how very unlikely this is will be clear to anyone reading, for example, Cumont's Les Mysteres de Mithra.^ Once more, it is pointed out that the numerical value of the letters ^ of the word Metatron are equal to 314 ; but this is also the numerical value of the letters of the word Shaddai, " Almighty " ; therefore, it is said, the two words are synonymous, Metatron means " Almighty ! " This theory is, of course, hardly to be taken seriously, though in favour of it are quoted two passages, one from the Babylonian and one from the Jerusalem Talmud,^ in which Metatron bears the title of " Prince of the World " ; a title which more probably implies that he is the representative of God in the world. All these theories must be rejected, and one can scarcely doubt that the explanation which Weber gives is the correct one. He holds that Metatron is a hebraized form of the Greek Metathronos or perhaps Metatyrannos, i.e., one who occupies the next rank to the ruler.* This explanation accords with the functions of Metatron, which we now proceed briefly to examine : — i. The representative of God. This function shows Metatron as one who stands in the closest relationship to God, for he occupies this position by virtue of the fact that he is second to God only ; indeed, he is sometimes spoken of in such a way as to make it difficult to see any difference between him and the Almighty ; for example, in Sanhedrin 38^, in reference to the words of Exod. 24*, And he (God) said unto Moses, Come up unto the Lord, it is ^ See especially ch. i, Les Origines, pp. 1-25. ' The letters of the Hebrew alphabet are also numerals. » ChulUn 60^, Jehamoth i&' . ♦ Weber, op. cit., p. 178 ; we cannot, however, follow Weber when he speaks of the analogy of the " Crown Prince," or as we should say, the Prince of Wales ; for this would imply an inherent ultimate right to the highest position itself ; an idea of this kind, as Weber himself points out, is never put forward on behalf of Metatron. THE FUNCTIONS OF " METATRON " 173 asked : " Why does not God say : ' Come up unto Me ' ?" The answer is : "It was Metatron, whose name is equal to that of God, to whom he was bidden to come up." Logically, there is no difference here between God and Metatron. One must remember the significance there was in names among the Jews to realize the import- ance of this passage ; the name was equivalent to its bearer (see further on this below). In the passage just quoted, Metatron is said to bear the " Tetragrammaton," i.e. the four consonants which represent the unpronounce- able name of God ; another instance of the practical identity between God and Metatron. Elsewhere ^ Metatron is described as the teacher of children, but in other passages this is said to be the duty of God alone. But his function of representing God is perhaps seen most distinctly in the title that is given him of the " Prince of the World " (Sar ha'oldm), which shows that he was thought of as the ruler of the world.* ii. The Consoler of God. This function ascribed to Metatron, which to us appears as bordering on irrever- ence, well illustrates the extremely illogical way in which at one time God is represented as wholly impassible, at another as partaking of human feelings. It is said that when God was lamenting the death of Moses, Metatron comforted Him with the words : " He was Thine in Ufe, in death he is also Thine." Some extraordinary ideas seem to have been current in the early centuries of the Christian era concerning Metatron and Moses ; in the Apocalyptic writing called The Ascension of Moses, ^ for example, we read that Metatron transformed the body of Moses into a fiery figure like that of the angels and led him up through the seven heavens. See further below (p. 177). * Abodah zarah f' . a Chullin 60' Jehamoth 16^ . » Arlabic version, ed. Gaster, see JE, i, 679. 174 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP Again, when the Temple was destroyed, God is repre- sented as weeping ; but Metatron sought to comfort Him, saying : " I will weep, but weep not Thou." But God answered : "If thou wilt not suffer me to weep, I will go whither thou canst not come, and there wiU I lament." The title " Prince of the Presence," which is applied to Metatron, and which impUes that he is the constant companion of God, accounts perhaps for the amazing intimacy between Metatron and the Almighty which the foregoing points to as having existed. iii. The Mediator between God and Israel. The most characteristic function of Metatron is that in which he appears as mediator. This is very important, for it shows that the idea of Mediation, in quite a Christian sense, was current among the Jews in pre-Christian times. It is true, that, as far as Rabbinical literature is concerned, this statement could not be made positively, though doctrines of this kind which appear in Talmud and Midrash (let alone the Targums) certainly do not occur there for the first time. What leads to the conviction that the doctrine of Mediation existed in post-biblical Jewish theology in connexion with Metatron is his identification with Enoch (see below), and the teaching on this subject in the Book of Enoch, the latest portions of which are pre-Christian. It must be remembered, too, that the Old Testament offers much on which to found a doctrine of Mediation. As one who, as we have seen, was so much in the presence of God, and who therefore stands in the closest intimacy with Him, Metatron occupies an appropriate position as Israel's intercessor. It will, therefore, not surprise us to find that in one passage Moses is represented as asking Metatron to intercede with God on his behalf, in order that his life might be prolonged. His office of Advocate of Israel is clearly brought out in Chagigah 15', where he is represented as writing down, in the presence " METATRON " THE " HEAVENLY SCRIBE " 175 of God, the merits of the Children of Israel ; he is thus spoken of as the " Great Scribe," the advocate who pleads on behalf of his clients before the Judge. In Bemidhar rabhah, c. 12, the term " Mediator " is directly applied to Metatron, and, what is still more significant, he is represented as the reconciler between God and the Chosen People. iv. Metatron identified with Enoch. In the Jerusalem Targum (Pseudo- Jonathan) to Gen. 5^* Metatron is said to be the name of Enoch ; it says there : " Enoch ascended into Heaven through the Word of God, and He (God) called him Metatron, the great scribe.^ It is owing to this passage, as Bousset points out,^ that the figure of Metatron, which plays such a prominent part in the later speculations, first assumes importance in Jewish theology ; " for," he goes on to say, " it may be taken for granted that the figure of Metatron and that of the Son of Man, stand in some relation to one another." ^ Another reason for identifying Metatron with Enoch is that both are referred to as the ' ' heavenly scribe " ; we have just seen how the title is applied to Metatron, and in reference to Enoch it is found in the Book of Jubilees ^ : " And he (Enoch) was taken away from among the children of men, and we led him into the garden of Eden to renown and honour, and behold, he writes down there the judgment and the verdict upon the world and upon aU the evil deeds of the children of men." * In the Hebrew writings, according to Ludwig Blau, " Metatron fiUs the role of Enoch in the Apocrypha in bearing witness to the sins of mankind. Since both sources represent him as a youth, it may be assumed that the first versions of the Hebrew mystical works, though they received » Weber op. cit., p. 178. ^ op. cit., p. 348. ^ See the whole passage in Bousset. * Cf. Die Apokryphen und Pseudepigraphen des A.T. (ed. Kautsch), p. 47. 176 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP their present form in the Geonic period, ^ originated in antiquity, so that the conception of Metatron must likewise date from an early period." ^ It is characteristic that while Metatron, or Enoch, appears as the accuser of mankind in general, he occupies the r6le of intercessor and reconciler as far as the children of Israel are concerned. V. Metatron identified with Michael the Archangel. This identification is found in the Jerusalem Targum (Pseudo- Jonathan) to Exod. 24^ ; but there are other distinct indications of their identity. He is called Michael in the Ascension of Isaiah g^^ ; ^ both appear as advocate and mediator of Israel ; we have seen that this is the case with Metatron, and that he is also known as the "great scribe," who writes down in the presence of God the merits of the children of Israel. Michael fulfils precisely the same functions; he is called the " Advocate of the Jews," he is also represented as the High-priest * who constantly makes intercession for Israel ; as to his filling the office of the "great scribe, " see Enoch 89'"' '!■ '6- ". Another mark of their identity is to be seen in their connexion with Moses ; thus, we are told that Metatron helped to bury the body of Moses, Jer. Targ. (Jonathan) to Deut. 34*, and we have seen how he is represented as comforting God on the death of Moses ; Michael, it is said, would not bring the soul of Moses to God, because he had been Moses' teacher ; the ptissage does not seem clear, but the point is that he is brought into connex-^ ion with Moses, after the death of the latter, just as Metatron is. In the Prayet-Book of the Jews of Abyssinia there is a very curious account of the death of Moses which is * I.e., 589-1040 A.D. ; the Geonim, " Princes" (of the Captivity), were the acknowledged heads of the academies or schools of Sura and Pumbeditha, in Babylonia ; they were the official heads of dispersed Judaism in things judicial as well as spiritual. ' L. Blau in JE, viii, 519, where further details will be found. ' Ibid. * Chagigah 12''. "METATRON" ONE OF THE ANGELS 177 recited as part of the Office for the Burial of the Dead ; in this, Michael, the Angel of Death (in a different sense of course from Sammael, and corresponding perhaps to Isis and Nephthys among the Egyptians), plays an important part.i Cf. in this connexion Jude g: But Michael the Arch- angel when contending with the devil he disputed about the body of Moses. ... vi. Metatron one of the angels. In an extraordinary passage {Chagigah 15*) it is shown clearly, if somewhat drastically, that Metatron, in spite of the very pre-eminent position which he seems to occupy, was, in reality, of the angelic order, and nothing more. This passage describes how Elisha ben Abujah entered Paradise, and there " saw Metatron, to whom was given the power to sit and write down the merits of Israel." EHsha ben Abujah said : " It is taught that on high there is no sitting, no strife, no parting, and no joining. Can there be. Heaven forbid ! two powers ? " Then, we are told, " they brought out Metatron and gave him sixty lashes of fire." This was done, as Mr. Herford points out (quoting Tosaphoth), to show that Metatron was not superior in kind to the other angels, however much he might be in degree. ^ This passage is significant from another point of view alto- gether, for it bears witness, in an unmistakable manner, to the fact that popular belief did regard Metatron as a being who was, at the lowest estimate, semi-divine. We are often apt, at the present day, to regard as allegorical or parabolic the substance as well as the form of many a behef contained in the Talmud and other kindred writings ; it seems to us, nowadays, quite incredible that people in a high state of civilization and religious progress should have actually believed many things which we could not regard as otherwise than the product of fantastic imagina- tion ; nevertheless, it is well that we should try and divest ourselves of this erroneous impression ; let it be remembered that even in the late Middle Ages — nay, ' See Mota Muse, ed. Faitlovitch (Paris 1906). » Op. cit. p. 288. 13— ("4«7) 178 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP so late as a few generations ago — there was, in the world in general, no clear differentiation beween fable and fact ; what must, therefore, have been the mental attitude towards aU that partook, or was believed to partake, of a supernatural character five hundred years and more earlier ? Above aU, let it be remembered that the innate religiousness of the Jew, to which reference has already been made in an earlier chapter, necessarily increases the tendency, more or less common to all in an unscientific age, to formulate theories, which soon crystallize into belief, concerning all that has to do with the invisible world of supernatural agencies. The passage to which reference has been made, shows not merely that Metatron was regarded as a personality endued with supernatural powers — that was universal among the Palestinian Jews as well as those of the Diaspora — but that he was by some, at all events, believed to come perilously near equality with God. It was for this latter reason, primarily, as it seems to us, that the passage last quoted was written ; and it was designed to show those whom it concerned that great as Metatron was, he was nevertheless, of no higher being than such as was proper to the order of angels. II. Memra, The " Word." There are two roots in Hebrew from which the noun "Word" can come, dabar and 'amar, and both are used in reference to the " Word " of God. Whatever may originally have been the difference between these two is immaterial for our present purpose ; but it is the latter from which Memra comes, and it is this which has come to be used specifically of God's " Word." It is worth noting that Philo uses Rema and Logos indis- criminately (see below) ; but just as in the case of Memra, so it is with Logos, which has come to be used technically ; both, as we shall see, became personal names. But for the history of the idea of the " Word " of God, THE "WORD" OF THE LORD 179 it is of no importance which of the two roots is used ; so that, although Memra is never used in the Old Testa- ment, we must, nevertheless, look to the Old Testament in order to follow the history of the idea. In none of the intermediate agencies with which we are dealing can the development be so clearly seen as in the case of the Memra, or " Word " of God ; this development can be most easily followed if it is illustrated by means of some quotations from the different sources : — i. In a number of passages in the Old Testament the expression the " Word," in reference to Jehovah, is used in a way which, one can easily understand, appeared to Jewish thinkers of a later age to indicate that the " Word " meant something more than a mere abstrac- tion ; a few such passages may be given : — Deut. 5^ : I stood between the Lord and you at that time, to show you the word of the Lord. Num. 15*^ : He hath despised the word of the Lord. Ps. 105^® : The word of the Lord tried him. Ps. 107^" : He sendeth his word and healeth them. Ps. 119^^: Thy word have I hid in my heart. Remembering what has already been said as to the great difference there is between Eastern and Western ways of thought, between twentieth century ways of looking at things and those of two thousand years ago, one can readily understand that when passages such as these came to be explained the idea of the " word " being something not identical with Jehovah naturally suggested itself. ii. In post-biblical times one can see reflected in the Apocrypha how this development had proceeded. It is there seen that God's action, and especially His creative activity, was conceived of as working through His word ; this was taken to be the meaning, e.g., of such a passage as. By the word of the Lord were the, heavens made (Ps. 33") ; and the whole of the Creation, as described in Gen. i,was believed to have been accomplished by means of his word. 180 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP One is irresistibly reminded of Jn. i'~s ; these verses, or at any rate the first three, are strictly in accord with orthodox Jewish teaching, though the ■ Jewish inUrpretation of them would obviously differ from that of a Christian (See further below). The following passages wiU illustrate this development : Ecclus. 42 ^® : In the words of the Lord are his works. Wisd. 9^ : God of my fathers, and Lord of mercy, Who hast made all things with thy word. . . ; j316. 16 _. Tfiine almighty word leaped down heaven out of thy royal throne, as a fierce man of war into the midst of a land of destruction, and brought thine unfeigned commandment as a sharp sword, and standing up filled all things with death ; and it touched the heaven, but it stood upon the earth. 2 (4) Esdras 6*^ : Thy word was (i.e., made) a perfect work ; the reference is to the first day of creation. iii. In turning to the Targums we find this exempli- fied further, but, as will be seen, a considerable development takes place, the " Word " becomes now a definite personality. Exod. 19^' : And Moses brought forth the people out of the camp to meet God ; the Targum of Onkelos explains these words as meaning that " Moses led the people forth to meet the Word of God." Deut. I*" : The Lord your God goeth before you ; the same Targum paraphrases : " Jehovah, your God, whose Word leads you." Deut. 4^9 : Lest thou lift up thine eyes unto heaven, and when thou seest the sun and the moon and the stars, even all the host of heaven, thou be drawn away and worship them, and serve them, which the Lord thy God hath divided unto all the peoples under ihe whole heaven ; " The other nations are subject unto the stars, but Israel is the heritage of Memra." Deut. 5^ : I stood between the Lord and you at that time, to show you the word of the Lord, is explained ; " I stood between the Wordoi Jehovah and you." PHILO'S TEACHING ON THE "LOGOS" 181 Again, the Targum of Jonathan gives the following explanations of the respective passages of Scripture : 2 Sam. 6' : And the anger of the Lord was kindled against Uzzah ; and God smote him there for his error ; and there he died by the ark of God ; " The Memra of God slew Uzzah." 1 Kings 8^0 : Forgive thy people which have sinned against thee ; " Forgive the people all their misdeeds, which they have committed against thee and against thy Word." 2 Kings 19 28 : Because of thy raging (i.e. Sennacherib's) against me, and for that thine arrogancy is come up into my ears, therefore will I put my hook into thy nose. . . . ; " Thou hast angered my Word." iv. It is very necessary that a brief reference should be made to the teaching of Philo concerning the divine Word or Logos. This great Jewish philosopher, who lived during the whole of Christ's sojourn here on earth, combined in his teaching the faith of Judaism with the philosophy of Greece. " By the Logos Philo understands the power of God, or the active Divine intelligence in general ; he designates it as the idea which comprises all other ideas, the power which comprises all powers in itself, as the entirety of the supersensuous world of the Divine powers." ^ The Logos, which is also spoken of as Rema, is the means whereby the creation of the world was effected. But there are two points in the teaching of Philo on this subject which are of very special interest from the Christian point of view, because they stand midway between the Jewish and Christian doctrines of mediation. The first is that the Logos occupies the position of intermediary be- tween God and His created world ; he is the interceder for mortals to the Immortal, and he comes as the 1 Zeller, Die Philosophie der Griechen in ihrer gesohichtlichen Entwickelung iii, 2, p. 371, quoted in Schiirer, op. cit„ II, iii, 374. 182 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP messenger of God, to proclaim" God's will; while he is called the first-born of God, who was from the beginning, he is yet " after the likeness of man " ; as man's advocate and interceder with God he is spoken of as the " High-priest." The second is that his main work is the liberation of man from evil ; he himself is free from sin both conscious and unconscious, and he is said to live in the hearts of men to keep them from sin and destruction ; if he leaves the heart of a man, guUt gains the upper hand. Like the Memra of the Targums the Logos of Philo regards the Jewish nation as his special care. In connexion with the above compare Jn. i*"* : In the beginning was the Word . . . all things were made by him : and without him was not anything made that hath been made. See also Rom. 8^* : It is Christ . . . who also maketh intercession for us : cf . Heb. y^^ ; Col. i^^ : Whh is the image of the invisijble God, the first-born of all creation. Phil. 2' : . . . Being made in the likeness of men . . . ; cf. Rom. 8* : Again in Jn. 3^ : To this end was the Son of God manifested, that he might destroy the works of the devil. Heb. 4^*,^" : Having then a great high-priest who hath passed through the heavens, Jesus the Son of God . . . cf. II*. Heb. 4^* : . . . But one that hath been in all points tempted like as we are, yet without sin. And lastly, Jn. 15^ : Without me ye can do nothing. V. As an example of the somewhat later Jewish teach- ing, the following, from Shir rabhah ^ is instructive, as it illustrates the underlying conception of the Memra. The passage is dealing with the account of the giving of the Law on Mount Sinai, and it is explained that the " Word " [Memra) came forth from the mouth of God when the Ten Commandments were pronounced, and * Weber p. 1 80, ORIGIN OF THE " MEMRA "-IDEA 183 went forth to each Israelite, asking each if he would accept these commandments, and telling him at the same time the duties involved, as well as the rewards to be received in case of obedience. As soon as an Israehte signified his willingness to become obedient to the Law, the " Word " kissed him on his lips. Reviewing the passages as a whole one may say that the " Word " is represented as a divine power, working for the salvation of Israel ; this divine power becomes developed into a Personality, who, as we have seen, occupies a position of mediatpr between God and His chosen people. vi. A word as to how it came about at all that the conception of the Memra arose will find an appropriate place here. No doubt it was in part due to the exigencies of bibUcal interpretation, as pointed out in § i above ; but that can only have been one of the results of the evolution of the idea which must have been working in the minds of Jewish thinkers centuries before. The real reason lay deeper. In post-biblical Jewish theology there is little to show that God Almighty personally directs the course of the world's history. Yet it was unthinkable that God's interest in His people should have become any less than it was of old, or that there was no divine interference in the history of the nations which had been such a marked feature intheteachingof thegreatprophets. On the one hand, that is to say, it was held to be deroga- tory on the part of Jehovah to concern Himself personally with mere human affairs, ^ for His glory and majesty and transcendent greatness seemed to place Him infinitely distant from insignificant and weak mortals. On the other hand, it was inconceivable that God should forget about and forsake His own creation. The question, therefore, arose as to how it was possible to believe in God's activity in the world without detracting, as it seemed, ' See the chapter on GOD. 184 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP from His majesty and honour ? How to steer a middle course between the belief that God deputed certain actions to His representatives, and avoiding the danger to the fundamental tenet of Judaism, the unity of God ? The religious teachers hit upon the via media of the behef in such intermediate agencies as the Memra and Metatron, who accomplished God's will on earth. They were inferior to God, having been created by Him ; but being endowed with divine attributes, they were His representatives, in a special manner, in all their activity on earth.^ vii. It is interesting to notice that the teaching con- cerning the " Word " is faintly observable even in the modem Jewish Liturgy. In the Evening Service of the Synagogue occurs the following : " Blessed art thou, O Lord our God, King of the universe, who at thy word bringest on the evening twihght. . . . " " On another occasion it says : " Blessed art thou, O Lord our God, King of the universe, by whose word all things exist " ; * and again, " Blessed art thou, O Lord our God, King Of the universe, by whose word the heavens were created, and by the breath of whose mouth all their host." This latter is the commencement of the act of praise which is ordered to be said on the appearance of the new moon.* It wiU be noticed that in each case here it is in connexion with the divine creative activity that the word is mentioned ; so that here again one is forcibly reminded of Jn. i^~'. III. The Holy Spirit. The first question that naturally arises is that of the Spirit's i. Personality. It is by no means always clear as to 1 Cf. the doctrine of the Demiurge in the Gnostic systems of the second and third centuries a.d. 2 Singer, p. 96. 3 Ibid., p. 290. • Ibid,, p. 292. PERSONALITY OF THE HOLY SPIRIT 185 whether one is justified in speaking at all of the Person- ality of the Holy Spirit in Jewish theology. In the Bible, " spirit " (ruach) is not a word of uniform gender ; in hke manner the Spirit is, in post-bibhcal Jewish writings, spoken of interchangeably as masculine and feminine ; thus in the Tahnud and Midrash it is used now as feminine and now as masculine, but more usually as a feminine.^ This is important, for, as is well known, the feminine in Hebrew and cognate languages is often used for the neuter ; therefore if and when ruach {" spirit ") is referred to as a feminine noun, it must be regarded as impersonal. And in various passages it is so used ; for example, when spoken of as a power going out from God ^ there is clearly no thought of individual personality connected with it. But, on the other hand, personality is certainly implied in such a passage as Wayyikra rabbah c. 6, when the Spirit is spoken of as the defender of Israel, who enumerates before God the merits of the Israelites ; ^ or again in Debarim rabbah c. ii, where quotations from the Bible are referred to as the Spirit's utterances.* But then again, when the activity of the Holy Spirit is described as hght from God, or as a divine mode of utterance {Bereshith rabbah c. 85), or as the " spirit of prophecy " [Jer. Targ. to Gen. 43^*), the idea of personahty obviously recedes ; yet, his manifold activity, above aU as the inspirer of Holy Scripture, as clearly implies personality. It would seem that as the personality of the Holy Spirit became expressed more distinctly and explicitly, this development provoked keener and more intense hostility in Rabbinical circles. It cannot be denied that certain 1 Weber, p. 191. 2 This would accord with the definition which Maimonides gives of the Holy Spirit, viz., " a divine potency." ' Cf. I, iii above for the like office of Metatron. * Cf. I Pet. 1^^, Knowing this first, that no prophecy of Scripture is of private interpretation . . . but men spake from God, being moved by the Holy Spirit. 186 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP passages in the Old Testament are strongly suggestive of the personality of the Spirit, for example : Is. 40^*' ^*, Who hath directed the Spirit of the Lord or being his coun- sellor hath taught him ? With whom took he counsel, and who instructed him, and taught him in the path of judgment, and taught him knowledge, and showed to him understanding ? Or Is. 48", And now the Lord Gqd hath sent me and his spirit. Ps. 139', Whither shall I go then from thy spirit P And, as we have seen, there are indications in. the post- biblical literature which confirm and emphasize such bibhcal examples. We must enquire next as to the Spirit's ii. Relationship to God. According to Jewish belief the Holy Spirit was created ; the words of Gen. i" {The spirit of God moved upon the face of the waters) is inter- preted as an act of creation on the part of God. It is interesting to observe that the Holy Spirit is spoken of as " Light of Light ; " ^ but though this expression accords with that found in the Nicene Creed, it does not, of course, imply the same truth. One may perhaps regard as an analogy, as far as the Jewish doctrine is concerned, the Hght which is said to have shone from the face of Moses on his descending from Mount Sinai {Ex. 39" ff.). That the Holy Spirit does not " proceed " from the Father in the Christian sense is clear from the comment on Gen. i* just referred to, which is that found in the Targ. of Onkelos ; he is, more- over, spoken of in the Jer Targ. to Gen. 41^^ {A man in whom the Spirit of God is) as the " Spirit (coming) from before Jehovah " (ruach min qedem Jahweh), an expression which precludes the idea of emanation from the Deity. He is rather the Spirit who is sent out, like other mes- sengers, from the presence of God to accomplish the divine commands. For the idea of the Spirit being a messenger, i.e., angel, see Bousset, op. cit. p. 343 ; to the references there given may perhaps be added the account of the Holy Spirit being sent 1 Weber, p. 190. THE HOLY SPIRIT'S ACTIVITY 187 to Isaiah during his martyrdom (cf. Luke aa *»). In the pseu- depigraphic work, called The Martyrdom of Isaiah ' (5 '*), occurs the following : " But Isaiah neither cried out nor wept while he was being sawn asunder (cf. Hebr. 1 1 "), but his mouth conversed with the Holy Spirit until he had been sawn in two." It is said [Yoma 21'') that in early times the Holy Spirit, acting as God's messenger, was always at work in the midst of Israel ; but, apparently, during, and after, the Exile this ceased, for he was not present in the Second Temple ; indeed, he is said to have returned to God after the destruction of Solomon's Temple. On the other hand, it would seem that his activity had not entirely ceased in later times, for it is said that after the time of Malachi he no more inspired men to write books of the Bible, though in other respects he influenced men. As though to try and account for this inconsistency, it is taught that in the post-exilic and , later times the Holy Spirit was indeed stiU at work, but that it was only in special cases that he manifested his activity, and that even then he worked in a more secret way than in earlier days. iii. Activity among men. This has already been inci- dentally referred to in the two preceding sections ; we may, however, very briefly recapitulate those points which specifically concern men. No doubt, the chief function, under this head, of the Holy Spirit is his inspir- ing men to write the books of the Bible ; this may appear, at first sight, to imply a certain restriction in his activity, but it was not reaUy so, for the influence which induced the writing of the books would naturally be understood as working also upon those who read them or who heard them read. Then again, his subordinate personality is shown in that he is the messenger who reveals God's will 1 Ed. Kautsch ; this is the first part of the larger work called The Ascension of Isaiah, and is the only part of the work which is Jewish, and belongs to the first century a.d. 188 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP to the hearts of men ; his voice,' which is sometimes spoken of as audible to the outward ear, at other times as audible to the inner ear of the heart, directs men in their conduct of hfe,^ and answers in fact to what we should caU con- science. He is also spoken of as the " spirit of prophecy," ^ the word being used in the sense both of fore-telling and forth-telling ; and he is given more especially, as we should expect, to those men who study the Law {Wayyikra rabbah c. 35). In the pseudepigraphic work called The Testaments of the Twelve Patriarchs he is spoken of as the "spirit of truth" (Judah 30) ; so, too, in the Book of Jubilees, we read : " And at that time, when the spirit of truth (another reading is ' the Holy Spirit ') had descended into her (i.e., Rebecca's) mouth, she laid her two hands upon the head of Jacob and said : ' Praise be unto thee, Lord, of truth and God of eternity ' " (25»-i«). iv. Identified with " Wisdom." What is in some respects the most striking point about the Jewish doctrine of the Holy Spirit is his identification with the Wisdom of God ; this brings out most strongly, as will be seen, the belief in the personality of the Spirit. Out of a number of passages the two following may be selected : Wisd. I*"', For into a malicious soul wisdom shall not enter ; nor dwell in the body that is subject unto sin ; for the Holy Spirit of discipline will flee deceit . . . for wisdom, is a loving spirit, and will not acquit a blasphemer of his words ; for God is witness of his reins, and a true beholder of his heart, and a hearer of his tongue. For the Spirit of the Lord filleth the world. 11^', And thy counsel who hath known, except thou give wisdom, and send thy Holy Spirit from above. One is irresistibly reminded of the words of Isaiah (11*) : The spirit of the Lord shall rest upon him, the spirit of wisdom and understanding. . . . ' See below under Bath Kol, p. i8g. a Cf. Eph. 43", Grieve not the Holy Spirit of God. Rom. 8», The Spirit helpeth our infirmity. " Cf. Rev. 191°, The testimony of Jesus is the spirit of prophecy. "BATH KOL" 189 This teaching, moreover, is not wanting in Midrashic hterature ; for example, in Bereshith rabbah c. 85 it is said that Solomon's wisdom was the Holy Spirit guiding him. Further references illustrating this identification could be considerably multiplied. V. In connexion with the Jewish doctrine concerning the Holy Spirit a word must be said about the curious phenomenon known as the Bath Kol (literally : " The daughter- voice "). The expression means a divine utter- ance audibly proclaimed. It made itself heard in a variety of ways, according to the character of the hearer, or according to the particular circumstances which called forth its exercise ; thus, at one time it is compared to the roaring of a lion, at another to the murmuring of a dove, or the chirping of a bird ; sometimes it is said to have been so loud that it could be heard miles away, for example, when Moses died, it is said {Sotah 13'') that a Bath Kol proclaimed it in so loud a voice that it was heard at a distance of twelve miles in each direction. ^ The words spoken by the Bath Kol were always few in number, and were as a rule taken from Scripture. But what is of chief interest here is that the Bath Kol was identified with the Holy Spirit, or spoken of as the voice of the Holy Spirit {Sotah 33" ; Shabbath 88*) ; in the former of these passages it is said that a Bath Kol pro- ceeded out of the " Holy of Holies," where only the Shekhinah (see below) and the Holy Spirit are conceived of as dwelling ; it is, however, quite exceptional when the Bath Kol proceeds from any earthly spot, in almost every case the voice comes from heaven (e.g., Sota 48'' Jer. Targ. [Pseudo-Jon.] to Num. 21* ; Jer. Targ. to Deut. 28^^).'' It is pointedly observed by Weber (op. cit. p. 194) that the Holy Spirit and the Bath Kol were both the means whereby divine revelations were accorded to 1 JE, ii, 589. » See further Weber, pp. 194, 195. JE, ii, 589 fi. 190 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP man ; but the earlier and fuller revelations were given by means of the Holy Spirit who inspired men, such as the prophets, in abundant, overflowing measure, whereas the later and more restricted form of revelation was given by means of the Bath Kol, who only acted as a kind of oracle, giving only short answers to questions, curt deci- sions and the like ; in a word, while the Holy Spirit was poured out into the hearts of men and afforded them permanent spiritual sustenance and guidance, the Bath Kol gave merely incidental directions. Compare, in this connexion, the words in Jn. 3**, For he whom God hath sent speaketh the words of God ; for he giveth not the Spirit by measure. There are other indications in the New Testament of a spiritualized belief in the Bath Kol ; in the account of Christ's baptism (Matt. 3""^' ; Mark, 9^"^^ ; Luke 321-22 ; there is no mention of the voice from heaven in Jn. i^s-s*) the mention of the voice from heaven and of the Spirit of God is certainly striking in view of what has been said ; then, again, in the account of the Transfiguration we read of a " voice out of the cloud " (Matt. 17* ; Mark, g^ ; Luke, 9^) ; other instances are : Jn. 12^^'^", the " voice out of heaven," ^vhich the people took for thunder (cf. 5^''' '^, Ye have neither heard his voice at any time, nor seen his form ; and ye have not his word abiding in you) ; Acts lo^*' 1*, the voice which came to St. Peter bidding him to eat, ; but as this occurs in a trance it is not strictly analogous ; more to the point is Acts 9*-', where the voice is accompanied by what certainly corresponds to the Shekhinah in Jewish theology (a " light out of heaven ") ; Rev. 10*, " A voice from heaven," and 14^^, where the " voice from heaven " is that of the Spirit. 1 The Bath Kol, in Jewish theology, does not, however, stand in the same category as the " Intermediate agencies " already spoken about, for personahty is not attributed 1 Cf. further the art. Voice in Hastings DCG. THE SHEKHINAH 191 to it ; where this seems to be the case we must regard it as indicating identity betw^een it and the Holy Spirit. It should be added that in later times the Bath Kol as a means of revelation fell into discredit in Rabbinical circles. IV. The Shekhinah. This word comes from a root meaning " to dwell," or " to abide " ; this fact is one of importance, and worth remembering in view of the references given below, for the idea of " dwelling " or " abiding upon or in " is that which underlies the use of the Shekhinah whenever it occurs. The origin of the Shekhinah in its technical sense, is to be found in such Old Testment passages as Ex. 40^* fi., in which we are told that the " glory of the Lord filled the tabernacle " i, and the " cloud " dwelt (shdkan) over it. The glory of the Lord, conceived of as a bright shining cloud, was the sign of the divine presence or indwelling. Thus the ideas of God's " glory " and of His " indwelling " are very closely connected ; one was the earnest of the other, and ultimately they became identified. But inas- much as this sign of the presence of God was conceived of as something concrete, i.e., a cloud, it was in a certain sense differentiated from God Himself . This it was which in the speculations of later days gave a handle to the idea that the medium of God's indwelling itself partook of the nature of personality. It was, of course, a long process whereby the evolution of the idea ultimately reached its final form. In the earlier stages there are indications of somewhat naive conceptions ; thus in Ex. 33',^" we read. And it came to pass, when Moses entered into the Tent, the ■pillar of cloud descended and stood at the door of the Tent, and spake ^ with Moses. And all the people saw ' The Hebrew word for tabefnacle is mishkan, and comes from the same root as Shekhinah ; it was so called on account of its being Jehovah's " dwelling-place "on earth (see Ex. 25', 29*'' **). * The R.V. insertion of " the Lord " before " spake " has no equivalent in the original, and is, therefore, not justified ; it is the " cloud " which is represented as speaking with Moses. 192 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the pillar of cloud stand at the door of the Tent ; and all the ■people rose up and worshipped, every man at his tent door. Other passages, such as that referred to previously (Ex. 40^* ff.), take a more spiritual view, and in these the idea of imputing personality or any independent action to the visible sign of God's glory is wholly absent ; so that, as one would naturally expect, the evolution proceeds from materiaHstic to abstract conceptions. When we turn to the post-biblical hterature the phe- nomena that meet us are ambiguous in character, and have been interpreted in different ways. It would seem that in the Targums the " glory of God " (which, as we have seen, is closely connected with the Shekhinah,) is represented as the sign of the divine presence, i.e., wholly impersonal in character — an " expression for the various relations of God to the world " '—and this is true perhaps, to a certain extent, of the Talmud also. But the phenomena in each case have conflicting features which have led some scholars, and even Rabbis, among whom is Maimonides, to regard the Shekhinah as a distinct entity, and " as light created to be intermediary between God and the world." These points can be illustrated from the few following examples. The paraphrase of Ex. 34* found in the Targum of (Pseudo-) Jonathan runs, " And the Lord manifested himself in the clouds of the glory of his Shekhinah ; in the Targum of Onkelos to Num. 6*''*'' the " face (in the sense of appearance or presence) of the Lord " is spoken of as the Shekhinah. In the Talmud, on the other hand, the Shekhinah appears in its relationship with men as one person dealing with another ; for exaniple, in Seta 3'' it is said that before Israel sinned the Shekhinah dwelt with every man severally, but that after they sinned it was taken away. Again, an interesting instance is found in Bereshith rahbah c. 19, where it is ^ Hamburger. THE SHEKHINAH AMONG MEN 193 explained that in the beginning the Shekhinah dwelt on earth, but when Adam sinned it withdrew into the first heaven, after Cain sinned it withdrew into the second heaven, in the days of Enoch into the third, ^ at the time of the Flood into the fourth, when men were scattered over the face of the earth into the fifth, at the time of the sinning of Sodom and Gomorrah into the sixth, and at the time of Egypt's supremacy in the days of Abraham into the seventh ; then it goes on to say that through seven righteous men, namely Abraham, Isaac, Jacob, Levi, Kehath, Amram and Moses, the Shekhinah was brought back step by step, until, in the days of Moses, it came and took up its dwelling in the Tabernacle. Thus the Shekhinah takes independent action, it is conceived as something distinct from God, yet emanating from and belonging to Him. This witnesses to much the same train of thought which was seen to be at work in the case of Metatron ; God, it was said, is too great and holy to be Himself present among men, and therefore He deputes this intermediary to convey His presence to the earth, while He Himself remains in Heaven. The presence of the Shekhinah among men is a belief well illustrated in a passage in Pirke Aboth ^ (" Sayings of the Fathers ") viz., 3^ : " Rabbi Chananiah ben Teradyon said. Two that sit together without words of Torah are a session of scomers . . . but two that sit together and are occupied in words of Torah have the Shekhinah among them." ^ In Sota 17" it is said : " Man and wife, if they be deserving, have the Shekhinah between them." > For the idea of the " third heaven " cf. 2 Cor. 12.2. Accord- ing to Chagigah 12^ and elsewhere there exists over the earth a seven-fold heaven ; the uppermost is called " Araboth," and it is here that God Himself dwells, it is His Mechiza (" habitation "). * A treatise of the Mishnah containing the oldest collection of rabbinical sayings ; it is incorporated in the Jewish Prayer-Book. ' The wording here reminds one of Matt. iS"", Where two or three are gathered together in My Name, there am I in the midst of them. 14— (3417) 194 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP In some passages in the New Testament the thought of the Shekhinah is suggested ; e.g., Luke i*^, The Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power of the Most High shall overshadow thee ( = theophanic cloud) ; again, in the account of the Transfiguration, already referred to in connexion with Bath Kol, the words, and his face did shine as the sun, and his garments became white as the light (Matt. 172), are significant ; see also, Jn. i^*, And we beheld his glory, glory as of the only begotten of the Father ; Acts 9*, . . . and suddenly there shone round about him a light out of heaven. " Shekhinah is sometimes practically equivalent to Memra (Logos), but we may distinguish between them by regarding the one as the medium of a passive, the other of an active manifestation ; the one a creative, the other as over- shadowing or indwelling. The two are brought together by St. John, in whose theology the conceptions assume a new definiteness, and the medium becomes a Mediator : The Word (Logos) becameflesh and tabernacled among us (i'*). The word sklnB (tabernacle) and its derivatives are chosen on account of their assonance with the Hebrew to express the Shekhinah and its dwelling with men — cf. especially Rev. 21', Behold, the tabernacle {skene) of God is with men, and he shall dwell (R.V. mg "tabernacle" \skenosei\) with them — and indeed, so closely does Shekhinah resemble skene, that the former has even been thought of as a transliteration of the latter. The word is rare in the Mishnah, but occurs frequently in Midrash and Gemara." ' Whether the Name of God can be reckoned among these " Hypostases " is open to question ; it certainly stands in quite a subordinate position in this respect when compared with those dealt with above, but see on the subject Bousset, pp. 343, 344. On the personification of Wisdom, see chap, x, The " Messiah." The importance of the doctrines and thought-tendencies, which have been passed in review above, as illustrating • Taylor, Sayings of the Jewish Fathers (" Pirke Aboth "), p. 44 ; see, too, p. 154 (2nd ed.). INFLUENCE ON CHRISTIAN DOCTRINE 195 the rise and growth of the expression of Christian ideas is obvious ; but it should be added that they largely belong to the wider and richer Judaism which has had to give place to the narrower and more restricted Judaism of subsequent times. CHAPTER X.i The Jewish Doctrine of the Messiah. Belief in the Messiah one of Growth and Development — ^Messianic Teaching in the Apocrypha — ^Messianic Teaching in the Pseudepi- grapha — Contrjist between Pharisaic and Jewish-Hellenistic Teaching — ^The Teaching of later Judaism. [Literature: — Schiirer, HJP II, ii. pp. 126-187; Weber, pp. 348-405 ; Bousset, pp. 195-276 ; Dalman, Words, pp. 389-324; Friedlander, Die rel. Bewegungen, pp. 1-177; Holtzmann pp. 395-410; Schechter, JQR, VII, pp. 195-215 ; JE, art. " Messiah."] I. As the roots of the Jewish teaching on this subject reach back to the Old Testament it is indispensable that a very brief resume of the leading points on Messianic doctrine as there embodied should be enumerated here. The belief in the Messiah is one of growth and development. It will be unnecessary to labour this point, for one has but to compare — ^to give but one example — the teaching of such a Messianic passage as Gen. 49*"^* with the Isaianic teaching on the subject, to see what an astounding advance in spiritual conception has taken place. A comparison between other passages, belonging respectively to early and late periods shows a like difference of ideal. Secondly, Messianic belief was very far from being always of a spiritual character ; indeed, one may go so far as to say that material and worldly conceptions of the Messiah form the normal belief. When spiritual heights are reached, it is exceptional ; this is so up to the very end. In the third place, we find that in the Old Testament — and it is the same in the later • The subject of this chapter is in some respects so inextricably bound up with that of Eschatology, treated in chap xi, that these two chapters should be read in conjunction. 196 DEVELOPMENT IN MESSIANIC TEACHING 197 literature — Messianic teaching is concerned with a Person and with an Era. These two do not by any means always run concurrently. Sometimes the Person of the Messiah is most prominent and the Messianic Era is lost sight of altogether ; at other times the reverse is the case, the Person of the Messiah recedes, and the Messianic Era, with its unmistakeable characteristics, fills the entire foreground. Then again, at other times, both ideas are combined. Fourthly, the characteristics and calling of the Messiah differ according to different ages, such characteristics being conditioned mainly by the circum- stances of the time ; this is what might be naturally expected if, according to our first point, the belief concerning him was one of growth and development. Lastly, the Messiahship is fastened on to various historical personages, before the real Messiah of prophecy ap- peared; examples of this are, Cyrus (Isa. 45^), Zerubbabel (Hag. 2"^; Zech. 38; 6^^). Put in the briefest possible way, and without any attempt at detail, these seem to be the chief points to be remembered as far as the frame-work and main ideas of Messianic teaching in the Old Testament are concerned, II. In the Apocrypha the most striking fact concerning Messianic teaching is that whereas the Messianic Era and the signs of its approach receive here and there a certain anaount of notice, the personaUty of the Messiah is hardly referred to excepting in 2 (4) Esdras. This is not the place to try to show that if the conceptions of the Messiah and the Messianic Era did not originate in the time of David, at any rate the personality of David and his reign offered an unique basis upon which to found Messianic teaching ; but the truth of this is, at the least, adumbrated in such a passage as Ecclus. 47" ; for after enumerating the virtues of David (w. i-io), it goes on : " The Lord took away his sins, and 198 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP exalted his horn for ever, and gave him the law of the Kingdom (cf. Deut. 14^^), and set his throne over Israel." The everlasting character ("for ever") of the Kingdom shows infallibly that the writer had the Messianic Kingdom in mind ; this could be proved by many Old Testament and other passages, cf. i Mace. 2*'. The Book of Tobit offers, at aU events, one passage which deals with the subject ; it is an interesting passage, for it is an instance of the hope of the coming Messianic Kingdom being used for cheering despondent captives (14^) ; the writer draws a distinction between the modest Httle Temple, as he sees it (namely that of Zerubbabel) — so different from the glorious Temple, the building of which David's forethought rendered possible — and the Temple that is to be, the Temple of the Messiah ; " . . . and the house of God shall be built in it (i.e., in Jerusalem), a glorious building, for all future generations, even as the prophets spoke concerning it." Very striking in the same passage is the teaching concerning the " universa- listic" character of the Messianic Kingdom: "And all the Gentiles shall turn to the truth and fear of the Lord God, and they shall bury their idols. And aU the Gentiles shall praise the Lord, and his people shall render thanks to God, and the Lord will exalt his people, and aU they that love the Lord God in truth and justice shall rejoice, in showing mercy to our brethren" (14*''). This inclusion of the Gentile world in the Messianic Kingdom is identical with that of the highest prophetical teaching on the subject ; the narrow exclusiveness of Pharisaism was in striking contrast to this universal character of the Messianic Kingdom as here depicted. One of the most instructive passages in the Apocr5^ha on this subject is I Mace. 14*"^*, for here we have some of the stereot5^ed characteristics of the Messianic Kingdom described as actually in existence during the leadership of Simon, sumamed Thassi, who was the founder of the high-priestly dynasty of the Hasmoneans (b.c. 143-135) ; a few verses MESSIANIC TEACHING IN 4 ESDRAS 199 from this passage may be quoted in order to show that the condition of the country is described in terms with which we are famiHar in other Messianic passages : v. 8, " Then did they till their ground in peace, and the earth gave her increase, and the trees of the field their fruit " (cf. Lev. 26* ff. ; Ezek. 34") ; vv. 11, 12, " He (i.e. Simon) made peace in the land and Israel rejoiced with great joy ; for every man sat under his vine and his fig-tree, and there was none to make them afraid" (cf. i Kings, 5^; Mic. 4*) ; V. 14, " He raised up all that were brought low among his people ; he was very zealous for the Law, he drove away every renegade and every wicked man" ; v. 14, " The Sanctuary he made glorious, and multiplied the holy vessels." One sees how the whole passage resounds with the characteristic key-notes of the Messianic Era, — Peace, Plenty, Justice, Observance of the Torah, and a glorious Temple. It is quite what might be expected when we find the author — ^under God — of these blessings, singled out for especial honour ; for according to 14*^, the quasi-royal high-priesthood is to become hereditary in his family. But the only book in the Apocrypha which deals in detail with the personality of the Messiah is 2 (4) Esdras ; this book, however, shows manifest signs of interpolation, and in considering it from the point of view of the Jewish doctrine of the Messiah and his king- dom considerable caution is needed ; thus chaps, ii and xvi, which have so much of a Messianic character, are obvi- ously from a Christian hand, and do not belong to the book in its original form. The sixth vision describes how Esdras saw a man that came out of the sea, against whom were gathered an innumerable multitude of men who had come from the four winds of Heaven to subdue hiin. But the man went up into a mountain, and as the multi- tude came against him, he destroyed it with fire that came out of his mouth, and suddenly there was nothing to be seen, but only dust and the smell of smoke. Then 200 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP another multitude was gathered about him, this time peaceable (13^"^^). In the interpretation of this vision, it is said that the man who came out of the sea is the redeemer of the world who wUl come and make all things right on earth ; against him the nations of the world will rise up, but he shall stand on the top of Mount Zion and destroy them with his word. Then he will call to himself the scattered ten tribes (the " peaceable multi- tude "), and wUl defend them, and show them great wonders (13^*"°"). These wonders are the annihilation of all the enemies of God, the gathering together of all those who are faithful to God, — i.e., the dispersed of Israel — and the inauguration of the Messianic Era, which will last for four hundred years. After this the Messiah and all flesh shaU die ; then shall follow the general resurrec- tion, and the Most High shaU judge the world ; and finally there shall be a new world. There is one point of peculiar interest in the presentation of the Messiah in this book ; in 12^^ it is said, "... that is the Anointed, whom the most High has kept for the end of the days, who will arise and come forth out of the seed of David . . ." ;^ but, as we have just seen, the Messiah was He who " came up out of the sea," and who came " flying upon the clouds of Heaven " ; ^ the Messiah, therefore, is here represented as, on the one hand, of the seed of David, and thus human, but on the other hand, as superhuman, coming upon the clouds of Heaven. The beUef in the pre-existence of the Messiah is one which often occurs in Rabbinical literature (e.g., Sanhedrin gS** ; Targ Jer. to Mic. 4*). III. In the Pseudepigraphic literature the various pictures of the Messiah and Messianic Era which we meet with are 1 See Kautsch in he. ; the English Version here is not to be reUed upon. « Cf. Dan. 7". MESSIANIC TEACHING IN PSEUDEPIGRAPHA 201 very confusing. The reason of this is, firstly, that the different writers colour their treatment of the subject in accordance with the varying historical circumstances of the times. But then, again, there are two distinct sets of ideas both with regard to the Messiah as well as to the Era, which are often mixed up together. Of these the first deal with the whole subject as purely worldly and material ; the Messiah is of the seed of David who is to come and set up a temporal kingdom, the enemies of Israel are to be destroyed with fire and sword ; here the exclusive, nationalistic conceptions predominate. But side by side with these, and often inextricably mixed up with them, we find eschatological pictures; the end of the World, heralded by unprecedented terrors, is announced, and the Messiah is superhuman, the weapons wherewith the enemies of God are to be destroyed are spiritual ; and it is no more a question of the supremacy of Israel alone, but all men who are faithful to God are to belong to the Messianic kingdom. It is necessary to bear these points in mind, in connexion with the references in this class of hterature now to be given. In that section of the Book of Enoch called " The Vision of the Seventy Shepherds " (chaps. 85-90), the Messiah is represented as a white buU ; He comes at the end of the world, and all the Gentiles come and submit themselves to him. But this universalistic conception is placed in more or less close connexion with a narrower, nationahstic one, in which the Messiah recedes, and God Himself defends Israel from the attacks of their enemies ; and the supremacy of Israel is established on earth ; yet the Messiah does not appear to take any part in this Israehte supremacy on earth ; God is their ruler. The Messiah does not appear in this section of the book as anything more than human. In another section (the Similitudes, chaps. 37-71) the Messiah is represented in quite a different ' manner ; here he is spoken of as " the Righteous One," who "shall appear before the eyes of the 202 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP elect righteous " (sS'^), as the " Elect One who will sit on the throne of glory," and judge men; and the "Elect One will dwell among men," and heaven and earth will be transformed (45^"*) ; and, most significant of all, he is called " the Son of Man," and is " like one of the holy angels, " and he occupies a seat in Heaven beside the "Ancient of days " (46^) ; in the same way, it is said of him that " before the sun and the signs (i.e., of the Zodiac) were created, before the stars of heaven were made, his name was named before the Lord of Spirits " (48^), and he has been " chosen and hidden before Him before the Creation of the world, and for evermore " (48®). Here, then, the conception of the pre-existence of the Messiah comes out clearly, and therefore also his supernatural character. A similar thought comes out in the Sibylline Oracles (5*^* *'), " For a Blessed Man came from the vault of Heaven, bearing in his hands the sceptre which God had given him . . . " ; in the same book, on the other hand, the Messiah is. spoken of as " the King whom God will send from the rising of the sun (i.e. the East). . . (3®^^^). Further, in the Syriac Apocalypse of Baruch, there is a description of the wonders that wiU take place when the Messiah is re- vealed (29') ; under the figure of the destruction of a forest through overflowing water the seer describes the annihilation of the world-powers by the Messiah, who then reigns till all is completed (chaps. 36-60). In the same book, in the vision of the cloud rising from the sea, the Messiah is spoken of as lightning, which illumined the whole earth (53') ; this is the same thought as that found in Matt. 24^', For as the lightning Cometh forth from the east, and is seen even unto the west, so shall be the coming of the Son of man. It will have been noticed that in none of these books has there been any hint as to the Messiah being of the seed of David ; of all the pseudepigraphic books there are only two in which this Messianic trait finds expression, THE MESSIAH OF THE SEED OF DAVID 203 firstly, the Psalms of Solomon ; indeed, in these psalms, there is a more detailed account of the personality of the Messiah and His rule than in any other book belonging to this class of literature. The Messianic conceptions, as one would naturally expect in a Pharisaic work, are of a thoroughly nationalistic and exclusive character ; the Messiah will first cleanse Jerusalem by ridding it of unjust rulers and impious heathen ; then he will gather together all Israel who are scattered among the nations, and settle them in their own land, where he will found his kingdom of peace and righteousness. All the Gentiles shall be subject to him ; by the power of his word, sin and wicked- ness shaU cease, and through his trust in God his kingdom wiU stand. But this Messiah is an Israehte of the seed of David : " Thou, Lord, hast chosen David to be King over Israel, and hast sworn to him concerning his seed at all times that his kingdom shaU not cease from before Thee " (17* ff.). The other book in which the Messiah is represented as belonging to the seed of David is The Testaments of the Twelve Patriarchs; but there is, at the same time, a very unusual conception of the Messiah here presented ; for in the " Testament of Levi " the Messiah is represented as a Priest- King ; in the vision of the Seven Men clothed in white garments, the Messiah is clothed with the priestly dress, and he puts on the wreath of righteousness and the jewel of understanding upon his breast, and the garment of truth and the diadem of faith, and the " mitre of the sign, and the garb of prophecy upon his shoulder ;" ^ and they say to him : "Be thou from henceforth the priest of the Lord, thon and thy seed for ever " (8) ; then, later on, it is said of him : " He will shine like the sun upon the earth, and he will take away aU darkness from the earth, and there shall be peace upon the whole earth . . . and in his days shaU the heavens rejoice, and the earth shall be » Cf. Eph. vi, 13-17. 204 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP glad . . . and he shall open the gates of Paradise, and shall take away the sword that was drawn against Adam, and he shall feed his saints with the word of hfe, and the spirit of holiness shall rest upon him ..." (i8, the whole passage is a very beautiful one, and should be read). On the other hand, in the " Testament of Judah," it is again one of the seed of David who wiH be the Messiah, a star out of Jacob, who wUl reign in peace ; here, too, the universaUstic tendency shows itself in the words : " And through him the sceptre of righteousness shall arise upon the heathen, to judge, and to save all who call upon the Lord " (24). It wiU have been noticed that the representation of the Messiah in this pseudepigraphic literature is of a two-fold character. At one time particularistic, material, and temporal ideas predominate ; but mostly it is the univer- salistic, spiritual and heavenly character of the Messiah and his kingdom that finds expression. This latter teaching is of immense importance from the point of view of the Christian doctrine of the Messiah, as it helps us to understand the way in which men's minds had been pre- pared for the advent of Christ. The whole conception of the apocalyptic character of the Kingdom, which is to consist of the righteous who are God's elect, whether they be Jews or Gentiles, as well as of the Messiah in his spiritual, transcendental character, is probably of Jewish- Hellenistic origin ; while the narrow unimaginative picture of the Messiah is purely and characteristically Pharisaic. There seems, it cannot be denied, something entirely natural in the fact that the Pharisees, who lived on Palestinian soil and who inherited in a far more realistic way the national traditions, and especially the exclusive ideas which had been handed down from the time of Ezra, should be imbued with narrow views and should have an outlook which was circumscribed, — while]: the Jews of the Dispersion, who had come into such close contact with the outside world, and whose sympathies PHARISAIC AND HELLENISTIC TEACHING 205 had in consequence been proportionately broadened, should have had a far more extended horizon, and larger views concerning the Messiah and his kingdom. To Pharisaic Judaism the Messiah remained ever an earthly king, whose interest was centred in the children of Israel, and who cared little about the outside world ; but to the Hellenistic Jew the Messiah was a heavenly King, whose dominion was to include the whole earth, whose subjects were to be all who were worthy of such a king, and whose kingdom was to be a spiritual one. It is small wonder that the Palestinian Jews should have thought that the presence of Christ among their brethren of the Dispersion would be more congenial to Him — Will he go unto the Dispersion among the Greeks? Jn. 7'*. If traces of the wider, universaUstic conception are to be found in the later Talmudic literature (cf. § 1 of the next chapter), that only testifies to the power and attraction of this nobler and worthier teaching. IV. The twelfth Principle of the modem Jewish Creed runs : " I beheve with perfect faith in the coming of the Messiah, and though He tarry, IwUlwait daily for His coming." ^ This is an exceedingly inadequate expression of the doctrine of the Messiah, as it says nothing about his nature and personality, nor of his duties, nor of the objects of his coming. The orthodox belief concerning the Jewish Messiah must be sought in the Talmud, "the final author- rity in Judaism," * and, as we shall see, the doctrine of the Messiah, as contained in Rabbinical literature, is much fuller and more adequate. Here, as one would expect, the conception of an earthly Messiah is the prevailing, though not the exclusive one ; this has been the officially recog- nized doctrine accepted by Judaism since the end of the » Singer, p. 89, cf. Friedlander, p. 255. 2 M. Joseph, Judaism as Creed and Life, p. vii. 206 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP first century a.d. ; and not only so, but it is, generally speaking, a fundamental point of the doctrine that the Messiah, who is yet to come, will be of the seed of David ; he wiU make Israel a free and independent people, and set up his kingdom of peace and prosperity. The great question was how and when this period of Messianic glory would be realized ; this was a natural question in post-exilic times and onwards in face of the unfulfilled pro- phecies of the prophets. The answer " lay in the dualistic conception of two worlds : a present world, corrupt by reason of the evil powers inherent in it ; and a future ideal world, — a conception of things due, in part at least, to foreign influences. The logical consequence of this dualistic belief was (i) that God's plan of salvation can only be realized after all the evil powers — ^the host of Satan and the heathen subject to them, together with the world itself — shall have been annihilated, and (2) that the future world, with ah its blessings pre-existing from eternity in heaven, shall then, at the end of time, descend thence and replace the old world, having the perfect, glorious New Jerusalem for its centre. . . . The eschatological drama is enacted not in one era, but in two : the temporary Messianic interim, and the everlasting heavenly bliss — the latter offset by the everlasting torments of heU in store for the wicked. In general tone and colouring the older apoca- lypse served as a model for the Neo-Hebrew. It shows the same particularism and narrow nationalism that pre- dominate in the later, according to which the kingdom of God means salvation for faithful Israel alone, but for the unrepentant heathen world damnation. ... In like manner, the gross sensuousness in the detailed description of the joys of the Messianic and supramundane world is quite common in the older apocalyptic. So also is the fact that besides the revelations regarding the end of time, and the occurrences in that period, there are not infrequently other revelations concerning supernatural subjects — for example, heaven, hell and paradise, the mysteries of PRE-EXISTENCE OF THE MESSIAH 207 the Creation, the course of the universe, angels, and the whole world of spirits, even God Himself — and in these revelations, the phantasy of the older apocalyptic is quite as unrestrained and extravagant as that in the later." ^ It is, in part at aU events, due to the belief that the blessings of the ideal Messianic Era pre-existed from eternity in heaven, that the conception of a pre-existent Messiah — a conception of extreme interest from the Christian point of view — ^finds frequent expres- sion in Talmudic literature. This conception is of a two-fold character ; in the first place the Messiah is believed to have existed in Heaven before the world was created ; God, it is said, contemplated the Messiah and his works before the Creation of the world, and concealed him under His throne (cf. i Pet. i^") ; Satan, it is added, asked God what the hght was under His throne, and God replied that it was one who would bring him to shame in the future ; then, being allowed to see the Messiah, Satan trembled and sank to the ground, crpng out : " Truly this is the Messiah who will deliver me and all heathen kings over to hell " {Pesikta rabhati 36).^ So, too, in the Haggadah, the name of the Messiah is included among the seven things created before the world was made {Pesikta 54^, Nedarim 39^). 3 Secondly, it is taught in the Jerusalem Tar gum to Mic. 4* that the Messiah is hiding on the earth, and that the sins of his people prevent him from coming forth as their leader. According to another tradition, David is the Messiah ; then again, it is said that the Messiah is bom, but that he has not yet been revealed. These, and other similar beliefs, point to the conception of a Messiah pre-existent on earth, and the idea is strikingly illustrated by what we read in the Gospels (Matt. 17^",^^) : Why then say the Scribes that Elijah must first come ? And he answered and said, Elijah indeed cometh and shall restore ' JE. i, 675. ' /£, viii, 511. =/?£, i. 739ff- 208 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP all things . . . cf. Mark 6^^; 8^8; 9"; Luke gy. These things point to a conception of the Messiah as one who was super-human, but it is of especial interest to find that the divine-human character is directly taught in the Talmud ; Rabbi Akiba, in commenting on Dan. 7* (/ beheld'till thrones were placed [R.V. marg. " cast down "] and one that was ancient of days did sit), he explains the plural (" thrones ") as meaning that one was for God and another for the Son of David, i.e. the Messiah, making him equal with God {Chagigah 14^), see John 5^^, Phil. 2*. In Bereshith rabbah c. 85, and elsewhere, the Messiah is spoken of as the Go' el, " Redeemer" ; he is called in this passage Go'el 'acheron, the " latter Redeemer," the first being Moses, cf. Luke i'^, 24" ; Gal. 3", 4« ; i Pet. i"-2«. It is taught, further, that certain signs will herald the approach of the Messianic Age ; as these remind one forcibly of some passages in the Gospels, it will be of interest to indicate them briefly. There is to be a time of the "Woes of the Messiah" immediately preceding the Messianic Age, and a general break-up of the Gentile na- tions will come about through their fighting against and annihilating one another; allhumanity, Israel included, will suffer from the sword, from plague, pestilence and famine ; earthquakes and other convulsions of nature will likewise be portents of the Messianic Age ; further, home-life, of old time so dear to th6 Jew, will be broken up, children mocking and maltreating their parents, and members of the same household fighting against each other ; truth and faithfulness wiU be mocked at ; * with all this cf. Matt. 24* **, Mark 13^, Luke iS^, 2 Tim. 3^"*. The Rabbis taught that the world would last six thousand years ; of these the first two thousand were described as the period during which the Torah did not exist on earth ; the second two thousand they dated from the time when Abraham taught the Torah in Haran, ' Sanhedrin 97'. THE MESSIANIC ERA 209 and it was called the period of the Tor ah, i.e., the time during which the Tomh held sway ; the last two thousand years were called the " days of the Messiah," because this period \yas to be inaugurated by the advent of the Messiah ^ after this was to come the " Eternal Sabbath " ; the Targum to Eccles. f-^ teaches that the Messiah will appear on a Sabbath. The conditions of the Messiah's appearance are, firstly, repentance and good works. " If all Israel," it is said in Pesikta 163'', " were to spend unitedly one whole day in the showing forth of repentance, redemption by the Messiah would come." The second condition, as far as Israel is concerned, of the Messiah's advent is the earnest observ- ance of the Law, especially keeping the Sabbath holy. When the commencement of the third (i.e. the Messianic) period had gone by without the appearance of the Messiah, the Rabbis explained it by showing that the sins of Israel necessitated a postponement.^ As to the actual Messianic Era itself the Rabbis teach a good deal. Its main characteristics, as far as the Jews are concerned, may be briefly summed up under three heads : The Messiah will inaugurate for his people a time of external glory, he wiU make them the rulers of the world, and he will also bring them to spiritual perfection. This is to be the final fulfilment of prophecy, the accomphshment of God's promises (cf. 2 Cor. i^") ; "All the prophets prophesied only concerning the days of the Messiah " (Shabbath 63*). As the height of spiritual perfection was conceived of as consisting in the full observance of the Torah, it was taught that the Messiah himself when he comes wiU set the supreme example in this (Targ. to Isa. 9^), and that in consequence the true observers of the Torah will, in the days of the Messiah, number a great 1 Sanhedrin 97*; the "days of the Messiah" are preliminary to and lead into th^ "Age to come" (OlAm ha-ba), which includes Eternity, cf. Luke 18". * Yoma g^ . 15— (2417) 210 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP multitude (Ibid, to Isa. 9*). In this way the Messiah will in his days make peace between God and Israel, and of that peace there will be no end, so that the blessing of God will be poured out upon His people to the full. In this glorious Messianic kingdom not only the dispersed members of the nation, but also aU those who have died will participate ; these will come forth from their graves,' to take their share in the happiness and the glories of that age of bhss. 1 Cf. Matt. 27". - s. CHAPTER XI. ESCHATOLOGY.^ The Kingdom of God— The Eschatological Drama ; World-Epochs ; The AVar of Gog and Magog ; The Fate of the Gentiles ; The Purifica- tion of the Land ; The Ingathering of Israel ; The Rebuilding of Jerusalem ; The Future Life ; Gehenna ; Paradise. Jewish eschatology, or the doctrine of the " last things," is a subject of such vast dimensions, that within the limits of a single chapter it will obviously be impossible to do more than indicate some of its more salient aspects. By the New Testament Period Judaism was in posses- sion of most, if not all, of its eschatological ideas. These were developed during the two eventful centuries that immediately preceded the rise of Christianity. It was these centuries which saw the rise of the Apocalyptic movement with its vast eschatological developments, that were essentially bound up with the doctrine of a future life, and the behef in a judgment after death, with rewards and punishments. It is important to remember that the Apocalyptic Litera- ture as a whole, as has already been pointed out.^is a popiilar literature ; that is to say, it reflects the thoughts of religious circles which were outside the recognized Rabbinical schools ; and it embodies religious ideas which in many points sharply conflicted with the strict scholastic orthodoxy of the Phari- sees. The main energies of the latter were devoted to the development of the " oral tradition," in order to build a hedge around the Law, and fix a sharp hne of demarcation between Israel and the outside world. The Apocalyptists, on the other hand, though loyal to the Law, did not make it their exclusive pre-occupation. They were much more deeply interested in " transcendental Messianism," and in speculative schemes regarding the " end " Of the age, and all 1 Cf . the articles Eschatology in EB and in JE ; also Bousset, and ed., pp. 245-277 ; 333-346, to all of which this chapter is largely indebted. » Cf. part I, ch. iii. 211 212 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP that such involved. On the other hand, orthodox Rabbinic Judaism — which represents the triumph of the Pharisaic party within the ranks of Judaism — has practically banned the entire apocalyptic literature. Nevertheless, apocalyptic teaching profoundly influenced orthodox Judaism in some respects. The doctrine of a future life, e.g., and of the resurrection became integral parts of Jewish belief. " Jewish eschatology," it has been said, " deals primarily and principally with the final destiny of the Jewish nation and the worid in general, and only secon- darily with the ' future of the individual ; the main concern of Hebrew legislator, prophet, and apocalyptic writer being Israel as the people of God, and the vic- tory of His truth and justice on earth." ^ These points can be conveniently illustrated in what follows under separate headings. I. The Kingdom of God. It is characteristic of Judaism in all its manifestations that it looks to the future for the full realization of its hopes and religious yearnings. And all that it can hope for from the future is summarily included under the term " Kingdom " — or rather " rule (or sovereignty) — of God." This sovereignty of God, visibly manifested and realized, was " the prophetic goal of human history." As Dalman " and others have shown, the expressions rendered " Kingdom of Heaven " (^ ^acriKtia tS>v oipavav, pecuUar to the First Gospel in the New Testament) or " King- dom of God " (^ /3ao-iXefo Tov 6eov) and their Hebrew equivalents (mcUkiUh shdmayim, etc.) are more correctly rendered as " Sovereignty of God." " Heaven " in the former is a substitute for the divine name. At the outset it is important to note the distinction, fundamentally present (though later confused) in Jewish theology, between the idea of the " Kingdom of Heaven " over which God reigns, and that of the Kingdom of Israel ruled over by the Messiah. I Dr. Kohler in JE, v, 209. « Words, p. 91 /. THE "ALENU" PRAYER 213 The Jewish conception of the " sovereignty of God " was not primarily political. Its main thought was the hope that idolatry would be extirpated, and the one God acknowledged throughout all the world, and the world itself " perfected " under the direct " rule of the Almighty." This reaches sublime expression in the great Alenu prayer (Singer, pp. 76-77), the closing paragraph of which runs as follows : ' We therefore hope in Thee, O Lord our God, that we may speedily behold the glory of Thy might, when Thou wilt remove the abominations from the earth, and the idols will be utterly cut off, when the world will be perfected under the Sovereignty (Kingdom) of the Almighty, and all the children of flesh will call upon Thy name, when Thou wilt turn unto Thyself aU the wicked of the earth. Let all the inhabitants of the world perceive and know that unto Thee every knee must bow, every tongue must swear. Before Thee, O Lord our God, let them bow and fall ; and unto Thy gloriojis name let them give honour ; let them all accept the yoke of thy Sovereignty, and do Thou reign over them speedily and for ever and ever. For the sovereignty is Thine, and to all Eternity Thou wilt reign in glory ; as it is written in Thy Law : The Lord shall reign for ever and ever. And it is said : And the Lord shall he Sovereign over all the earth ; in that day shall the Lord he One, and His Name one. Cf. also the following which forms part of the Amidah- prayer for the New Year Services (Rosh ha-shdndh] : — Now, therefore, O Lor^ our God, impose Thine awe upon all Thy works, and Thy dread upon all that Thou hast created, that all works may fear Thee and all creatures pros- trate themselves before Thee ; that they may all form a single band to do Thy will with a perfect heart, even as we know, O Lord our God, that dominion is Thine, strength is in Thine hand, and might in Thy right hand, and that Thy name is to be feared above all that Thou hast created (Singer, p. 239). But though in its essence universal, the actual recognition of God's sovereignty in the world was inextricably bound up with the history and fortunes of the chosen people. God's kingship, was first recognized ' This prayer is usually ascribed to Rab (c. 240 a.d.) ; but may be much older (possibly pre-Christian) see JE, s.v. Alenu I, 336 214 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP and made known on the earth by Abraham. " Before our father Abraham came into the world, God was, as it were, only the king of heaven ; but when Abraham came. He made him to be king over heaven and earth." * Afterwards this secured a firmer basis when a whole nation — Israel at the Red Sea and at Sinai — yielded wil- ling allegiance to God as King. The nation soon, it is true, became rebelhous ; but the ideal relationship remained, and was maintained by the righteous remnant throughout all the generations. The recognition of God's sovereignty was conceived by the Teachers of the Law, as we should expect, to be bound up essentially with the conscious acceptance of the Torah, as being the supreme revelation of God's wiU. According to Simon ben Lakish (c. 260 a.d.) the proselyte who adopts the Law thereby " takes upon himself the sovereignty of heaven. ' ' ^ To " take upon oneself the yoke of the sovereignty (or kingdom) of Heaven " is a regular Rabbinical phrase in this connexion. The daily reci- tation of the Shema' by the Israelite is even spoken of as such an act of allegiance continually repeated. Thus Gamaliel II (c. no A.d.) when on the evening of his marriage an attempt was made to persuade him to regard himself as exempt (being a bridegroom) from the duty of reading the Shema', replied : "I yield not to you in that — to lay aside even for Qne hour the sovereignty of God." » The " sovereignty of God," though essentially eternal, is thus as yet only imperfectly realized in Israel. Its full glory has not yet been made manifest. This can only take place when Israel has been freed from foreign domination, and when the nations — the Gentile world — shall have yielded allegiance to God. The former of these aspirations receives expression • Sifre, Deut. 1 13 (ed. Fried. i34''),citedinDalnian, o^. cj^., p.96. * Cf. Dalman, ibid. ' Ber. ii, 5 (cited ibid). THE '*KADDISH" PRAYER 215 in the eleventh petition of the " Eighteen Blessings " (the Amidahr-pTa.yeT) , which runs as follows : — Restore our judges as at the first, and our counsellors as at the beginning ; remove from us grief and sufEering ; reign Thou over us, O Lord, Thou alone, in loving kindness and tender mercy, and justify us in judgment. Blessed art Thou, O Lord the King, who lovest righteousness and judgment (Singer, p. 48). The (added) twelfth Petition contains a prayer for the removal of "the kingdom of violence" (i.e., the Roman government) as a necessary preliminary to the establishment of the Divine sovereignty. That the latter may be set up visibly on the earth is, as we have seen, the subject of more than one prayer. Perhaps the most significant expression of this aspiration is to be seen in the Kaddish prayer, which is one of the most popular and most frequently repeated in the Jewish Liturgy. According to this the consummation of religion will only be reached when God's name is sanctified throughout the world. The petition regarding the divine sovereignty runs thus : And may He (God) set up His sovereignty in your lifetime, and in your days, and in the lifetime of the whole House of Israel, even speedily and soon. The hopes of the people for the realization of the ideal future were set upon the appearing of the Messiah, who would restore the Kingdom of Israel and extend it over the whole earth. Before this can be accomplished, however, a last great battle must be fought against the heathen powers who are hostile to the establishment of the kingdom. When the Messianic Age dawns it will usher in a period of great fehcity. These hopes were shared by some of the Rabbis, but are reflected most fully in the apocalyptic writings. The Rabbinical Teachers as a whole were more deeply con- cerned with God's rule as a present reality. They interested themselves in the present rather than in the future. Whereas the apocalyptic writers loved to forget 216 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the grey realities of the current age in the glories of the future era, which were painted in great detail and in gorgeous colours, the sober teacher of the law expended his energies on reducing the precepts of the Torah to practice, and extending the range of its practical applica- tion. It would almost seem as if the Rabbinical Teachers in some cases conceived the ideal future as the result of a gradual process which is bound up with the study of the Law. In the one case an evolutionary, in the other a catastrophic conception of the future prevailed. It has been said that the Rabbinical conception of the Kingdom of God was not primarily a political one. Any form of government that was compatible with the divine sovereignty would have been regarded by them as a proper one. But they were profoundly dissatisfied with aU forms of government (Jewish as well as heathen) such as, on the whole, had hitherto been experienced ; and they looked to the future for something better.' II. The Eschatological Drama. It was to the apocalyptists that the development of the drama of the last things — with all its wealth of detail and supernatural colouring — was primarily due. The apocalyptic writers were profound and eager students of the prophetic writings, and adapted many details in their eschatological scheme to data derived from the prophetic literature. Their supreme interest was, as has already been said, in the great final consummation, and they framed a vast and in many respects sublime system, embodying a philosophy of history, and embracing past, present and future. It was, of course, on the future that their hopes and their interests were mainly fixed. In the Talmud they are reproached as " calculators of the [Messianic] ends " {mechashebe ketsim : Sank. 97'') — i.e., 1 They were recruited mainly, it would seem, from the ranks of 1 he Chasidim or " pious." WORLD-EPOCHS 217 men who devoted and committed themselves to calculations regarding the more or less immediate future which led to mistakes and disappointments among the people. (a) World-Epochs. Various schemes by which the history of the world was divided according to certain fixed periods — weeks or millenniums — were framed, and this is a common feature of apocalyptic writings . Thus the author of the third section of the Book of Enoch (chaps. 91-105) divides human history into ten weeks. Seven of these had already passed ; the eighth was to be one of universal righteousness, when the Saints would reign on the earth. The ninth week was to open with the great Judgment : The former heaven and earth were to pass away, and a new heaven, peopled by the righteous dead (after their resurrection) was to succeed. Another scheme divided the history into a world-week of seven millenniums, corresponding with the week of Creation (a day = a thousand years Ps. 90* ; 2 Peter 3^). According to this view the present world of suffering and toil {'olam ha-zeh = " this world ") is to be succeeded by a Sabbatical Millennium, the "World to come " ('olam ha-ha). The six thousand years, again, which covered the entire history of the present world, were divided into three periods of two thousand years each ; the first without the Law, the next under the Law, and the last a period of struggle and catastrophe preparatory to the rule of the Messiah. AU the apocalyptic writings agree in depicting the Messianic Age as being preceded by a time of " travail," called the " birth-pangs," or sufferings of the Messiah [Cheble ha-Meshiach or Cheblo shel Mashiach, Pesikta rabbatt 21, 34, Shabbath 118^ ; cf. Matt 24*, Mark 13* : All these things are the beginning of travail). This idea was apparently deduced by the apocalyptic writers from certain passages in the Prophets (Hos. 13^3 ff. ; Joel 21" ff. ; Mic. 7^-'^; Zech. 14* ff. ; Dan. 12^), but the use made of this material is due to the particular 218 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP view of the world's history held by the apocalyptists. ' Many descriptions of these Messianic woes are given' e.g., Book of Jubilees 201^"^^ ; Enoch 1 ff. ; 99* ff., 2 Esdras 5, 6. Cf. Matt. 24*"^' ; Rev. 6-9, and in the Talmud, Sanhedrin ()6°-qy^. In the Midrash on the Psalms (on Ps. 2®) it is said : " A third part of all the world's woes will come in the generation of the Messiah." The evil portents include visions of blood and of warfare in the sky (cf. Luke, 21^" ff., esp. verse 25 : And there shall be signs in sun and moon and stars ; and upon the earth distress of nations, in perplexity for the roaring of the sea and the billows . . . the powers of the heaven shall be shaken). " The sword, famine, earth- quake, and fire " are particularly mentioned (cf. Apoc. of Baruch 28^' *) ; but, above all, moral declension and universal corruption are anticipated. In the " last days " false prophets, especially pseudo-Messiahs will appear, the anti-Christ wiU be manifested, and so on. (&) The War of Gog and Magog. One of the most important moments in the eschato- logical drama is assigned to the great finaJ conflict with the forces of the heathen nations ranged under Gog and Magog (cf. Ezek. 38^*). In this connexion the great heathen world-powers were more especially thought of, and in the time of the Maccabees, of course, the repre- sentative heathen oppressive power was the Syrian-Greek empire of Antiochus Epiphanes ; but this soon disap- peared, and its place was later taken by Rome. In Jewish literature Rome is usually symbolized by Edom ; the struggle of Jacob and Esau in the womb represents the conflict between Israel and Rome (cf. 2 (4) Esdras, » The meaning assigned to the expression " birth-pangs of the Messiah " is, perhaps, a later figurative adaptation of what was in the first place understood literally. It may be a survival of the myth wherein the birth of the Messiah of the " woman " was de- scribed. Cf. Rev. ia>f., and see Gressman, Der Ur sprung der israeUtisch-jiidischen Eschatologie (1905), p. 284. ANNIHILATION OF THE HEATHEN 219 6*"^", a very interesting passage containing a crj^tic refer- ence to Rome, of. also 12"). In New Testament times Messianic prophecy was directed against Rome (cf. Rev. 13, 17, 18, 19" tf., esp. the number of the Beast 666 = probably a crjrptogram for Nero Csesar, 13^^).' Here Gog and Magog reappear in the Johannine Apocalypse (cf. Rev. 20'-", see also 161*). The annihilation of the heathen nations is usually represented as being effected either by war or by penal judgment ; the pious are not often pictured as waging the war themselves (cf., how- ever, Enoch 90^°) ; in most cases supernatural powers are employed, either the archangel Michael, Israel's patron (Dan. 12^, Rev. 14"), or, more frequently, God Himself (Enoch 621^). During this time the righteous people are hidden away, an idea that was already present, apparently, in the eschatological passage Is. 26^° [Come my people, enter into thy chambers, and shut thy doors about thee ; hide thyself for a little moment until the indignation he over-past ; Zech. 14^ ff . ; the same idea can be seen in the flight of the righteous in Mark I3""20, Rev. Z2^^ ff.). In the apocalyptic conception the Kingdom of God, so far as it is localized, is apparently confined to the Holy Land (cf. Job. 136-18 ; 14B-8 . Zech. t.^^~'^^ and even Matt. 19*^ : In the regeneration ye shall sit upon twelve thrones, judging the twelve tribes of Israel). At this point, the inter- esting question arises, what, in the apocalyptic conception, is to be the fate of the nations at the end ? The answer is, the apocaljrptic writers are not primarily interested in this aspect of the matter, as a rule. For them it is sufficient ' See, however, the elaborate discussion of this point in Gunkel Schopfung und Chaos, pp. 282-379, who argues strongly that 666 is a cryptogram for Tehom Kadmoniyyah (" the Primeval Ocean "). Possibly both explanations are right, the earlier mjrthological notion being adopted by the writer of the Apocalypse in a specially anti-Roman sense. The primeval ocean which was the ancient embodiment of ruthless and destructive power would be thus identified with its latest Roman exemplar in the persons of Nero Cffisar. 220 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP that the evil and oppressive world-powets are destroyed, and room is made for the righteous Israelitish community ; the conversion of the heathen is seldom mentioned. There are, however, some exceptions to this rule ; thus, in Tob. 14* we read, And all the nations shall turn to fear the Lord God truly, and shall bury their idols ; again in Enoch 10^^, " And aU the children of men shall become righteous, and all nations shall offer me adoration and praise, and all win worship me " ; further in Enoch 48 *"^, " He shall be a staff to the righteous on which they will support them- selves and not faU, and he will be the Light of the Gentiles and the hope of those who are troubled in heart. All who dwell on earth will fall down and bow the knee before Him, and will bless and laud and celebrate with song the Lord of the spirits," cf. Luke 2'^. Rabbinical Judaism was, on the whole, less favourable ; thus we read in the Talmud, Abodah Zarah 3", "In the Messianic time no prose- lytes will be received." ^ It is interesting to notice in this connexion that the Sibylline Oracles, which represent the best side of the Hellenistic spirit, display a real interest in the Conversion of the Gentiles ; the heathen are exhorted to repent ; the same spirit is displayed as in the passage of the book of Enoch {48 *"^) quoted above, cf. also 2 (4) Esdras 1326-29 ; but, as a rule, where the aimihilation of the heathen is not contemplated, they are regarded as destined to become tribute-bearing vassals of the Israelitish Empire. Their kings are to bring tributes and gifts to Jerusalem, cf. Is. 60^ ; Matt. 2 ; according to Zech. 14^* ff. all nations will come yearly to the Feast of Tabernacles (cf. 2 (4) Esdras 13^ ; Rev. 21 f.,2* 22^). On the whole, the feeling of the Apocalyptic writers seems to have been that some non-Israelitish nations would survive in the Messianic period. Only Israel's enemies would be annihilated, cf. Apocalypse of Baruch 72* : 1 In justice to the Rabbis, however, it should be remembered that passages breathing a loftier spirit have been admitted into the Liturgy ; see above, section i of this chapter. THE INGATHERING OF ISRAEL 221 " Every nation that knows not Israel and has not oppressed the race of Jacob shall be spared " (for a Christian application of this idea cf. Matth. 25'^"**). Jochanan b. Zakkai in a dispute regarding Prov. 14^* maintained that in the case of the heathen kindness and compassion possessed the same significance as the sin-offering for IsTdiel {Pesikta 12''; Bababathra 10^). (c) The Ingathering of Israel. Stress is laid on the purity of the land which wiU charac- terize the Messianic period'. This wiU be secured by, among other means, the removal of all heathen and strangers from it. The heathen may make pilgrimage to the Holy Land and to Jerusalem ; but only the bom Israelite is to dwell in the land. Cf. Psalms of Solomon 17*^ ; " And the sojomner and the stranger shall dwell with them no more " (cf. Joel 3^' ; Bk. of Jubilees 23^", 50*). In intimate connexion with this idea is the hope of the ingathering of Israelites, scattered throughout the world. This already comes to view in Old Testament Prophecy (cf. Is. 11^^"^*, 27l^ 35^ f- ; Micah 7"; Ezek. 39"; Zech. io«-"). The passage Is. 27 ^* (" And it shall come to pass in that day that a great trumpet shall be blown ; and they shall come which were lost in the land of Assyria, and they that were outcasts in the land of Egypt ; and they shall worship the Lord in the holy mountain at Jerusalem") seems to have been especially influential in the subsequent period. Some passages in Deutero-Isaiah are also note- worthy in this connexion, esp. 49^^, 60*' ', and 66^", where it is anticipated that the heathen wiU themselves escort the exiles back. Thus the ingathering of the dispersed Israelites became a regular and permanent feature of the picture of the Messianic future. It comes to expres- sion in the apocrj^phal books (cf. Tobit 13^^, 14^ ; Ecclus. 36^^). Among the pseudepigraphic books special mention > Sin will be no niore, for " the Lord will shake the land of Israel and cleanse it from all impurity " (Pirke R. Ebetier xxxiv, 21, cited in JE, v, 215). 222 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP may here be made of the nth and 17th of the Psalms of Solomon. A striking feature in the representation is the emplo57ment of the trumpet-blast as a means for gathering the exiles together. Cf . the passage cited above. Is. 27^'- This also appears in the Psalter of Solomon, and in the orthodox Jewish Liturgy in the loth of the " Eighteen Blessings " which runs as follows : — Sound the great horn for our freedom ; lift up the ensign to gather our exiles, and gather us from the four comers of the earth (Singer p. 48). With this should be compared Matt. 24'^ : " Then shall He send forth His angels with a great sound of a trumpet." It should be added that in the eschatological passages the task of gathering together the elect is sometimes assigned to the Messiah, sometimes to Ehjah. (d) The rebuilding of Jerusalem and the Temple and the felicity of the Messianic Age. One great hope associated with the Messianic Age was that Jerusalem and the Temple would be rebuilt. Such prophecies as Ezek. 40-44, and 47, Is. 54^^ f., 60^" f., which suggest the prospect of a new and glorious city and a restored Temple-worship, strongly fostered such hopes. In Haggai 2'"' the consciousness that the second Temple (before its restoration by Herod) compared unfavourably with the first is already apparent (cf. also Tobit 14^). It was expected that a new and glorious Jerusalem would be built in the Messianic age, of sapphires, gold, and precious stones, etc. (cf. Tobit 13^^ 1, 14*; Rev. 21 ^"2^^). This is identical with the " new " or " upper " Jerusalem (" the Jenxsalem that is above "), which is referred to in Gal. 4^* , Heb. 12^^, which had been seen in vision by Adam, Abraham and Moses (Apocaljrpse of Baruch 4^*), and which wiU be made manifest in all its glory by the Messiah (cf . 2 (4) Esdras 7''* ; Apocalypse of Baruch 32*). In later times, after the complete destruction of both city and Temple this hope came to even more vivid expression. The restoration of THE FELICITY OF THE MESSIANIC AGE 223 the Holy City, and especially of the Temple-worship, long continued to be an object of pious hopes and prayers. These have secured a permanent place in the Liturgy, especially in the 14th and 17th Petitions of the Shemoneh 'Esreh (Singer p. 49 f). And to Jerusalem, Thy city, return in mercy, and dwell therein as Thou hast spoken ; rebuild it soon ia our days as an everlasting building, and speedily set up therein the throne of David. And again : Accept, O Lord our God, Thy people Israel and their prayer ; restore the service to the oracle of Thy House, and receive in love and favour both the fire-ofiferings of Israel and their prayer ; and may the service of Thy people Israel be ever acceptable unto Thee. And let our eyes behold Thy return in mercy to Zion. According to Lev. ' Kabbah ix, the Messiah wiU himself re-erect the Temple. The felicity of the Messianic Age, is painted in gorgeous colours in the Apocalyptic writings (cf. Zech. 14 ; Bk. of Enoch, chaps. 5, 10, 90 ; Book of Jubilees 23 ; Apocal5^se of Baruch, chaps. 27-29, 39-40, 72-73 ; Rev. 20*"*). It win be a time of universal peace, which win include even the animal creation. Sorrow and tribulation wiU be at an end, and material plenty will abound. Both earth and man wUl be blessed with wondrous fertility and vigour (cf. esp. Enoch 10^'"^'). It will also be a time of spiritual blessing. Thus, according to Numbers rabbah xv, Israel's sons and daughters will then prophesy. God's immediate presence among His people wiU be experienced as an intimate reality (Jubilees 1^8 ; cf. i", i2* f.). In the midrash on the Psalms {Midr. Tehillim xxi) the noble hope is expressed that the Messiah will himself teach the nations the Noachian laws of humcinity and make aU men disciples of the Lord. In official circles, no doubt was entertained regarding the position of the Law in the Messianic period. It was assumed that its requirements — ^in particular the sacrificial and priestly laws — would be strictly ebsewed- But 224 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP sometimes another and remarkable view is met with, viz. that a new Law would be proclaimed by the Messiah. " Ye shall receive a new Law from the Elect One of the righteous," runs the Targum to Isa. 12^. A Midrashic passage commenting on Ecclesiastes 11* ("All is vanity ") declares : " The Law which man learns in this world is nothing in comparison with the Law of the Messiah " [Midr. Kohel. on 11*). (e) The Future Life. An integral part of the Messianic hope wras the doctrine of a resurrection (cf. Isa. 24^", Dan. 12*). This first assumed definite form, apparently, under the impulse of the idea that those who had suffered martyrdom for the Law were worthy to share in the future glories of Israel. In the crudest form of the doctrine the resurrection was confined to the Holy Land — those buried elsewhere would have to burrow through the ground to Palestine — and to Israelites. And the trumpet-blast which was to be the signal for the ingathering of the exiles would also rouse the sleeping dead (cf. Ber. iS*" 12(4) Esdras 4^* f . ; i Cor. 15^^ ; I Thess. 4^^). According to the older view the Kingdom was to foUow the resurrection and judgment ; but the later and more widely held one was that a tem- porary Messianic Kingdom would be estabKshed on the earth which would be followed by the Last Judgment and the Resurrection. The Messiah himself was to judge the nations, who, together with their guardian-angels and stars, are destined to be cast into Gehenna. " The end of the judgment of the heathen is the estabhshment of the kingdom of God. . . . The Messiah will cast Satan into Gehenna, and death and sorrow flee for ever." ^ In later times belief in a universal Resurrection became prevalent. Thus R. Eliezer ha- Kappar says : Those who are bom are destined to die ; and the dead to live again" {Pirke Aboih iv, 31): and the behef has been » JE, V, 215. RESURRECTION AND JUDGMENT 225 embodied in the " Thirteen Principles of the Faith " known as the " Creed of Maimonides." ^ According to 2 (4) Esdras 7**"'* the 400 years of the Messiah's reign will be closed by his death ; after an interval of universal death, the earth will give up its dead, and God wUl exercise judgment, and the evil doers will be consigned to the pit of heU, while the righteous wiU enter paradise which is on the opposite side. All evil doers incur everlasting punishment, but the fate of the righteous among the heathen was a matter of dispute. As has already been pointed out the Resurrection and the Judg- ment, according to the later and more prevalent view, were conceived as closing the Messianic period. This was to be followed by a new heaven and a new earth. In Jewish eschatology the Resurrection was combined with the Last Judgment : " God summons the soul from heaven and couples it again on earth with the body to bring man to judgment " {Sank. 91'') ^. On " the day of the Great Judgment" angels as weU as men will be judged, and the books opened, containing the records of men's deeds, for life or for death.* A doctrine regarding an intermediate state was also developed. It became necessary to define more clearly the state and condition of souls between Death and Resurrection. The Jews of course, inherited the belief that the soul after death, descends to Sheol, the place of departed spirits. But Sheol originally was thought of merely as a land of shadows, where aU distinctions ceased to exist. Such a view could not long satisfy the yearnings of individual piety, and it became necessary to recognize distinctions in Sheol. Perhaps in Ps. 16^' there is already a hint of some partition. In the Apocalyptic books this is 1 Singer p. 89 f. It forms the 13th clause. * Cited in JE, ibid. Cf . the first of the parables quoted in ch. v. § 3 above. » Cf . what is said on the subject of the New Year regarded as the Day of Judgment, chap, xx, §1. 16— (2417) 226 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP clearly defined. In the Book of Enoch, e.g., there is a fourfold division ; three of these divisions are gloomy and one bright. A purgatory of fire was even contemplated. In the eschatological development which took place during the first century B.C. Paradise came to be regarded as the abode of the righteous and elect in the intermediate state : hence they pass to the Messianic kingdom and after the final judgment to heaven. The views prevailing with regard to Sheol at this period were varying and incon- sistent. Sometimes it is looked upon as the intermediate abode of the departed ; sometimes it is identified with HeU or Gehenna. The latter was regarded as a place of punishment — originally as a place of torment for Jewish apostates, whose sufferings " were to form an ever-present spectacle to the righteous " (Charles) ; afterwards it came to be looked upon as a place of spiritual punishment. In Rabbinic as well as apocalyptic hterature the bliss of the righteous in the Garden of Eden {Gan Eden), the Heavenly Paradise, is painted in brilliant colours (cf. Pes. 54^ : and esp. the Slavonic Enoch). According to 2 (4) Esdras 6 it was created at the beginning, and will be revealed suddenly on the Judgment Day. Many details are given in Rabbinical Literature of the heavenly food and the " banquet of the leviathan " which the righteous are destined to enjoy (cf. Job. 4^^).^ These materialistic features were later spirituahzed. On all these points the orthodox Judaism of the postr Talmudic period is very vague and indefinite. Even the doctrine of a bodily resurrection has not maintained its hold over the philosophers of Judaism, the old Alexandrine view of a blessed and purely spiritual immortahty being preferred. But the idea of the soul's persistence after death has always been firmly held.' 1 Cf. Jer., Targum to Num. ii^'. Enoch 60' f. ^ Cf., on these points I. Abrahams, Judaism' (1907) chap, vii (Esphatology). THE " AMIDAH "-PRAYER 227 Judaism in fact concerns itself much more actively with the hving than the dead. This can be seen clearly in the emphasis that is laid on the idea of judgment as it concerns the living (cf . what is said regarding the New Year celebration and Day of Atonement in ch. XX) : the same remark applies also to the customs connected with the coimnemoration of the dead {ibid.). The restrained attitude of Jewish piety on these points comes out clearly in the two following pieces from the Prayer-Book with which this chapter must close. The first is an ancient and beautiful prayer recited in the morning (originally in private) : O my God, the soul which Thou gavest me is pure ; Thou didst create it, Thou didst form it. Thou didst breathe it into me ; Thou preservest it within me ; and Thou wilt take it from, me, but wilt restore it unto me hereafter. So long as the soul is within me, I will give thanks unto Thee, O Lord my God, and God of my fathers, sovereign of all works, Lord of all souls ! Blessed art Thou, O Lord, who restorest souls to dead bodies (cf. Singer, p. 5). The following forms the second petition of the great Amidahr-Vra.yeT (the so-called " Eighteen Blessings "), which is repeated three times daily : ^ Thou, O Lord, art mighty for ever. Thou quickenest the dead, Thou art mighty to save. Thou sustainest the living with loving-kindness, quickenest the dead with great mercy, supportest the falling, healest the sick, loosest the bound, and keepest Thy faith to them that sleep in the dust. Who is like unto Thee, Lord of mighty acts, and who resembleth Thee, O King Who killest and quickenest, and causest salvation to spring forth ? Yea, faithful art Thou to quicken the dead (Singer, p. 44). Additional Note. The following summary '' of the three main views regarding the Ufe after death may be found convenient. * This clause is also repeated in the funeral service. ' Cf. an essay by Prof. J. T. Marshall on " Some Jewish Religious BeUefs in the Time of Christ," in a volume of Theo- logical Lectures delivered at Manchester University (ed. by Prof. Peake). 228 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP 1. The Sadducean (conservative) view was that at death the souls of men enter on an eternal sleep, from which there is no resurrection. This view is found in Baruch, Tobit, Ecclesiasticus and i Maccabees. 2. The Alexandrine view (immortality) was that at death men meet with the retribution merited in this life. The righteous are beatified, while the wicked receive tribulation and anguish. This is final for each class. There is no resurrection. This view is represented in Wisdom, 4 Maccabees, and Philo. 3. The Pharisaic view, and the one popular in Palestine in the time of Christ, was that the souls of man enter at death on a state of happiness or misery in Hades, from which there is for both a resurrection. This view is found in the Book of Enoch, 2 Maccabees, the Apocalypse of Baruch, 2 (4) Esdras, and the Psalter of Solomon. CHAPTER XII. The Jewish Doctrine of Sin. The Comprehensive Character of the Subject — ^The Teaching of the Old Testament — Perplexing Character of the Teaching in Apocrypha and Pseudepigrapha — Rabbinical Teaching — The Doctrine of the Jeiser hara' — ^The Doctrine of Zecuth — Fundamental Difierence between Jewish and Christian Teaching — Modern Jewish Teaching on the Subject. [Literature : — Weber pp. 259-334 ; Montefiore in JQR, xvi (Jan. 1904), pp. 209-257, "Rabbinic Conceptions of Repentance"; Porter, The Jecer Hara', a Study in the Jewish Doctrine of Sin (1901) ; Bousset, pp. 277-290, 351-374, 391-404 ; Box, The Spiritual Value and Teach- ing of the Jewish Prayer Book (Longmans), pp. 14, 36ff. ; aiid Dalman's Christianity and Judaism (Eng. transl.) pp. 53ff.] In dealing with a subject of such vastness as this we can do little more than point out some of its main facts and leading conceptions. It is, however, necessary to insist upon the fact that the Christian doctrine of Sin cannot be adequately understood or taught without a study of the Jewish doctrine ; the significance of the Christian teaching can only be apprehended when its contrast to the Jewish is realized. It is a subject which is so closely connected with those of Forgiveness, Atonement, Recon- ciliation, Justification, the efficacy of Works, Grace, and Free-will, that for practical purposes it wiU be best to deal with all these in their relationship with the general subject of this chapter. I. The Teaching of the Old Testament. It wiU be clear to every one that the Jewish doctrine of Sin is based upon the earlier teaching of the Old Testa- ment, and more especially upon that of the Law, i.e. the Pentateuch ; we must therefore start by enumerating some of the more important aspects of the Old Testament conceptions of Sin. 229 230 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP For a proper understanding of the Old Testament teach- ing on Sin it is indispensable that we should, for the time being, divest our minds of what we mean by Sin to-day. This is by no means easy, yet the effort must be made if any real insight into the history and essence of the subject is to be gained. We shall be assisted in this, to some extent, if we seek an answer to the question : Why were sacrifices offered ? — Now, what in the first instance hes at the bottom of the whole conception of sacrifice in the Old Testament is the offering of a gift to God. When a man comes into the presence of Jehovah he must bring Him a present : None shall appear before Me empty (Exod. 23^^), is a precept which is enjoined throughout aU the ages of Israelite history. But why should God require gifts ? Firstly, because He demanded man's homage. Just as a subject would offer a gift to a King in token of the honour in which he was held, and the King accepted what he regarded as his due, so (it was taught) men must bring their offerings to God as an act of homage due to Him; e.g., the Shew-Bread^ (Exod. 25^"). Secondly, God demanded sacrifices as a condition of His favour towards men. Just as a subject who brought a present to the King might expect the King's good- will in return, so (it was taught) God's favour was to be procured by means of sacrifice ; see, for example, the instructive passage Numbers 28 ^' ^ : And the Lord spake unto Moses saying. Command the children of Israel, and say unto them, My oblation, my food for my offerings made by fire, of a sweet savour unto Me, shall ye observe to offer unto Me in their due season. Thirdly, God demanded sacrifices because they averted His wrath when men had offended Him. Just as a sub- ject who had incurred the King's displeasure might ward ' The technical name " Bread of the Presence " is very suggestive. VARIETIES OF SACRIFICE 231 off punishment by bringing the King a present, ^ so (it was taught) (rod's wrath could be appeased when men had offended Him, and He would forgive them, if due sacrifice were offered, see, for example. Lev. 4 ^* : And all the fat thereof shall he hum upon the altar . . . and the priest shall make atonement for him as concerning his sin, and he shall be forgiven, see also verses 31, 35 ; 5^"' ^*, etc., etc.. Perhaps one of the most instructive examples is that contained in 2 Samuel 14^^"^*, see especially the last verse : And David built there an altar unto the Lord, and offered burnt offerings and peace offerings. So the Lord was entreated for the land, and the plague was stayed from Israel. Sacrifices of homage, sacrifices of propitiation, sacrifices of expiation ; these, together with the " sacrificial feast " {Zebach) which belongs to a different category altogether, comprise aU the varieties of sacrifice in the elaborate sacrificial system of the Old Testament. At present we are concerned solely with the expiatory sacrifices. Of what kind were the offences against God for which these expiatory sacrifices were required ? Very briefly they may be summarized thus : (i) Unintentional transgressions of certain prohibitions. (2) Unintentional non-observance of commands laid down in the Law. (3) Impurity of different kinds, such as leprosy, child- birth, various diseases, a Nazarite coming into contact with a dead body, etc. > These and other things of a like nature were sins because they were offences against the hohness of God ; if that holiness was in any way offended sin resulted. It is for this reason that in early Israel the distinction between what we call intentional and unintentional sin, as far as » It is important to remember that the ideas of kingship in the Old Testament are always such as are connected with Oriental kingship. 232 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP God is concerned, scarcely exists. What we now designate moral delinquencies were not necessarily sins in the eyes of early Israel ; and in almost every case ritual offences were regarded as more grievous than moral ones. If one man sinned against another, it was a legal offence, and the Law provided a remedy ; but the idea that sin against one's neighbour was also a sin against God was unknown in early Israel. It is only in the prophetical period that a clearer conception of sin arises. Again, in early Israel a conviction of having sinned does not arise in the mind of a man untU he sees what he beUeves to be the pimish- ment for it ; that is to say, the manifestation of God's wrath, in the form of sickness or calamity.^ He may or may not then be able to recall some offence that he has committed ; it does not matter whether he can or not, for he is quite certain that he must have committed it. The only thing to be done is to offer a sacrifice. It is not for a moment to be doubted that we have here a part, but only a part, of the truth — ^see i Cor. ii^*' *" — but, at the same time, it is abundantly clear that in the earhest periods of Israelite history sin and sinfulness do not mean what we understand by those terms to-day. When we turn to the prophetical teaching on Sin we find, indeed, that an immense advance has taken place ; the whole relationship between God and man has undergone a great change ; the ethical standpoint of the prophets is immeasurably higher than what went before ; their conception of God and His holiness is utterly different from the beliefs of earlier times ; moral and ritual offences are not merely differentiated, but they are seen in their true proportion. But even so and in spite of this immense advance, the prophetical teaching on Sin and Sinfulness shows that here, too, something very different was meant from what we nowadays under- stand by the terms. We cannot do better than give, as ' See, for example, 2 Sam. 12'"'*. EARLY ISRAELITE IDEAS OF SIN 233 illustrating, for example, the teaching of Isaiah on the subject, the following extract from the pen of one of the most notable authorities on the Old Testament : " The limitation of Isaiah's conception of the divine judgment leads us at once to observe the corresponding limitati6n in his use of the words sin, sinners, and the like. . . . Sin against Jehovah is such conduct as He must take cogni- zance of in His quality of King and supreme judge in Israel, not sin in the New Testament sense, but, on the one hand, offences against social righteousness and equity, and on the other hand, idolatry, which is the denial of Jehovah's true Kingship. Hence the prophet has no doctrine of universal sinfulness. The Israelites are divided into two classes — the righteous who have nothing to fear from Jehovah, and the wicked, whom His presence fiUs with terror {The sinners in Zion are afraid ; trembling hath surprised the godless ones, Is. 33^*). Weal to the righteous, who shall eat the fruits of their doings ; woe to the wicked, because the deserving of his hands shall be rendered unto him — is the law of Jehovah's justice [Say ye of the righteous, that it shall be well with him : for they shall eat the fruit of their doings. Woe unto the wicked ! it shall be ill with him : for the reward of his hands shall be given him, Is. 31", ")." ^ At the same time it must be remembered that even here it is not so much the sin of the individual sinner, i.e., sin- fulness per se, that is condemned, as that sin affects the nation through the individual ; in plain language, sin is regarded as evil more on account of its untoward conse- quences than on account of its inherent badness, for it affects not merely the individual, but more especially the nation, for the wrong-doing of the individual entails evil results for succeeding generations.^ J eremiah and Ezekiel, it is true, lay stress on individual responsibiUty, but " the » Robertson Smith, The Prophets of Israel (new ed.), pp. 246, 247. 2 Cf. Exod. 20^ ; 34'. 234 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP great predominant Old Testament thought of the solidarity of Israel in respect of sin" is one which even Ezekiel retains. The most advanced conceptions are, as we should expect, to be found in the Psalms and in the Book of Job. The most striking thing in the Psalms about this subject is the way in which Sin is regarded as disturbing the bond that exists between God and man ; it is on this account that it is realized that there must be something in Sin itself, apart from disagreeable consequences, which is bad and hateful — that is to say, the difference between Sin and Sinfulness is coming to be apprehended. A still further advance, at all events in one direction, is observable in Job and Ecclesiastes, for here the univer- sahty of Sin is frankly taught ; e.g., Job 4^' : Shall a man be just before God ? Shall a man be pure before His Maker P — Eccles. y^" : Surely there is not a righteous man upon earth, that doeth good and sinneth not. Finally, sins are obliterated, first, through the offering of sacrifices, and by means of purifications in the literal sense ; ' and secondly, in the later period, by means of repentance and forsaking of sin, though here also sacrifices are, as a rule, required. Now, the important point to no- tice here is that these are all things in which, according to Old Testament teaching, man can take, indeed, must take, the initiative. God grants forgiveness, that is to say, because of certain acts, or because of a certain frame of mind ; in other words it Hes with man whether his sins shall be remitted or not. One cannot, strictly speaking, say that God, on His own initiative, forgives sins — according to the Old Testament teaching on Sin — ^because, provided that man does his part, i.e., does what is required for the putting away of his sins, then his sins are put away ; it is taken for granted that man's act ipso facto results in the doing away of his sin. The idea that any power other ' See below, the chap, on " The Jewish Doctrine of Baptism." THE ORIGIN OF SIN 235 than human moves man to repentance, or what in Chris- tian phraseology is termed " prevenient grace," is indeed adumbrated here and there, e.g., in some of the Psalms, but cannot be said to be the normal teaching of the Old Testament on the subject. The non-reaUzation of the essence of Sin, which is characteristic of the later Jewish as well as the early Israelite conceptions thereof, preclude the belief that anything more than man's act and will is required. II. The Teaching of the Apocrypha and PSEUDEPIGRAPHA. The subject of Sin in the Apocryphal and Pseudepigra- phic writings is a somewhat perplexing one. While, in general, one may say that in its main outlines there is substantial agreement with the Old Testament, yet a distinct development of thought is proceeding ; this is, of course, more characteristic of some books than of others, the most striking of aU, in this respect, being 2 (4) Esdras. But this developing process makes it almost impossible to state definitely what is the doctrine of Sin in these writings ; for not only in the different books, but even in one and the same book varying conceptions are to be found ; it seems as though in some cases the writers had not come to any definite conclusions themselves, an attitude which is natural enough if one remembers that many of these works reflect the tentative speculations of a new era of religious thought. Regarding the teaching on the Origin of Sin and the cognate subject of Original Sin we have varying theories, as the following passages will show. Wisdom 2^^' ^* : " For God created man for eternity, and made him in His own image. Through envy of the devil ^ did death enter into the world, and they that know him belong to him." In this passage, if anywhere, one might have looked for » Cf. Job I"-". 236 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP some reference to the idea of original sin, if the germs of such a belief had been in existence. Then again, while in one passage evil is impUcitly stated to be of God's creation, in another (in the same book) this thought is explicitly repudiated, viz., in Ecclus. 33^*, ^^ we have : " Good stands over against evil, and life over against death ; so also does the sinner stand over against the pious. And in the same way — ^look upon all the works of the Highest, [it is always] two and two, one thing over against an- other ; " while in 1511-20 it says : " Say not, ' Through the Lord I fell away,' for what He hateth thou shouldest not do. Say not, ' He Himself caused me to err,' for He hath no need of the sinful man. Every abomination doth the Lord abhor, and they that fear Him love not such. He created man in the beginning, and then left him in the power of his ' counsel.' If thou so wiliest then keep the commandments, and thou art able to be faithful, if it pleases thee. He hath set before thee fire and water ; thou art able to stretch out thy hand to either. Life and death lie before man, and whichever he prefers shall be given to him. For great is the wisdom of the Lord, He is mighty in power, seeing all things, and His eyes are upon them that fear Him, and He knoweth every deed of man. And no man hath He commanded to do unrighteously, and to no man hath He given licence to sin." This is a very important passage, and shows clearly enough that the choice of doing good or evil was solely a matter of man's inclination, though in the previous passage quoted, there are among the " works of the Highest " the antitheses between good and evil. But, on the other hand, there are some passages which are at aU events suggestive of the doctrine of original sin ; for example, Ecclus. 25^* : " Sin originates from a woman, and through her we all die," cf. with this i Tim. i^* : Adam was not beguiled, but the woman being beguiled hath fallen into transgression. Again Wisdom 12^^ : " For it is a cursed seed from the beginning" ; and 2 (4) Esdras REMISSION OF SINS 237 ^29-31 . " Ag iQj^g g^g ^Yia± which is sown is not reaped and the place of the evil seed has not disappeared, the plot wherein the good is sown cannot appear. For a grain of evil seed was sown in the heart of Adam in the beginning, and how large a quantity of the fruit of sin hath it borne and win it bear until the threshing-floor appear " ! ^ The ambiguity is further increased on finding that the possibility of sinlessness in some men is contemplated ; this, it is true, is restricted to the patriarchs, but the fact that it should be applied to anybody shows a very inade- quate conception of sin ; and it is interesting to find this in the short book (The Prayer of Manasses) which is other- wise most definite in teaching the need of repentance, and of forgiveness on the part of God : " I bow the knee of my heart, beseeching thee of grace " ; "I humbly beseech Thee, forgive me, O Lord, forgive me " ; " For Thou art the God, even the God of them that repent." In direct opposition to the idea th^t anyone can be without sin is the teaching in 2 (4) Esdras 8^^ : " For in truth there is no man among them that be born, but he hath dealt wickedly ; and among the faithful there is none which hath not done amiss." Regarding remission of sins we find, again, that the teaching is not uniform ; sometimes reconciliation is made by means of sacrifice, i.e., a " sin-offering " (i Mace. 12*°"*^) ; this passage is the more striking in that the offering is for the dead, " he made reconciliation for the dead, that they might be delivered from sin " (verse 45) . In strong constrast to this is, for example, such a passage as Ecclus. 5^' * : " Concerning propitiation, be not with- out fear to add sin to sin ; and say not. His mercy is great ; He will be pacified for the multitude of my sins." Sometimes, as already pointed out, man takes the initia- tive in turning from sin, and then remission follows ; but there are many passages to show that sin is only » Cfj Matt. 3". 238 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP removed through divine forgiveness, such are, for ex- ample : Ecclus 2^^, " For the Lord is full of compassion and mercy [longsuffering and pitiful],^ and He forgiveth sins, and saveth in time of affliction." But that there was a danger of regarding sacrifices as sufficient in them- selves appears from 7' : " Say not, ' God will look upon the multitude of my oblations, and when I offer to the most high God, He will accept it.' " The most adequate teaching of all, however, is found in such passages as lay stress on both the grace and forgiveness of God, and the repentance of man ; short of the Christian teaching of forgiveness through Christ, passages like the following contain the most beautiful conceptions on the subject of the forgiveness of sins that can well be imagined : Ecclus. 172^' 2^ : " Turn unto the Lord, and forsake thy sins, make thy prayer before His face, and keep away from causes of offence. Turn again to the most High, and turn away from iniquity ; [for He Himself will lead thee out of darkness to the glorious light, and give thee health] ^ and hate the abomination (of sin)." 21* : " He that feareth the Lord will repent from his heart." Wisd. J2i9 : " Thou hast made Thy children to be of good hope that Thou givest repentance for sins." But it is in the 2 (4) book of Esdras that the most striking teaching on Sin is found ; in no non-Christian writing is the true nature of Sin so reahzed as in this one. Hitherto every sin was regarded as an isolated act, un- connected with anything inherent in human nature, a thing which could be avoided if man so willed, but being committed could easily be obliterated. In this book, however, it is taught that the whole human race is in- volved in sin, and that the real reason of the universal prevalence of sin is to be sought in the innate badness of the human heart. It was sin that had brought about * The words in brackets should be omitted, according to the best reading. ' The best MSS. omit the words in brackets. THE DOCTRINE OF THE FALL 239 death (cf. Rom. 6**, The wages of sin is death). So steeped is the world in sin that it seems to the writer of the book that the only remedy lies in a new age ; a fresh start must be made, and a new Era will dawn, then all sorrow wiU be turned into joy, for sin will be rooted put (see 7^' ff .) . It is also very striking how the writer, in spite of his vehement denunciations of sin, shows his pity and sympathy for the sinful ; he reckons both his nation and himself among them, but with his sense of sin there is blended a deep repentance, and an unshakable belief in God's mercy. The book is most striking in its treatment of the subject of Sin, and in spite of its strong Jewish colouring, arid in some places anti-Christian polemic, it is difficult not to believe that in spite of himself the writer was influenced by Christian teaching.^ For the most part the pseudepigraphic writings reflect much the same conceptions concerning Sin as are found in the Apocrypha. Like some part of the apocryphal teaching, this literature does not regard Sin as a necessity ; but we find this idea rather more fully developed in the Pseudepigrapha. For example, in Enoch g8*, we read : " Sin has not been sent upon the earth, but man of him- self has created it." The doctrine of a FaUof some sort seems to be taught (cf. Enoch 85), but the fall of the angels was a far more serious matter, apparently, for Humanity than the fall of Adam. In the Book of Jubilees the origin of Sin is not to be sought in Adam's sin, but in demons. On the other hand, in the Life of Adam and Eve, 44, Adam says to Eve : " What hast thou done ? Great plagues hast thou brought upon us, wickedness and sin upon our whole race " ; so, too, in the parallel account in the Apocalypse of Moses, Adam says: "What hast thou done to us ? Thou hast brought upon us great wrath, even death, which now rules over our whole race." ■ Even in the undoubtedly Jewish portions. 240 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP III. The Teaching of the Rabbis. We come now to the more specifically Jewish doctrine of Sin, as found reflected in the Rabbinical writings. The Jews do not believe in Original Sin ; the idea that Adam's sin in any way affected the status of the human race is quite alien to Jewish teaching. As we shall see more fully brought out as we proceed, the tendency to sin is conceived of as being in existence before the creation of Adam. His sin is merely a result of the evil of his heart which began to come into being as soon as he was born. According to Jewish teaching the " Fall " was the transgression of one commandment, aggravated, however, by the absence of all repentance on the part of Adam ; it was brought about by the subtilty of Satan — or the serpent, for the two are of course identical — because he was jealous of Adam, who had usurped the position formerly held by Satan as God's favourite. Jewish traditions vary, however, as to the reason of Satan's tempting Eve ; in several passages it is stated that Satan's lust towards her brought about her f aU ; see Bereshith rabbah c. 18,19; Sanhedrin sq""; Sotahg^; Yebamoth 103'' ; Abodah zarah 22''. The Targums teach that death is one of the consequences of sin ; this is expressed in one passage, in the Jerusalem Targum to Genesis 3®, by saying that at the moment in which Eve succumbed to temptation she saw Sammael the angel of death ; as Satan is identical with Sammael, we must suppose that this passage is intended to teach that Satan revealed himself to Eve as the angel of death at the moment in which he overcame her. But in the continua- tion of the same passage it is said, that the fear which Sammael's appearance inspired led Adam and Eve to eat of the Tree ; what is meant is, possibly, this : they knew that the tree " was to be desired to make one wise," and therefore ate of it in the belief that it would act as a kind of safeguard against Sammael ; the passage would RABBINIC TEACHING ON SIN 241 then be an illustration of what is so often laid stress upon, namely, the wiliness of Satan. Further on in the same passage, in the comment on Genesis 3', we read : " His (Adam's) skin was a light garment, shining like his nails ; when he sinned this lightness vanished, and he appeared naked." As illustrating a deeper reahzation of the essence of Sin we may refer to the Tar gum of Jona- than to Is. 6210, where it says that the imagination of sin is sin, cf. Jer. Targ. i to Deut. 231I- WhUe the existence of sin is presupposed before Adam fell, his sin was the means of death entering into the world, so that all generations to the end of time are subject to death [Tanchuma, Bereshith 8). But the essence of the teaching concerning the " Fall " is that it was the transgression of a single commandment which would not in itself have been fatal, had it not been for the fact that Adam exhibited no sign of penitence ; he refused to entertain sorrow for his sin when called upon to do so by God ; on the contrary, he set himself against God, and became, like Satan, a rebel. This is brought out, for example, in the following passage from Bemidbar rabbah c. 13, in which the words of Prov. 29^^ {A man's fride shall bring him low ; but he that is of a lowly spirit shall obtain honour) are made to refer to Adam : " When Adam transgressed the command of the Holy One and ate of the tree, the Holy One demanded of him penitence, thereby revealing to him the means of freedom (i.e., from guilt), but Adam would not. . . . But what is meant by. And now (Gen. 3^2) ? This : that the Holy One said to him : ' Even now show penitence, and I wiU accept thee.' But Adam replied : ' I will not ! ' Then said the Holy One : ' And now ! ' Adam reiterated : ' No, I will not ! ' " 1 So that, according to this teaching — and the passage is not an isolated one of the kind — Adam might, by an act of penitence, have annulled the effects of the Fall. Because 1 Weber, p. 218. See further Bousset p. 384. 17— < 2417) 242 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP he would not perform this act he was driven out of Eden, and had to suffer all the consequences which this entailed. IV. The Doctrine of the Yetser hara'. But the theory which is contained in the above, and other similar passages, did not account satisfactorily for the existence of evil in every human being. There arose, therefore, what may be regarded as the Jewish equivalent to the Christian doctrine of " Original Sin," in the theolo- gical sense, though, as we have already seen, the Jews profess not to believe in this. This was the theory of the Yetser hara', i.e., " the evil tendency " or " bias towards evil." The theory was probably prevalent long before its appear- ance in Rabbinical literature, and seems to be taught in the book of Sirach [Ecclesiasticus), e.g. 16*', 21'*, 37'. The extraordinary thing about this theory of the origin of sin is that, in the last instance, God is the cause of Sin ; for, as Creator of all things. He created the Yetser hara' in Adam, the existence of which made the Fall possible {Bereshith rabbah, c. 27). A few passages may be cited to show this. The Almighty is made to say : " I grieve that I created man of earthly substance ; for had I created him of heavenly substance, he would not have rebelled against me : " {Yalkut Shim. Beresh. 44, 47) ; again : " It repenteth me that I created the Yetser hara' in man, for had I not done this he would not have rebelled against me " {Ibid. 61) ; once more : " I created an evil tendency. I created for him (i.e., man) theLaw as a means of healing. If ye occupy yourselves with (the study of) the Law, ye will not fall into the power of it (i.e., the evil tendency) " (Kiddushin 30''). Dr. Taylor, in his Commentary on " The Sayings of the Jewish Fathers " {Pirke Aboth), has an interesting note on iv, 2, " Who is mighty ? He that subdues nature " ; — the words from Psalm 37*^ are quoted. The wicked watcheth the righteous, and seeketh to slay him, it then continues : " The wicked is man's evil nature THE GOOD AND EVIL " YETSER " 243 which he must subdue, yet not wholly destroy and eradi- cate, for this would be to ruin the body by the psychic force. The evil Yetser rules over the animal soul which a man is commanded to preserve {Take heed to thyself, and keep thy soul diligently, Deut. 4') ; and in order to do this, he must to a certain extent follow the prompting of the Yetser. Even the evil Yetser is good, for it is said : And God saw everything that He had made, and, behold, it was very good (Gen. i*^). The good Yetser was very good, and so was the evil Yetser, but for which a man would never build a house, nor marry, nor beget, nor trade." ' Then after quoting Sanhedrin 107'' (" The evil nature, and a child, and a woman, are things which the left hand should repel, and the right hand bring near "), Dr. Taylor adds : " The evil nature is called Yetser absolutely from its existing originally, and for a long time alone, for ' the imagination of man's heart is evil from his youth ' (Gen. 8^^), whereas Yetser-ha-tob (' the good nature '), which is presided over by Nous (the ' Mind '), is added later, and then only co-exists with the evil, which is thirteen years older (Midrash Koheleth 9^*). The strong and great man is he in whom the evil nature is strong : ' and therefore our wise men, of blessed memory, have said. In the place where penitents stand, the faultlessly righteous stand not,' for it is said (Is. 57^'), Peace, peace, to him that is far off, and to him that is near : to the far-off first, and afterwards to the near {Berachoth 35'')." The Rabbinic speculations concerning this Yetser hara' clearly witness to the conviction of Jewish theologians that sin was inherent in humanity. This is very import- ant, for it brings them, though through a different channel, into close proximity with Christian teaching on this part of the subject. Where Jewish and Christian teaching part company fundamentally is not upon the question of sinful humanity (though they may differ as to how ' See Bereshith rabbah c. 9., cf. Sukkah 52''. 244 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP humanity became sinful), but upon the means whereby sin is taken away. V. The Doctrine of Atonement. This brings us to the subject of Atonement. According to Rabbinical teaching sin can be taken away by three things : Good deeds, Repentance, and Confession. It will be best to take each of these separately, and illustrate them by reference to Jewish writings. a. Good deeds. Among these must be reckoned the offering of sacrifices, for although sacrifices have long ceased, there are good deeds which are reckoned as sub- stitutes for sacrifices ; and not only are such substitutes regarded as efficacious as the sacrifices themselves were, but it " became a definite doctrine with the Rabbis that the substitutes for sacrifices are more potent than sacri- fice." ^ It is said several times in Bemidbar rabbah that no man in Jerusalem was burdened, or passed the night with a consciousness of sin ; for the morning sacri- fice atoned for the sins of the night, and the evening sacrifice for the sins of the day. " As a man goes down to the brook dirty, and comes up clean, so a man went up to the sanctuary with sins, and came forth without them." ^ Some authorities say that sacrifice atones for sins per se, though others teach that sacrifice must be accompanied by repentance if sin is to be atoned for. Other passages which lay stress on the efficacy of good works for taking away sin are : " If a man yields his rights, his sins are forgiven" (Yoma 23*, 87*'''); "God forgives him who forgives his neighbour " {Rosh hashanah 17^' cf. Matt. 514. 16 . Luke 6^') ; " So long as we are merciful, God is merciful to us ; if we are not merciful to others, God is not merciful to us " {Megillah 28^ cf. Matt. 5') ; " Three things can cancel evil decrees, namely, prayer, almsgiving 1 See C. G. Montefiore's art. Rabbinic Conceptions of Repent- ance in JQR, xvi (Jail., 1904), pp. 209-257. " Midrash Tehillim on Ps, v, § i.. REPENTANCE 245 and repentance." i " If God loves the poor, why does He not feed them " ? The answer is : "To save the rich from Gehenna." * See further § vi of this chapter. b. Repentance. The Rabbis taught that he who truly repents " is regarded by God as if he had gone to Jerusa- lem, rebuilt the altar, and offered all the sacrifices of the Law." * Teshubah {" Repentance ") combined with good works is most efficacious ; the Talmud states that three books are opened on New Year's Day : the righteous are inscribed, in one of these, for life ; the wicked, in another, for death ; while the " intermediate " — neither really good nor thoroughly bad — remain in suspense until the Day of Atonement. By good works and repentance they can make the swaying balance incline in their favour. Moreover, even the wicked — this seems to be the general idea * — can cause the inscribed decree to be cancelled, if they repent {Rosh ha-Shanah ly^ ; Yebamoth 105*). Among many beautiful passages on repentance in Rabbinical writings which teach how forgiveness of sins is accorded in response to it, the few following may be cited : " God says, My hands are stretched out towards the penitent ; I thrust no one back who gives me his heart in repent- ance " {Shemoth rabbah xii, 4). " God's hand is stretched out under the wings of the heavenly chariot to snatch the penitent from the grasp of justice" {Pesachim 119^). " Open for me a gateway of repentance as big as a needle's eye, and I will open for you gates wide enough for chariots and horses " {Shir rabbah on v, 2) ; in the well-known passage. Matt. 19 "*, it is the want of repentance on the part of the rich man — All these things have I observed ; what lack I yet ? — that called forth Christ's words ; cf . Luke 5^* : / came not to call the righteous, but sinners to ' Quoted from the Midrash by Montefiore op. cit. * Quoted from the Talmud by Montague, Tales from the Talmud, p. 252. ' Quoted from Wayyikra rabbah by Montefiore op. cit. * Ibid. 246 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP repentance, see Matt, g^^ ; Mark, 2^'. Again : " A man can shoot an arrow a few furlongs, but repentance reaches to the throne of glory " {Pesikta 163*).^ In some instances it is taught that even after death repentance is sometimes of avail. On the other hand, there is also found the doctrine that for some sins repentance is impossible, e.g. : " For him who sins and causes others to sin no repentance is allowed or possible " [Ahoth v. 26, Sanhedrin 107''), cf. Rom. i^^ : Who, knowing the ordi- nance of God, that they which practise such things are worthy of death, not only do the same, but also consent with them that practise them ; it is of these that it is said (verse 28) : They refused to have God in their knowledge, God gave them up unto a reprobate mind. So, too, in Midr. Tehillin Ps. I : " He who is wholly given up to sin is unable to repent, and there is no forgiveness to him for ever " ; cf. Mark 3** : But whosoever shall blaspheme against the Holy Ghost hath never forgiveness, but is guilty of an eternal sin. It is characteristic of the Ra:bbinical doctrine of Repent- ance that they restrict it in large measure to Israel ; they are particularist, and rarely mention the Gentiles in this connexion. Mr. Montefiore, in summing up the teaching of the Rabbis on Teshubah, says : " The Rabbinic teaching about Repentance is closely akin to the Jewish teaching of the latter end of the nineteenth century a.d. The main differences are first, that the Rabbinic doctrine is, on the whole, particularist, while the modem teaching is pro- nouncedly universalist ; and secondly, that the Rabbis are sterner towards the sinner, especially towards the religious sinner, — the heretic, the apostate, the unbeliever. Lastly, whereas, according to the modern teaching, all punishment after death can only be remedial and tempo- rary, the Rabbis held that for some sinners there was no share whatever in the blessedness of the world to come." " These passages are quoted from Montefiore op. cit. Ibid. CONFESSION 247 c. Confession. As this subject is treated in the section " The Day of Atonement " (see ch. xx), it will suf&ce to illustrate it quite briefly here. It is, however, impossible to separate it from the Day of Atonement, as that is the time par excellence at which confession is made. Con- fession of sins {Widdui) , implying as it does Repentance, obtains pardon per se. According to Yalkut Shim., Bereshith 159, confession is meritorious, and of avail for reward both in this world and the next ; even the murderer can by means of it attain to eternal life {Sanhedrin 103^) . But as on the Day of Atonement fuU confession of all the sins of the past year is made, it follows that the proper observance of this day is of great ef&cacy in taking away sin. Thus in the Mishnah {Yoma viii, 8) it says : " Death and the Day of Atonement atone together with repent- ance, repentance atones for venial sins, whether of omission or commission ; for grievous sins repentance holds the matter in suspense, till the Day of Atonement comes and atones." In the Jerusalem Talmud {Yoma viii, 6) it is said that the Day of Atonement brings atonement even without repentance for sins of omission, whereas for sins of commission repentance is an indis- pensable coiidition. Sins of commission are always, in the Talmud, regarded as more serious than sins of omission. For in the same tractate (viii, 9) it says that " for sins between man and God the Day of Atonement brings forgiveness, for sins between man and man the Day brings no forgiveness until he is reconciled with his neighbour." It will, therefore, be seen that, according to Jewish teaching, the forgiveness of sins depends upon the sinner, for there is no question of a mediator; " specially favoured is Israel in that he does not require a go-between " {Yoma 52^). In a few isolated passages divine grace is referred to, e.g. : "If you do not commit a sin three times, God will keep you from committing it for ever " {Yoma 39^), 248 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP " For him who would pollute himself, the doors are open ; he who would purify himself is helped " (Ibid. 38^) ; " Our Father and King, bring us back in perfect repentance unto Thy presence {Ibid. 39*, see Singer, p. 56) ; " My God, the soul which Thou hast placed in me is pure " {Berachoth 60''). But passages like these are exceptional ; the Rabbis were strong believers in man's free-will ; it is, according to them, man's own fault if he sins ; he can be good if he chooses ; and no one but man's own contrite heart is his advocate before God. In Yoma 38'' it says : " If a man has the chance to sin once or twice and he resists, he will not sin again," and in Shemoth rabbah xxv, § 12 we read : " The period of the redemption depends solely upon repentance and good works." Man's free-wiU, therefore, is the prime essential ; divine grace does not, per se, lead men to do what is right ; repentance is brought about by man, and by man alone. God accepts repentance in man, but He has had nothing to do with its appearance in the heart of man ; it was the Yetser-ha-tob, the " bias towards good," which is one part of man's nature, that called forth repentance. One sees, in view of this, the signifi- cance of such a passage as Rom. 2* : Despisest thou the riches of His goodness and forbearance and longsuffering, not knowing that the goodness of God leadeth thee to repentance ? VI. The Doctrine of " Zecuth." What has been said receives illustration from the Jewish doctrine of Zecuth. This word means, in the first instance, " purity " or " cleanness " ; in the present connexion its root ideas may perhaps be best expressed in the two words : " satisfaction " and " claim " ; that is to say, the man who has kept aU the commandments of God has Zecuth, i.e., he is in that state of righteousness which is attained by having satisfied all the divine demands made upon him, and therefore he is in a position to claim his " ZECUTH " 249 reward from God ; he is a " righteous " man, and there- fore " justified " in the sight of God. There is, according to Jewish teaching, a kind of " account current " kept by the Almighty respecting every IsraeKte ; the credit and debit columns in this divine account-book are balanced up every day (cf. Kethuboth 6y^). Every good action is written down to a man's credit in this species of banking account, and every evil deed is put down on the debit side ; according as to whether the balance is on the credit or debit side of the account, a man is justified, or the reverse, before God ; and therefore, as it is said in Kid- dushin 40'', a man is judged " according to that which balances," ^ i.e., according to which side of the account is greater. The things which, above all, go to swell the credit side of a man's account are the study of the Torah, almsgiving, and deeds of love ; but it is important to notice that almsgiving only has value in the sight of God when it is the outcome of real goodness of heart ; it must be combined with love ; compare with this Matt. 6^ : When therefore thou doest alms, sound not a trumpet before thee, as the hypocrites do in the Synagogues and in the streets, that they may have glory of men. Verily I say unto you, they have received their reward. Those against whom Christ was here speaking were transgressors of true Jewish precept. But all that a man does to swell the credit side of his account is due to his own initiative ; as already pointed out above, it is not the grace of God that leads men to do good works, but their own free-will ; man takes the initiative, and by his good works justifies him- self in the sight of God. The following passages will illustrate this : " When Mar Ukba lay a-dying, he asked for his account ; it amounted to 7,000 Zuzim,^ i.e., this was the sum-total of his almsgiving. Then he cried out : ' The way is far, and the provision is small,' i.e., he did ' Weber, p. 280. 2 A Zuz was the silver denarius (called dinar in the Mishnah) and was equal to g^d. of our money. 250 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP not think this sum was sufficient to ensure his justification in the sight of God ; so he gave away the half of his fortune, in order to make himself quite secure " (Keihuboth 67*"). Again, concerning a righteous man who died in the odour of sanctity, it is said, in Tanchuma, Wayyakhel i : " How much alms did he give, how much did he study the Torah, how many Mitzvoth {" commandments ") did he fulfil ! He will rest among the righteous." Signifi- cant, too, is what is said in Baba Bathra 10", viz., that God placed the poor on earth in order to save rich men from Hell. One other point of importance regarding the works by means of which a man attains justification is that the desire to do a good act counts the same as its actual fufil- ment ; on the other hand, however, the desire to do a bad act does not count as though it had been accomplished, in this case, only the act itself, apart from its conception, is recorded against a man (Kiddushin 39^ 40^). To gain a true idea of the fundamental difference existing between the Jewish and Christian doctrine of sin, the following passages from St. Paul's Epistles should be studied : — Rom. 323 24; For all have sinned, and fall short of the glory of God : being justified freely by his grace through the redemption that is in Christ Jesus. Rom. 4^ : For if Abraham was justified by works, he hath whereof to glory ; but not toward God. Rom. -5^". . . . But where sin abounded, grace did abound more exceedingly. Gal. 2^*- . . . Yet knowing that a man is not justified by works of the law . . . that we might be justified by faith in Christ, and not by the works of the law : because by the works of the law shall no flesh be justified. Gal. 2^^ : / do not make void the grace of God : for if righteousness is through the law, then Christ died for nought. Eph. 2^"^". For by grace ye have been saved through faith ; and that not of yourselves : it is the gift of God : MODERN JEWISH TEACHING 251 not of works, that no man should glory. For we are his workmanship, created in Christ Jesus for good works, which God afore prepared, that we should walk in them. VII. The Modern Jewish Teaching on Sin. We come, finally, to consider the doctrine of sin as expounded by some of the more modern Jewish teachers though here, too, references to the earlier writings will also sometimes be given in so far as they are used by modern writers for substantiating their teaching. In spite of what has been said as to the fundamental difference between the Jewish and Christian doctrine of Sin, there is much in which the two are identical, and we should be far from denying that in many respects the Jewish doctrine of sin is sublime.^ This will be clearly seen on considering the subject in the following passages from the Service for the Day of Atonement : ^ Thou hast given us in love, O Lord our God, this Day of Atonement for pardon, forgiveness, and atonement, that we may obtain pardon thereon for all our iniquities. . . . Our God and God of our fathers, pardon our iniquities on this Day of Atonement ; blot out our transgressions and our sins, and make them pass away from before Thine eyes ; as it is said, I, even I, am He that blotteth out thy transgression for mine own sake ; and I will not remember thy sins. . , . Purify our hearts to serve thee in truth ; for thou art the forgiver of Israel and the pardoner of the tribes of Jeshurun in every generation, and beside thee we have no king who pardoneth and forgiveth. Blessed art thou, O Lord, thou King who pardonest and forgivest our iniquities and the iniquities of thy people, the house of Israel, who makest our trespasses to pass away year by year, King over all the earth, who sanctifiest Israel and the Day of Atonement. 1 We would not wish to fall under Mr. C. G. Montefiore's censure when he says : " There is a higher and a lower Jewish doctrine on the subject of sin. Yet the lower doctrine was never taught in isolation ; it is only so presented and isolated for controversial purposes by modern Christian writers." Liberal Judaism, p. 36. " See Singer, pp. 255-269. 252 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP Again, confession of sins could scarcely be more adequately expressed than by the following : We have trespassed, we have been faithless, we have robbed, we have spoken basely, we have committed iniquity, we have sought unrighteousness, we have been presumptuous, we have done violence, we have forged lies, we have coun- selled evil, we have spoken falsely, we have scoffed, we have revolted, we have blasphemed, we have been rebellious, we have acted perversely, we have transgressed, we have per- secuted, we have been stiff-necked, we have done wickedly, we have corrupted ourselves, we have committed abomina- tion, we have gone astray, and we have led astray. (On the following pages, 259-262, there is a most minute specification of sins, for which God's pardon is sought.) When one reads through this Service for the Day of Atonement, one can understand the feeling that prompts a Jew to claim for Judaism that it has a truer conception of the sinfulness- of Sin than any other religion ; were it not that this is disproved by the Jewish doctrine of atonement, one might almost feel inclined to concede a certain amount of justification for the claim. Quite in accordance with Christian teaching Judaism teaches that sin estranges from God, that it places a bar between man and his Creator. " He that transgresses, though it be in secret, thrusts God away from him " (Chagigah 16*). Moreover, modem Judaism teaches that sincere repentance is the first condition of reconciha- tion ; but when it is said that " reconciliation is the cleansing of the heart from the defilement of transgres- sion," the inference suggested is that repentance is not only the condition of reconciliation with God, but also the means of cleansing from sin ; this is certainly antagon- istic to Christian teaching on the subject. Still more is this the case when one finds the possibility contemplated of repentance being unnecessary because man has it in his power to avoid sin altogether, or when certain actions obUterate sin. In Pirke Aboth ii, 2, which is incorporated into the modern Jewish Liturgy, it says : " Rabban Gamaliel, the son of Rabbi Judah the Prince, said, CONDITIONS OF FORGIVENESS 253 ' An excellent thing is the study of the Torah combined with some worldly occupation, for the labour demanded by them both makes sin to be forgotten. . . . Let all who are employed with the congregation act with them for Heaven's sake, for then the merit of their fathers sustains them, and their righteousness endures for ever.'" Again, we are told that " Rabbi Eleazar held that residence in the Holy Land tends to prevent sin." ^ Another Jewish teacher says : " One must always consider his good and evil deeds as evenly balanced ; he will appreciate the danger of committing even one sin, which would lower the scale on the wrong side." ^ The significance of passages like these (and many more of a like character could be cited) lies in their silence regarding any divine action which would lead men to do those things which help him to abstain from sin ; Judaism " firmly maintains the principle of individual responsibility and the freedom of the will." ' But further : Judaism teaches that divine forgiveness is impossible without repentance and amendment of life ; with this, as far as it goes. Christian teaching is in entire accord. But when it is held further that the essential condition of atonement is the purifying of the desire, the ennobling of the will, then Christians see themselves bound to differ ; yet this is the teaching of a recognized modern Jewish teacher. Mr. Morris Joseph, in his Judaism as Creed and Life, says : " We speak of reconciliation and pardon ; but what are they save figures of speech ? The reconciliation we have really to effect is with our higher selves, with our conscience which we have outraged, with our souls which we have sullied. The changeless mind of God knows no such mutations as are implied in the idea of wrath. What we style His anger is really the resentment of our better nature, its stern protest ' JE, xi, 379. _ , * Ibid. ' S.'Le^ry, Original V^rtue andother short studies, p. ^^. 254 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP against the shame in which our sin has involved us. And so with forgiveness. Changefulness, such as the notion of pardon would attribute to Him, is inconceivable in the Perfect One. If He knows not the feeling of anger, He knows not the change involved in forgiveness. The only reconciliation possible for us is self-reconciliation. And by that self-reconciliation it is that we, again figuratively speaking, make our peace with God. We who have put ourselves far from Him, we whose iniquities have, in prophetic phrase, ' separated between us and our God,' — ' raised a barrier of iron,' in the words of the Rabbins — between us and Him, go back to Him in thought and feeling like a wayward child to the father it has offended ; we break down the obstacles to spiritual union with Him that our iniquity has created, and that sense of recovered fellowship we call forgiveness." It is only fair to say that the exceedingly illogical position here taken up would be altogether repudiated by Ortho- dox Judaism, for we have seen that the Jewish Liturgy has a far more exalted doctrine than this on Forgiveness and Sin. It has constantly to be borne in mind that in deahng with the beliefs of Modern Judaism, there is often a wide difference between those of orthodox Jews, who still hold to the traditional religion of their forefathers and who comprise the vast majority of the Jews — and those of Reform and semi-Reform Judaism ; for the tenets of these latter see Chapter VI, § viii. CHAPTER XIII. THE JEWISH DOCTRINE OF BAPTISM. The Original Signification of the Jewish Rite — Did Jewish Baptism partake of the Nature of a Sacrament ? — Old Testament Baptism Sacra,mental in Character — Tebilah not a Sacrament — Essene Baptism Sacramental. Already before the advent of Christ it had been laid down by the Jewish rehgious authorities that when proselytes were admitted into the fellowship of the " Covenant People," they should seaj their acceptance of the new faith by a threefold rite. Firstly, they had to be circumcised ; this was natural when one remembers that from the time of the Babylonian Captivity, at least, this rite and the observance of the Sabbath had been the distinguishing marks of Judaism. Secondly, they had to be baptized ; of this more pre- sently. And thirdly, they had to offer sacrifice. The object of this one can understand, for sacrifice with special intention (whether a propitiation or a sin-offering, etc.) had for long been the foremost visible expression of worship among the Jews. That Jews should have insisted on Baptism ^ is of especial interest to Christians, and it is worth while to inquire a little into the subject. Two points of inquiry suggest themselves : 1. What was the original signification of the rite among the Jews ? 2. Did it partake of the nature of a Sacrament ? I. The Hebrew word for Baptism is Tebilah ; the actual word does not occur in Biblical Hebrew ; but its ^ In later times (i.e., during the first centuries of Christianity) it became a burning question among the Rabbis whether Circum- cision without Baptism was suificient ; some maintained that Baptism alone sufficed I 255 256 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP root (TaBaL), which contains the fundamental significa- tion, is met with fairly frequently in the Old Testament, e.g., Exod. 12^^ : Ye shall take a bunch of hyssop and dip (tabal) it in the blood that is in the basin ; see, too. Lev. 4*, 9*, 14* ; Lev. 14*9"^* is, however, the most important passage, at all events in the Pentateuch ; here the ritual for the cleansing and making atonement of a plague- stricken house is described. The priest takes two birds, cedar wood, scarlet and hyssop ; he kills one of the birds in an earthen vessel over running h)ater, which is conceived of as " living " ; then he takes the living bird, with the cedar wood, scarlet and hyssop, and dips them all first in the blood of the slain bird, and then in the " living " water ; having done this, he takes them aU in his hands and sprinkles the house seven times with them. In this way he " cleanses the house." The real significance of the rite lies in the atonement made by means of blood and the purification by means of living water ; this corre- sponds precisely to the later : Repent and be baptized, which was the kernel of the preaching of John the Baptist, as well as, later on, of the Apostles (see Acts 2'*). Further light is thrown on the meaning of the word as used in 2 Kings 5^* : He dipped himself seven times in the Jordan ; clearly it is total immersion that is here referred to. Then, again, the word is used synonymously with " washing " (rachatz) in this section (w. 10-14), which is the same word used by the Psalmist : / will wash my hands in innocency (Ps. 26*). Thus, according to the Old Testament, the original signification of the rite contained two ideas : (i) Cleansing ; (2) Total immersion in the cleansing element. In accordance with this, Jewish Baptism always implied total immersion ; for without this, part of the significance of the rite would have been lost. It was, moreover, only fit and natural that the prosel5d;e should have witnesses to his Baptism ; this was, therefore, also the invariable custom. CEREMONIAL PURIFICATIONS 257 But there were other kinds of " Baptism," which were in form and conception more or less similar to that just mentioned, but which belonged to a somewhat different category ; these were ceremonial purifications, undertaken to obUterate " uncleanness " of one kind or another ; see e.g.. Num. 19, where several instructive examples will be found. Different as these latter are in degree from Baptism in the more usual sense of the word, both have this in common, that the washing has the effect of taking away something that is offensive to God, something which debars a man from intercourse with God. In the one case, it is contact with something unclean which prohibits a man from worshipping God until he has been rituaUy cleansed ; in the other, it is such a thing as disease, e.g. leprosy, from the taint of which a man must be purified before He" is fit to come into the presence of God. It cannot be doubted that in the first instance both of these came under one and the same category ; but at a comparatively early period the two must have been differentiated, and for this reason : according to the Jewish doctrine of Sin, all sickness was the visible manifestation of the wrath of God for transgression ; leprosy, for example, was not only the S5anbol of a polluted soul, but also the sign that the soul was polluted, and that God was punishing the leper by means of the disease. Clearly, therefore, when once this belief (which has perhaps more truth in it than many people think, see i Cor. ii^^' *°) arose, there was bound to ensue a discrimination between the impurity contracted, for example, by touching a dead body (Num. jgi6, 17)^ and that which, for example, leprosy entailed. This leads us to our second question : — 2. Did Jewish Baptism partake of the nature of a Sacrament ? Did, in other words, the Jews believe that through material means spiritual grace was conferred ? This is a difficult question to answer, and the answer will differ according to different periods of Jewish history. 18— (2417) 258 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP One or two preliminary considerations may be of assist- ance in discussing the question. Circumcision ^ never, among the IsraeHtes, partook of a sacramental character ; it was merely an outward sign, a sign that a covenant had been made with Jehovah. Not so, however, with many other peoples ; it would not be difficult to show that, as practised by a number of more primitive races, circumcision was a sacrament, — of course, according to primitive conceptions. We are not, however, concerned with this here ; neither Israelites nor, later on, Jews regarded it as other than a badge. Then, again, it is very interesting to note that, though the Jews, during the two or three centuries before and after the birth of Christianity, had no rites which partook of a sacramental character, yet all the various other faiths which existed at this period had sacraments which formed almost the core of such faiths ; the religions of Greece and Rome, Mithraism and Christianity, all had outward rites which were believed to be the means of conferring spiritual grace. But the Jews had none such. We shall return presently to the belief of the early IsraeHtes which differed in this respect from later Judaism. But it is worth asking first, how one is to account for the following facts: Among primitive races sacraments are the rule ; among the early Israelites, as wiU be shown, they existed ; among the cultured Greeks and Romans they existed ; among Christians, whose belief is the most advanced, and there- fore the most spiritual, of all religions, sacraments were, and are, the condition of salvation * ; and yet the Jews had no sacraments, nor have they to-day. How is one to account for these facts of (i) Sacraments being char- acteristic of the earhest and latest forms of belief, ' Its origin is involved in obscurity ; it was very widely prac- tised among an immense variety of peoples, and at the present day many savage tribes practise the rite, see Chap, xxi, § i. » See the Church Catechism, which reflects the teaching of the early Church. SACRAMENTS 259 including the religion of Israel, and (2) of the Jews being without them ? ^ The answer is of extreme importance, but for an adequate answer a treatise would be required. We conceive that the answer would run somewhat on these lines : — AU primitive races, from the first dawn of understanding, have received the divine revelation, in small measure — in very small measure — but nevertheless in some measure ; if this were not granted, it would be difficult to believe that God has existed from all time ; for, if this latter be true, is it possible to conceive of God ever having not taken a deep interest in His highest creation ? Primitive man, |therefore, received, in part, the divine revelation ; he therefore had his sacraments, the most astonishing of which was the widely-spread sacrificial meal, which had for its object the bringing about of a union between the worshipper and his God." We, nowadays, speak of these kinds of sacraments as Magic, and from our point of view that is, of course, right ; but to early peoples they were as really sacraments as the Christian sacraments are to us ; their mental state only permitted of their receiving the divine revelation in small measure. Their sacraments possessed a germ of truth. As the divine revelation gradually became fuller, and man learned more about God, he realized that while his conceptions with regard to sacraments were in great part crass, yet that some truth lay in them ; the intensely difficult task lay before man to preserve the truth and discard the crass. In these three : in JeAvish history (up to the present day), in the history of Paganism, and in the history of Christianity, we have, quite roughly speaking, three courses indicated : that which discarded * The term "Jewish" is not properly applied to the nation until after the Captivity. • For proof of this statement recourse must be had to works which enumerate the facts, such as J. G. Frazer's The Golden Bough, Robertson Smith's Religion of the Semites, Jevon's Intro- duction to the History of Religion, etc. 260 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the crass and the truth-germ with it ; that which went on as before and came to' an end because a middle course was impossible ; and that which discarded the crass, but retained the truth-germ, and nourished it. Thus Baptism among the Jews did not partake of a sacramental character ; but it oughi to have done so logically, because, as we conceive, the prototype of Baptism among the Israelites did partake of a sacramental character. Here, again, want of space forbids a detailed proof, and we can but point out a few facts that make it reasonably certain that the protot5?pe of Jewish Baptism among the Israelites was in some sense regarded as a Sacrament, i.e., that the visible rite conferred inward grace. One must remember that grace, in the early Israelite sense, though just as real to Israelites as grace in our sense of the word is to us, was nevertheless not of the same spiritual kind as what we understand by it now ; that is, of course, obvious. The main line of argument is naturally dependent upon the early doctrine of Sin among the Israehtes ; if it can be shown that, in any sense, washing had the effect of taking away sin of any kind, then it will follow that the germ, at least, of a sacrament was inherent in the Israelite rite of Ablution — the prototype of Baptism. I. That, as already remarked, sickness was popularly regarded as the visible manifestation of the wrath of God for sin committed will be clear from one or two examples : Exod. 4** ^^ : Jehovah is represented as seeking to kiU Moses apparently because his son was not circum- cized ; non-circumcision was in early Israel, as well as in later days, regarded as a grievous sin. Exod. II *"* : It is said that Jehovah would slay the first-bom of the Egyptians as the result of Pharaoh's hardness of heart, cf. 2. Sam. 7" ff. Num. 12^'** : One could not well have a more striking passage than this ; Miriam questions whether he Lord has spoken by Moses alone, and holds that He ABLUTION 261 has spoken by Aaron and by her as well. As a result of this sin against the unique God-given authority of Moses, Miriam becomes a leper (v. lo). 1. Sam 25^*''*: Here we read that the Lord smote Nabal that he died ; the reason is given in David's words : Blessed be the Lord, that hath pleaded the cause of my reproach from the hand of Nabal, and hath kept back his servant from evil : and the evil-doing of Nabal hath the Lord returned upon his own head. Isa. 53'"*- The Man of sorrow and sickness (the Hebrew for " griefs " in verse 4 means " sicknesses ") is regarded by the people, whom the prophet is instructing, as suffering God's chastisement for his own sins : We did esteem him stricken ; smitten of God, and afflicted. These instances wiU suffice, though they might be considerably increased. They make it quite clear that sickness and death were looked upon as sent by God in consequence of sin. 2. We turn now to some actual instances of ablution : — Lev. 15^* : A man who has an " issue " is required to bathe (wash) in " living " water, and he will be clean. If the " issue " is a manifestation of divine wrath for sin committed, and if the washing takes away that mani- festation, then it must, logically, have been believed that that of which the " issue " was the visible sign must have been taken away tOo. If this reasoning be correct, it follows that the outward act of washing was believed to effect a reconciliation between the transgressor and his God ; and this is essentially a Sacrament. The expression, " living water," is fuU of meaning ; it derived its " life " from the spirit which (in early times) was believed to dwell in it. " Holy " wells were believed to be the domiciles of powerful spirits, and their " energy " was conceived of as belonging inherently to the water in which they dwelt. In later times this belief was discarded, but the expression " living water " was stiH retained ; and it was still popularly supposed that 262 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the water itself, though not the spirit's power in it, took away the illness or sign of divine wrath, and therefore the sin of which it was the sign. Num. 8'" ^ : Before the Levites were fit to enter upon their duties, there were certain ceremonies to be gone through, which had the effect of cleansing them from their sins. They had first to be sprinkled with the " waters of expiation " (Ut. " the waters of sin "), then they had to shave and wash ; after that they had to offer up a " sin-offering," i.e., an offering which takes away sin. There can be little doubt that we have here an instance of duplication to make certainty doubly sure. The water took away the sin, but to make certain, in such special cases as the sanctification of the Levites to their holy office, a sin-offering also is offered. The two are analogous rites, as their name impHes, viz., " waters of sin " means water that takes away sin, " sin-offering " means an offering that takes away sin. So that the very existence of such an expression as " waters of sin " shows that this use of water constituted a sacrament. Lev. ,14^"** : Without going into details, which would take up too much space, it will be found on reading this passage that the recovered leper had, among other things, to wash in " living " water and offer a sin-offering. This in the case of a leper was of still greater significance than in the example just cited, inasmuch as leprosy was par excellence the symbol of sin — ^in early days the result of sin. The recovered leper, according to this passage, had a long series of purifications to go through before the taint of sin could be removed. This passage is especially instructive, because it is not the leprosy itself which the man was being cleansed from, for in vv. 3 and 4 the direc- tions given are : " . . . And the priest shall look, and, behold, if the plague of leprosy be healed in the leper, then shall the priest command . . ." ; that is to say, the actual physical disease had departed before the cleansing process was undertaken. It would seem that the invisible RITUAL WASHING 263 taint of sin (as distinct from its visible manifestation), on account of which the divine visitation, in the shape of leprosy, had overtaken the man, was that which the cleansing process was intended to purify ; for the man could not enter into God's presence for worship until he had washed, etc. -It is thus difficult to get away from the conviction that this " washing " contains the elements of a sacrament. In some passages in which " washing " is referred to it is mentioned in connexion with " sancti- fying " ; indeed, it would appear that the act of " sancti- fying oneself " consisted in washing. This is certainly the sense in Deut. igi""!*. To " sanctify oneself " is " to make oneself holy " ; if, therefore, washing was the act, or part of the act, of sanctifying oneself, it can scarcely be denied that it was regarded as a sacramental act. Lastly, there is the expression of " washing the hands " as a sign of innocency, as found in Deut. 21'"^ and in Ps. 26'. Even though this be but a symbol, or a poetical expression, it can scarcely be doubted that the symbol is the natural descendant of a rite which was originally more than a synabol. Though actual proof may not be forthcoming in this case, analogies could be cited to show that it is highly probable that at one time the ritual, the visible act of washing the hands, was beheved to be the counterpart of an invisible taking away of transgression, i.e. a sacrament. ■■■-. We have dwelt somewhat at length upon this point because it is one of importance. The conclusion, however, is that in early Israel ritual washing, the prototype of Baptism, was a sacramental act ; logically, therefore, the Baptism (Tebilah) of later Judaism ought to have been a sacrament, but it was not. On the other hand, it is very interesting to notice that Baptism among the Essenes was distinctly a Sacrament ^ ; 1 This is vividly brought out, for ..(example, in the pseud- epigraphic work, The Life of A dam and Eve, believed to be of Essene origin. 264 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP moreover, the formula with which John the Baptist must so often have prefaced his preaching — Repent and he baptized — implies that he regarded Baptism as a sacrament. These two pre-Christian examples of Baptism being regarded as a Sacrament are instructive, because the Essenes and the followers of the Baptist certainly possessed a more spiritual form of religion than the orthodox Jew. That Baptism is not now practised by the Jews can only be accounted for by the fact that it has become a distinctively Christian rite. For further detaUs regarding the Rabbinic practice of baptizing prosel5rtes, see Edersheim, Life and Times. . . . Vol. ii, App. xii. PART III . PRACTICAL RELIGION CHAPTER XIV. The Education and Life of the Jew. What is a Jew ? — Early Years — Education of Children — Cheder and Religious Instruction — Hebrew and Yiddish — Bar Mitzvah — Higher Instruction. I As a preliminary to the attempt to form some general conception of the life and education of the Jew as a whole, it is necessary to distinguish within the ranks of Judaism itself the different types that are included under the designation " Jew." What is a Jew ? He is, strictly, a member of that particular branch of the Semitic race which, within historical times, had its centre in the province of Judaea, and was dispersed from that centre. As this race has, on the whole, maintained its separateness and identity — though scattered all over the world, and for ages past deprived of its national centre — and as it consistently refuses to intermarry with other populations, it is strictly accurate to describe its members as Jews (i.e. Judahites). The underlying unity which binds together the whole mass of Jews the world over, and in which the many external differences of language, social customs, and local peculiarities are reconciled, is fundamentally racial. It is in this light that the Jew is regarded by the average non-Jew. The latter " knows Jewry by its descent rather than its creed. Indeed," says Mr. Arnold White, " the peculiar characteristics usually associated with the Hebrew community are not rehgious but racial. The quarrel of un-Christlike Christendom with the Judaism that has broken with Moses is not a question of faith ; 265 266 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP it is a matter of character and habit engendered partly by Oriental origin and Semitic exclusiveness, and partly, perhaps principally, by qualities acquired by the race through centuries of persecution and cruelty at the hands of the followers of the Nazarene under the operation of the first law of Nature — the wish to live.'" But it would be a great mistake, and would argue a merely superficial acquaintance with the subject, to regard the Jew as merely the representative of a peculiar race. How comes it about that this race has been able to maintain itself in such numbers against the almost intolerable pressure of alien forces in the Western world ? The answer is, The preservation of the race is due to the intensity and dominance of its religion. It may be doubted if any religious system has ever been so thoroughly and consistently apphed and carried out in practice by a community of people as has Judaism for long periods by the Jewish race. Jewish history, regarded from this point of view, affords a phenomenon without a parallel. The true key, then, for unlocking the Jewish enigma is the study of Jewish religion. From this point of view, the rehgious Jew, the man who, in Jewish parlance, is " froom," or pious, is the truly typical Jew. There are, of course, other types of Jews. Mr. Arnold White, in his book. The Modern Jew, divides EngHsh Jews into four classes — viz. (i) the Jewish aristocracy, at whose houses one never meets an untitled Jew ; (2) the highly-educated, anglicized Jews, who refuse intermarriage, but, generally speaking, are by no means " froom." Jews of this type throng the professions ; (3) the rich cosmopohtan Jew, whose God is money, who is ahke destitute of patriotism and religion ; who is, in fact, a materialist of" the worst and most dangerous kind, and who is a fount of social poison ; (4) the destitute alien. ' The Modern Jew, p. 4, THE RELIGIOUS TYPE OF JEW 267 Mr. White has, however, ornitted to mention a fifth class, with whom we shall be largely concerned, as this class is, perhaps, ^ the best exponent of the special and characteristic quahties of Jewish religion. We mean the alien who is not destitute. The religious Jew is the truly typical Jew, because all other types are modifica- tions, and not by any means always desirable modifications, of the rehgious original. The religious type is pre- supposed by, and explains, the rest. Even when a Jew has given up his ancestral religion and professes " free- thinking " principles, he is, in a way he may not always be fuUy conscious of, stiU largely under the dominion of forces and tendencies which not infrequently re-assert themselves, and which find their true explanation in the past religious history of the race. An exquisite characterization of this type of Jew is given in the'pathetic and powerful study, entitled " Chad Gadya," in Mr. Zangwill's Dreamers of the Ghetto. The dominant note, then, of Jewish life and education is rehgion, or at least religious observance. Religion pervades not only the Synagogue, but the Home. As will be seen, later, the Home is an almost more important centre of rehgious observance than the Synagogue itself. The great Passover commemoration, for instance, is mainly a Festival of the Home. The Home is thus the centre on which the affections and leisure of the typical Jew are concentrated. In it the life and strength of Judaism find their citadel. II. Early Years. The important moments in the hfe of the Jew, from birth to death, are all invested with a rehgious sanction and a religious significance. The atmosphere into which the Jewish child is bom, and in which it grows up, is crowded with associations, symbols and observances, which are bound up with the past religious history of the race. 268 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP In the case of boys, the rite of initiation into the covenant of Abraham {Berith Milah — ^i.e., " Covenant of Circumcision") is carried out by the Mohel, usually at home, but sometimes in the S3aiagogue after morning service. In some places it has been customary for friends to visit the house during the week preceding this ceremony, to pray for the welfare of the new-bom infant, and for boys to recite there Biblical passages, such as Gen. 48^', Jacob's blessing on Joseph's sons — " The Angel which redeemed me from all evil bless the lads ; and let ray name be named on them, and the name of my fathers Abraham and Isaac ; and let them grow into a multitude in the midst of the earth ! " A favourite day for such a visit was the Friday before the ceremony, and the occasion was looked upon as one for hospitaUty. The night before the ceremony was spent in reading Bible and Talmud, so that the child might from the beginning breathe, as it were, the atmosphere of Torah (Friedlander) . Other quaint local customs, expressing the same idea, are also met with. Some interesting features connected with the rite itself are also worth noting. The service used can be seen in Singer's edition of the Hebrew Prayer-Book (in Hebrew and English) on p. 304. It will be noticed that a prominent personage at the ceremony is the Sandek, or godfather, also called " Gevatter," after the German name, upon whose knees the child is placed during the performance of the rite, and who is also sometimes called the Baal Berith (" Master of the Covenant "). Now this word Sandek is no other than the Greek word avvreicvo^, the Greek ecclesiastical term for god- father. It was the See, further, Chap, xxi, § ii. ' See this explained in Chap xviii, § 2. EDUCATION OF CHILDREN 271 ceremony is noteworthy as " being the only attention the female child receives from the Synagogue." After the father was called up to the reading of the Law foUowed the formula beginning : " May He who blessed our father Abraham, may He also bless," etc. Then followed the announcement of the child's name. The prayer is printed in Singer, p. 132. III. Education of Children. This has always been regarded by the Jews as a matter of the supremest importance. " And to be sure," as Prof. Schechter remarks, " it was not an easy matter to bring up a priest." All kinds of anecdotes are told in Rabbinic hterature of infant prodigies in learning. Thus it is recorded that " a famous Kabbahst, Nahum, at the age of three gave a lecture on the Decalogue that lasted for three days." But happily such precocity was not encouraged. One charming story of a somewhat different kind is told, which is worth repeating. We are indebted for it to Prof. Schechter. R. Joshua ben Hananiah once made a journey to Rome. Here he was told that amongst the captives from Jerusalem there was a child with bright eyes, its hair in ringlets, and its features strikingly beauti- ful. The Rabbi made up his mind to redeem the boy. He went to the prison, and addressed the child with a verse from Isaiah : " Who gave Jacob for a spoU and Israel to the robbers ? " On this the child answered by continuing the second half of the same verse : " Did not the Lord, He against whom we have sinned ? For they would not walk in his ways, neither were they obedient unto his law" (Isa. 43^*). The Rabbi was so delighted with this answer that he said : " I am sure he will grow up to be a teacher in Israel. I take an oath to redeem him, cost what it may." The child was afterwards known as R. Ishmael ben Elisha. The history of the Jewish system of education is a long and fascinating one, and can only be touched upon 272 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP in the briefest possible manner here. But it is impossible properly to understand the Jewish character without realizing what an immense part education has played in developing and maintaining Judaism at various periods of its remarkable history. The Jewish race may well be proud of its educational achievements. To it belongs the distinction of having produced the oldest hand-book of psedagogic principles in the world — the Book of Proverbs. The discipline of the intellect has become part of its religion. The Synagogue was, and to some extent still is, especially in Poland, the centre of the community's intellectual as weU as religious life. This fact so much struck Christian observers in the Middle Ages, that we find the Synagogue consistently described in mediaeval documents as schola or school, a term which has survived in the German term for the Synagogue, shool. The S3magogue appears to have possessed this character as far back as New Testament times. For though such|terms as "schoolmaster" (Rom. 2^' ff.) and "teacher of infants" occur in the New Testament, and thus prove that the school, as an institution, was well known, it is remarkable that the word " school " itself only occurs there once, and then not of a Jewish school, but of the lecture-room of Br Greek rhetorician at Ephesus (Acts 19'). The probable explanation is that the school, in both its elementary and higher forms, was so intimately associated with the Synagogue, that, in ordinary speech, the two were not separated. The term S5magogue included its school. The close association of learning and rehgion in Judaism strikes one at every turn. On looking at the beginning of the Jewish Prayer-Book passages will be found from the Mishnah and Baraithas containing specimens of the subtle dialectic in which the Jewish mind revels. Now these passages at first sight seem to serve no religious purpose whatever. In fact, to non-Jewish eyes they appear to be positively unedifying. Their presence JEWISH LEARNING 273 in the Liturgy at all can only be explained when we remember the point of view from which the typical Jew regards such subjects. To the Jew, Jewish learning is part of the Jewish rehgion. As a consequence, a certain amount of sacred learning is a necessary part of every true Jew's equipment. The good results that have flowed from this attitude of mind are that the intellectual level of the whole race has been raised. In certain places, for certain periods of their history, the Jewish people may, with very little exaggeration, be said to have produced a nation of scholars. This is, to-day, largely true of Poland, which is stiU the centre of Jewish intel- lectual energy. But even in countries like our own, where Jewish life is lived on a necessarily much smaller scale, and with far less intensity, and where devotion to Jewish studies, as such, is checked and reduced by the multifarious foreign influences of a seductive non- Jewish environment, the effect of the intellectual discipline of the past on the rice is apparent enough. The keen wits and sharp intelligence of the least educated of Jewish children are notorious. Learning and the learned class are honoured in the Jewish community in a way that it would be hard to parallel in the case of any other body of people, with the possible exception of the Scotch. The intellectual element in Jewish rehgion is thus very pronounced, and this is a matter which ought to be fuUy understood by those who wish to commend Christianity to the Jewish people. Herein Judaism reveals both its strength and its weakness. Its strength — for it is undoubtedly the love of sacred study, instilled in School and S3magogue, that has saved the Jewish race from extinction ; and its weakness — because it is possible to give an exaggerated place, in rehgious matters, to the intellect ; and this is a danger from which Judaism has by no means always escaped. Judaism has very little S3rmpathy to offer to the unlearned, the ignorant, the weak, the fallen, 19— (2417) 274 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the sinner. " This people that knoweth not the Law is accursed." It is in this 1-espect that Christianity might do so much for Jewish religion, by infusing into it its own spirit and transforming it. It may, perhaps, be added that it is equally possible, unduly to depreciate the place of the intellect in matters religious, and that Judaism has something to teach us aU in this respect. The importance of the early training of children is a constant theme of discussion in Jewish Mterature. The dominant place of a definitely religious training is insisted upon throughout. " Train up a child in the way he should go, and even when he is old he will not depart from it" (Prov. 22*), is re-echoed, in more prosaic language, in the Talmud : "If we do not keep our children to reUgion when they are young, we shall certainly not be able to do so in later years." And the Jewish teachers were the first to perceive that the means by which this could be accomplished was" by a system of definite rehgious instruction in the elementary schools. There is a famous Talmudical passage which is usually printed at the end of the treatise known as " The Ethics (or Sayings) of the Fathers " {Pirke A both), which might be entitled "The Ages of Man," or, at any rate, of the Jewish man. It runs as follows : " At five years old. Scripture ; at ten, Mishnah ; at thirteen, the Commandments ; at fifteen, Talmud; at eighteen, the Bridal (marriage), etc." Such is the programme of Jewish education according to the Mishnah, but it is of necessity largely modified in practice. As a matter of fact the reUgious training of the child began as soon as it could speak ; and this is stiU the rule. Professor Schechter quotes a passage from one of the later Midrashim, which states the Talmudic rule well. Referring to a passage in Lev. ig**'"*, where it is for- bidden to eat the fruits of a tree in the first three years, the Midrash goes on to say : " And this is also the case with the Jewish child. In the first three years the child i§ unable to speak, and therefore i§ exempted from every RELIGIOUS EDUCATION OF THE YOUNG 275 religious duty ; but in the fourth year all its fruits shall be holy to praise the Lord, and the father is obliged to initiate the child in religious works." This latter duty is performed by the father, who teaches the child to repeat short verses of Scripture, such as the first verse of the " Shema' " ; " Hear, O Israel ; the Lord our God is One " (Deut. 6*) ; or " Moses commanded us a Torah, the inheritance of the congregation of Jacob " (Deut. 33 *) ; as weU as short prayers in Hebrew. In an interesting little book published a few years ago by Dr. Gaster, the head of the Spanish and Portuguese Jewish com- munity in England, which is designed to introduce the sacred tongue to young children, and which he calls (after his own Mttle boy, who first used it,) " Vivian's Hebrew Reader," ^ there is, at the end of the volume, a small collection of such prayers and blessings as a young child would begin to learn on entering its fourth year. They include prayers for morning and evening, the Ten Commandments, grace after meals, and various short blessings, the whole occup5dng in the Hebrew text about six and a half printed pages. There is also an EngUsh translation. Of course, so young a child would take some time to master all this, but it enables one to form some idea of the kind of instruction well-taught Jewish children receive. In his fourth year, too, a boy used to begin to accompany his parents to Synagogue, carrying their prayer-books. Though the Law is not binding upon children, in the strict sense, it yet has been usual to accustom them to its requirements from an early age (at any rate, in strict Jewish families). Thus, the Mishnah directs the elders to enjoin upon children Sabbath observance {Shabbath XV, 6), and the instinctive feehng so engendered is obviously present in Jewish children to-day. One or two years before the legal age, fasting, preliminary to ' Vivian's Hebrew Reader is published by Greenberg & Co. 276 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the requirements of the Day of Atonement, was to be begun {Yoma viii. 4). Children are also boimd to the girace at table. Two great occasions in the Jewish year afford special opportimities for inculcating these precepts upon children — ^viz., on Simchath Torah (the " Rejoicing of the Law," a very joyous festival), and Sexier-evening (Passover). In the earliest period, when the Temple was standing, boys were required to be present, at the tenderest age, at the chief festivals in the Great Sanctuary {Chagigah i, i).' It may, perhaps, be inferred from Luke 2*^ that those who dwelt at a distance from Jerusalem would not take part in the pilgrimages tiU their twelfth year. The next great moment in the boy's history is when he enters school for the first time (from the fifth to the seventh year). This was formerly the occasion of much ceremony, which is worth describing, though it has long been aboUshed. " This day," we are told, " was celebrated by the Jews, especially in the Middle Ages, in such a way as to justify the high esteem in which they held the school. The school was looked upon as a second Mount Sinai, and the day on which the child entered it as the Feast of Revelation. Many Abrahams', op, cit., p, 187, 288 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP e.g., i^"*, and often), and also as the region in which Israel was exiled, and from which the exiles were to return. The breaking of the symbol of joy effected by hurling it in the direction of the north may thus be intended as a reminder that even a Jew's most joyful moments are dashed with the bitter reflection that Israel is still in exile. This is confirmed by the ending of the seventh blessing, which runs : " Soon may there he heard, in the cities of Judah, and in the streets of Jerusalem, the voice of joy and gladness, the voice of the bridegroom and the voice of the bride, the jubilant voice of bridegrooms from their canopies, and of youths from their feasts of song." No doubt the general sentiment that all life's pleasures have a strain of sadness has also contributed to maintain the ceremony. The sentiment thus in true Oriental fashion expressed, reminds one of the two last stanzas of Fitzgerald's " Omar " :— Yon rising moon that looks for us again — How oft hereafter will she wax and wane ; How oft hereafter, rising, look for us Through this same garden — and for one in vain ! And when, like her. Oh Saki, you shall pass Among the guests star-scattered on the grass And in your joyous errand reach the spot Where I made one — ^tum down an empty glass. Before leaving this subject, it may be mentioned, that a most interesting specimen of a fragment of what is possibly an old Jewish wedding-glass has been found in a Roman tomb, which probably belongs to the fourth century. " It bears an elaborate picture of the Temple, with the piUared porch of Solomon, the columns known as Jachin and Boaz, the seven-branched candlestick, and other typically Jewish emblems. There are two inscrip- tions in Greek (the language of the Jews in Rome for several centuries) : ' House of peace, take the blessing,' and ' Drink and live with all thine.' " ^ In the Middle 1 Abrahams, op. cit., p. 182. An engraving of this is given in Benzinger's Archdologie, p. 251. DIVORCE 289 Ages, also, Jewish betrothal rings often had a picture of Temple or Synagogue engraved on them. It should be noted that Jewish marriages are forbidden between Passover and Pentecost — certain days being excepted (e.g., the 33rd in Omer — lyar i8th). The Romans, also, did not marry in May — to which fact the modern custom may owe itsr origin. ^ Another Jewish institution connected with marriage, which must not be passed over, is that of the Shadchan (match-maker, desponsator), or Jewish marriage-broker. He will be a familar figure to readers of Mr. ZangwiU. The following short description of this personage must here suffice : " Owing to the early age at which marriages used to be solemnized among Jews, it becarne customary to have the matches made up by the relatives or friends, and ultimately a special person undertook to bring appropriate parties together with a view to marriage. Also, from the same cause, the chief circumstance to be considered in the matter was the dowry and the settlement to be given by the bridegroom, and the Shadchan or match- maker, gradually devoted his chief attention to these mundane matters. In reward for his trouble it became the custom for him to claim a certain percentage of the settlement. Many Rabbis were glad to act as Shadchanim without any remuneration, as it is a special mitzvah to promote marriages among the daughters and sons of Israel. The institution of Shadchan— ^Yach. is still active among certain classes of Jews — often leads to much dissatisfaction, which at times finds expression in the civil courts. "2 Divorce. — Before discussing the subject of divorce, a word must be said on the status of marriage in general among the Jews. It is more or less well known that polygamy was formally abolished among the Jews by the great Rabbi Gershom (960-1028), who prohibited bigamy ^ Cf. Abrahams, op. cit. p. 182. " Jewish Year Book. ao— (24r7) 290 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP on pain of ex-communication, and forbade the forcible divorce of the wife, and actually won acceptance for these enactments (though issued on his own authority alone) from the Jews in Europe. " Since his days monogamy has been the law as well as the custom of aU Western Jews." • But it is a mistake to suppose that polygamy had been prevalent among the Jews to any great extent before this time. In dealing with the whole question of the status of women, of marriage and divorce, it is necessary to remem- ber that Jewish practice has always been ahead of Jewish Law. Legally, the position of Jewish women in all these matters is very low, but in reahty this is by no means the case. Leaving out of consideration the Old Testament (where, though polygamy is treated as tolerable, mono- gamy is clearly pointed to as the better way) it may be remarked that the New Testament gives no hint that Jewish practice was other than monogamous. The same is true of the Talmud, — monogamy is pre- supposed throughout. " Of the array of Rabbis named in the Talmud," says Mr. Israel Abrahams, " not a solitary instance can be found of a bigamist. Constant references are made in Rabbinical hterature to a man's wife, never once to his wives." A few of the Rabbinical sayings on the topic of marriage and the married state are worth noting. " Not money but character is the best dowry of a wife " ; " When his wife dies, a man's world is darkened, his step is slow, his mind is heavy ; she dies in him, he in her " ; "A man must not make a woman weep, for God counts her tears " ; " Marriages are made in Heaven." On the other hand, the Talmud (quoting the example of Ahab) warns against following the advice of a wife {Baia Metzia, 59^) ; a domineering wife, according to the same authority, makes hfe not worth living (Betza, 32''). ' Abrahams, op. cit. ibid. DIVORCE LAWS 291 The Jewish woman thus in reahty has always occupied a more dignified position than her legal status would seem to suggest. It is necesary to bear this point in mind in estimating the Divorce Laws. It is weU-known that according to the Mosaic Law (Deut. 24^ f .) a man could divorce a wife if she found " no favour in his eyes." In the time of our Lord the practical interpretation of this law was a subject of controversy between the rival schools of Hillel and Shammai. One of the test questions put to our Lord was concerned with this subject : " The Pharisees also came unto Him tempting him, and saying unto Him, Is it lawful for a man to put away his wife for every cause ? " How our Lord dealt with it is also described (Matt. ig^-^^). The school of Shammai took the strict, that of Hillel the lax, view. According to the latter, a man might divorce his wife if she even spoilt his food! while Rabbi Akiba (second century), the most prominent Rabbi of his time, went so far as to say that a man might put away his wife if he had found another fairer than she ! {Gittin ix, 10.) But it must not be imagined that such laxity was ever reduced to practice. There is no reason to suppose that Rabbi Akiba's dictum was meant seriously. He was addicted to drawing strict logical conclusions even when they landed him in a palpable absurdity. It is quite certain that his dictum was never reduced to practice among the Jews as a customary law. The tendency in practice was to discourage Divorce as much as possible, and to place as many obstacles as could be in its way. Thus a man was not allowed to divorce his wife until he had paid the settlement mentioned in the Kethubdh or marriage-settlement. About the year 1000 A.D. (when monogamy was legally established by Rabbi Gershom) it was further enacted that the wife could not be divorced against her will, unless for a specific cause — e.g., unfaithfulness. A wife who obstinately refused to follow her husband to a new home was hable 292 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP to divorce. It must be admitted that the Medieval Church occasionally permitted departures from the monogamous principle of an analogous kind. Thus Mr. Abrahams quotes the Church Council of Vermene (a.d. 752) which seems to have enacted that " when a wife refused to accompany her husband on a journey, the husband might marry again, if he had no hope of returning home." 1 But such license was extremely exceptional, as a perusal of the article " Marriage " s.v. Divorce, in Smith's Dictionary of Christian Antiquities (to which Mr. Abrahams appeals) will show. StiU, ecclesiastical enactments, it must be confessed, have by no means always displayed the strictness of our Lord's rule. The Rabbinical Law also permitted divorce and re- marriage, if a wife had been forcibly captured and the husband thus deprived of her society ; or if a wife deserted her husband or refused to join him on a pilgrimage to Jerusalem. If the wife became insane or infirm it was thought kinder to permit the husband to commit a bigamous marriage than to insist on divorce. What has just been said regarding Jewish practice applies only to Western Jews. In Mohammedan lands monogamy was by no means the rule. " In the East, as well as in Spain under the Moors, in the Levant and Southern Italy, the monogamous enactment of Rabbi Gershom was never formally recognized by the Jews." ^ Among the Jews of Spain bigamy prevailed as late as the fourteenth century. A European Jew, however, who settled in the East, was bound by Rabbi Gershom's decree. It must always be remembered, however, that polygamy can never (even in Mohammedan countries) be practised by the majority, owing to its expense. In any case, however, it weakens the moral fibre of a community where it is sanctioned, and in this respect the Oriental Jews are on a lower plane than the European. In earlier ' Abrahams, op. cit., p. 117. = Abrahams, op. cit., p. 118. f. " GET " 293 times initative in the matter of divorce was not allowed to the Jewish woman. The only apparent contradiction to this rule known to the writers is found in Mark lo^^' ^*, where the words ascribed to our Lord, forbidding re- marriage after divorce, speak not only of a husband putting away his wife, but contemplate the possibility of a wife putting away her husband (" And if a woman shall put away her husband," etc.). But in the parallel passages in Matt. 5^^, and Luke 16^^, the second clause about the woman putting away her husband is absent ; its presence in St. Mark's Gospel seems due to Roman influence, under which our Lord's precept has been extended to meet the possibilities of Roman Law. The latter allowed the wife as well as the husband to take the initiative. This feature in the second Gospel is thus an interesting confirmation of the theory that it was intended primarily for Roman or Latin Christians. The later Rabbis, however, permitted the wife to claim divorce if ill-treated by her husband, or if he changed his religion, or if he had to leave his country to avoid the consequences of crime. 1 At all times divorce could only be carried out by the proper and formal execution of a document called in the Bible a " bill of divorcement," and by the later Jews Get. The later Rabbinical legislation made the writing and delivery of this document difficult and protracted, " in order (says Dr. Friedlander) to facilitate attempts at reconciliation." The ceremony of divorce is as follows : The husband, in the presence of ten witnesses, hands the Gei to his wife. Both parties are formally questioned — the husband as to whether he has made any vow forcing him to the act, from which he can have dispensation ; the "^ Apparently divorces, conditional on the husband's non- return from abroad within three or more years, are not unknown, even in modem days. For the Get in modern Jewry cf. in Zangwill's They that Walk in Darkness, the story entitled " Incurable." 294 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP wife also is asked whether she is wiUing to accept the divorce. The Get is framed as follows : "On such a day, of such a month, of such a year (era of Creation), I, such an one, son of such an one, from such a place, and by whatever other name or surname, I, or my parent, or my birthplace are known by, of my own will and purpose and without compulsion, dismiss, quit, repudiate thee, such ail one, daughter of such an one, from such a place, and by whatever other name or surname, thou, or thy parent, or thy birthplace art known by, who up to this time hast been my wife. And now I dismiss, quit, and repudiate thee that thou be free, and have the power of going away with any other man. And no one on earth is to hinder thee from this day forward for ever. And now, behold, thou art permitted to be the wife of any man. And this is to be thy bill of divorce, the instrument of thy dismissal, and the letter of thy quittance, according to the law of Moses and of Israel." (Then follow the signatures of two witnesses.) ^ It should be added that a divorced woman may not marry again within ninety days. The law of monogamy was made somewhat difficult to adjust by the Mosaic enactment with regard to the brother of a deceased husband (who died childless) marrying the widow. The technical name for such a marriage of obliga- tion is Yibbum or Yebdmdh. The duty might, however, be refused (Deut. 25 ^"i" ; cf. Ruth 4'), and the refusal is known from the ceremony formerly accompanying it, as Chalitzdh (lit., " removal," viz., of the shoe). In practice, the Yibbum (which, of course, might involve bigamy) is never carried out ; but ChalUzah is often re- sorted to. ChalUzah is looked upon as a sort of divorce : and until ChalUzah is given the widow cannot marry 1 An exact facsimile of the original of such a document can be seen in Surenhusius, Mishnah, iii, 324 ; Dr. Dalman also gives the Aramaic text of one in his Aramdische Dialektproben und Lesestiicke, p. 5. WIFE DESERTION 295 again. It must also be given personally in the presence of the two parties. As the brother-in-law, in some cases, is living a great distance away, the obligation is sometimes rather irksome, i It should be noted also that a divorced woman — whether by Get or Chalitzah — cannot marry a Cohen. With regard to the practice of EngUsh Jews, the facts are as foUows : Following the Talmudic rule that " the law of the country is binding upon them," the English Jews " abide by the decisions of the civil courts of the country." Marriages, therefore, that would not have the sanction of the laws of the country are not solemnized ; nor is Get granted unless divorce has been decreed by the civil courts. But in both cases it is considered essential to supplement the civil forms by the religious. On the other hand, marriages allowed by the civil law, but which are contrary to Jewish religious law, are not recognised by Jewish religious authority. Thus mixed marriages (i.e., marriages between Jews and non- Jews), are spoken of by Dr. Friedlander as sinful, " and," he adds, " the issue of such alliances must be treated as illegitimate. Those who love their religion, and have the well-being of Judaism at heart, will do their utmost to prevent the increase of mixed marriages." We have purposely left to the last the question of wife desertion, which constitutes the one blot upon the other- wise happy conjugal relations of a large section of the Jewish community in East London. It is still a matter of frequent occurrence among the foreign Jews in London, and in reality, has its roots deep down in the history of the past, and is one of the indirect consequences of persecution. Mr. Israel Abrahams thus describes the evil as it existed in the Middle Ages : — " Wife desertion was an evil which it was harder to deal with, for, owing to the unsettlement of Jewish life • It is now often neglected. 296 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP under continuous persecution, the husband was frequently bound to leave home in search of aUvelihood, and, perhaps, to contract his service for long periods to foreign employers. The husband endeavoured to make ample provision for his wife's maintenance during his absence, or, if he failed to do so, the wife was supported at the public cost, and the husband compelled to refund the sum so expended. These absences grew to such abnormal lengths that in the twelfth century it became necessary to protect the wife by limiting the absence to eighteen months, an interval which was only permitted to husbands who had obtained the formal sanction of the communal authorities. On his return the husband was compelled to remain at least six months with his family before again starting on his involuntary travels." ^ Now, of course, there is no longer any persecution, at any rate in this country, and the " communal authority ' ' has nothing like coercive power. Still the case of the absentee- husband, who has gone away in search of work, is quite a common one. The deserted wife then appeals to the Jewish Board of Guardians. In some of these cases there is no question of the husband really abandoning the wife. He intends ultimately to return, or to enable her to go to him. It has often been discovered that there is collusion between husband and wife, especially when, e.g., the husband has been obliged to emigrate to South Africa er America for the sake of health. There are other cases also, where real desertion does take place, the husband seeking to escape his family responsibilities by flight. He is, probably, out of work at the time, and thinks, perhaps, that the starving wife and children will secure charitable assistance more easily in his absence. The Jewish Board of Guardians, however, refuses to encourage this idea, and in such cases generally feels compelled to withhold charitable assistance. ' Abrahams, op. cit., p. 89. RELIGIOUS POSITION OF WOMEN 297 Lastly, there is the worst type of desertion, viz., in order to get rid of the Enghsh wife and secure another. To evade the strict provisions of English law, the unscru- pulous go abroad, where, it must be remembered, they have been accustomed to a much greater facility of divorce than is permitted here. Such cases are, however, we believe, not so numerous as is sometimes imagined. The higher sentiment and nobler practice of the Jews has always asserted itself strongly against divorce. By way of justification for this assertion the noble words of Rabbi Eliezer, which form the conclusion in the Gemara to the Talmudic treatise Gittin, may here be quoted. Rabbi Eliezer is there reported to have said : " Even the altar drops tears when a man divorces the wife and companion of his youth, for thus it is written (Mai. ^^,^*) : ' And this have ye done again, covering the altar of the Lord with tears, with weeping and with crying out. . . . Yet ye say, wherefore ? Because the Lord hath been witness between thee and the wife of thy youth against whom thou hast dealt treacherously, although she is thy companion, and the wife of thy covenant.' " II. The Religious Position of Jewish Women. With regard to the religious position of Jewish women, it is generally assumed that this is a very low one. Every one knows that one of the blessings assigned to men in the Synagogue service runs : " Blessed art thou, O Lord our God, King of the Universe, who hast not made me a woman " (Singer, p. 6). And no doubt there is a certain amount of truth in this widely-held notion. But the bald statement of woman's inferiority in rehgious matters requires some qualification and explanation. According to Jewish ideas, the special and supreme sphere of woman is the home. There her position has always been one of unchallenged dignity. Pubhc affairs and public activities lie outside the home — and therefore 298 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP outside woman's special sphere. Consequently in public worship her rHe has been a purely passive one. The general principle apphed to women was " The King's daughter within the palace is all glorious " (Ps. 451* ), but not outside of it.^ This maxim is the Rabbinical equivalent of : " Let the women keep silence in the churches." The duties of the home were felt to be incompatible with the rigorous demands of pubhc service. Therefore women were not bound by the affirmative precepts of the Law. Still, the religious feeling that is the common possession of Jewish as well as of other women was bound to assert itself ; and it did so from tinie to time in various ways. That woman has played no mean part in Jewish rehgious history can easily be shown. With regard to the Old Testament, it is only necessary to mention such names as those of Hannah, Deborah, and the great woman of Shunem. The latter evidently attended some form of worship presided over by the prophet on festivals and Sabbaths (cf. Kings. 4^^ : " Wherefore wilt thou go to the prophet ? it is neither new moon nor Sabbath "). It may be remarked in passing that " the new moon was especially a woman's holiday, and was so observed even in the Middle Ages, for the women refrained from doing work on that day. The explanation given by the Rabbis," says Professor Schechter, " is that when the men broke off their golden earrings to supply material for the golden calf, the wonjen refused to contribute their trinkets, for which good behaviour a special day of repose was granted to them. Some Kabbalists even maintain that the original worshippers of the golden calf continue to exist on earth, their souls having successively migrated into various bodies, while their punishment consists in tips, that they are ruled over by their wives." * In the time of the second Temple we have Esther (who according to • Schechter, Studies, p. 391. ' Schechter, op, cit., p. 384. "MOTHER OF THE SYNAGOGUE" 299 tradition addressed a long extempore prayer to God before presenting herself before the throne of Ahasuerus to plead her people's cause ; women were always enjoined to attend the reading of the Book of Esther) and Judith ; and in Maccabees mention is made of " the women girt with sack cloth, and the maidens who, holding up their hands to heaven, made supplication." It is well known that in the second Temple the women had a special court. Galleries around this court were reserved for their special use, and Professor Schechter thinks that the arrangement of the Synagogue, by which women have a special gallery or part partitioned off for their use, was modelled on this. It was in the Court of the Women that the King every seven years pubhcly read certain portions of the Law, and women were expected to attend this function. It is interesting, also, to note that though, according to the Law, women were exempted from putting their hands on the victim (in sacrifice}, yet according to an eye-witness, they were allowed to do so if they desired it, the reason alleged being " to give calmness of the spirit, or satisfaction, to women." Coming to the S5niagogue, ancient epitaphs attest the fact that certain women, probably by their religious zeal in charity (bestowal of kindness) , earned such titles as ' ' Mistress of the Synagogue ' ' and " Mother of the Synagogue." In the Synagogue women said the eighteen Benedictions {Shemoneh 'Esreh). But instances are on record that they sometimes offered short prayers composed by themselves as well. Professor Schechter cites the following as an example. Rabbi Jochanan relates that one day he observed a young girl faU on her face and pray, " Lord of the world. Thou hast created Paradise, Thou hast created hell, Thou hast created the wicked. Thou hast created the righteous. May it be Thy will that I may not serve as a stumbUng-block to them." What seems to have much curtailed women's religious privileges in the Synagogue is the dictum of a famous 300 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP Rabbi known as Rabbi Eliezer (second century, early), who, apparently on moral grounds, thought it inexpedient that women should study the Law. Though other Rabbis were found who did not share Eliezer's views on this matter, his advice was followed by later generations, and became the rule in education. " The fact that women were exempted from certain affirmative laws, which become operative only at certain seasons — e.g., the taking of the palm-branch on the Feast of Tabernacles — must also (to use Professor Schechter's words) have contributed to weaken their position as a religious factor in Judaism." Sometimes women compensated themselves in their own way. " The daughters of Israel," we are told, " were stringent, and laid certain restrictions on themselves." They were also allowed to form a quorum by themselves for the purpose of saying grace, but they could not be counted with males for this end. It must not be supposed that women allowed themselves to be debarred from attend- ing service at Synagogue. The Talmudic tractate Soferim informs us that even " the little daughters of Israel were accustomed to go to the Synagogue." A curious instance of women asserting themselves in this direction meets us in the Middle Ages. In the twelfth and thirteenth centuries, apparently, it became quite general for women, as they did not know Hebrew, to pray in the vernacular. Apparently in the sixteenth century this custom had died out, for we find a Rabbi of that period regretting its cessation. " When they prayed in the vernacular," he says, " they understood what they were saying, whilst now they only gabble off their prayers." ^ A later compromise in this direction meets us in the so-caUed " Supphcations," which form a supplement to the ordinary liturgy, are written in German, and are largely ' Cf. Abrahams, op. cit., p. 334 f. " VORSAGERIN " 301 the composition of women. Professor Schechter mentions that in one of these collections in the British Museum he has discovered a special supphcation for servant-maids, and also for their mistresses. There are also devotional manuals for women, written in German, on the so-called three women's commandments (which deal with purity, charity, and the lighting of the Sabbath lamp). In Russia, too, the numerous prayer- books issued with the Hebrew text and Yiddish translation are mainly intended for the use of the praying women (as most male Jews in Russia read and understand Hebrew with ease). In this connexion a curious institution has grown up, viz., that of the Vorsagerin, or woman- reader, who reads the prayers and translates them into the vernacular for the benefit of the less learned. In Poland or Russia, every Synagogue has such a woman- reader, while they are not unknown, it is believed, even in London. One other point may also be mentioned here, viz., that according to Rabbi Bachrach women used to say Kaddish in the Synagogue when their parents left no male posterity. It has already been remarked that in certain reform congregations the custom has grown up in recent years of tonfimiing girls ; mixed choirs in the same communities are also an innovation. Speaiking of the composition of the congregations of the present East End S5magogues, Mr. Lewis in The Jew in London, draws a contrast between that of the average church, where women and children preponderate, and that of the East End Synogogue where they are in a large minority. The contrast is significant. It suggests that Christianity has much more to offer women than Judaism. The same feature must strike any attentive reader of the New Testament. It is not the least evidence of the power of the religion of the Incarnation and the religion of Love. Mr. Lewis goes on to remark : " The wife of the East End Jew does 302 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP not attend Synagogue very often. Her chief duty is to train up her children weU and religiously, to keep a Kosher- house, and to practice that bestowal of kindnesses to which Judaism attaches more importance than mere almsgiving." The weak point in modem Judaism's attitude on this subject is that it does not attach nearly sufficient importance to the definite rehgious training of the woman, whose " chief duty is to train up her children well and rehgiously." In such training, rehgious responsibility is an essential element. The same contrast between woman's irresponsible position in public worship on the one hand, and her domestic dignity on the other, is reflected in the Jewish Prayer-Book. On the one side we have the Synagogue Benediction, " Blessed art Thou, O Lord . . . who hast not made me a woman" (Singer, p. 6) ; on the other, the splendid tribute to the woman of worth, taken from the last chapter of Proverbs, which is chanted by the master of the house at home on the eve of the Sabbath (" A woman of worth who can find ? For her price is far above rubies. The heart of her husband trusteth in her," etc. See Singer, p. 123). III. The Jewish Home. This serves as an excellent transitional to the considerar tion of the Jewish Home. We have already spoken of the large place occupied by the home in the affections of the orthodox Jew. Its characteristic features could hardly be summed up better than in the following para- graph of Mr. Lewis's essay. " The beauty of Jewish honie life (he says) has always struck the outside observer. This is primarily due to religious influence ; for Judaism consecrates the home, which is the sphere of some of its most touching ceremonials. Friday evening, which ushers in the Sabbath, is in particular a family festivity, as all readers of Daniel Deronda wiU remember. Jewish children, sent for a fortnight's hohday in the DEATH AND MOURNING 303 country, and living for the time amongst Christians, have often told me how they miss the usual family gathering, when the Sabbath lamp is lighted, the cup of wine is drunk, and the father pronounces a blessing upon his children (see Singer, p. 122). It is no exaggeration to say the happiest hours of a Jew's life are those spent within his home ; and family ties are in consequence much stronger among Jews than in the outside world. This fact will help to explain one of the means by which Judaism resists the tendency to assimilation. Although neither the knowledge nor the practice of religion comes by inheritance, yet Judaism is strengthened by forces of early association and ancestral love." ^ IV. Death and Mourning. On the approach of death the afflicted one makes religious preparation. An order of prayer to be said by a sick person may be seen in Singer, p. 314 f . It consists of a number of psalms (Pss. 23, 103, 139), followed by a confession of sin (Singer, p. 316). A fuller form of confession on a death-bed is given in Singer, p. 317.* At this solemn moment some communal friends and neigh- bours are usually present. Visiting the sick, administering words and deeds of kindness, praying with and for them, form a definite reUgious duty {Biqqur Cholim). In every congregation there is a special guild which definitely undertakes these duties, and it is known as " The Guild ' The Jew in London, -p. 181 f. " The last words of the dying are the Shema' : " Hear, O Israel, the Lord our God, the Lord is One." As is well known, many- superstitions centre round the Malakh ha-Maveth, or Angel of Death, among the Jews. One may be mentioned here. Accord- ing to popular Jewish notions, no man can die unless the Angel of Death summons him. " As he is supposed to have a writ from the Most High, in which the person who is to die is mentioned by name, as a last resource, in very rare instances, it is customary for Jews to have their names solemnly changed when at their last gasp." (Jewish Year Book.) 304 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP for Visiting the Sick." When death occurs, friends and relatives give expression to grief. Those who have been present use the Benediction of Resignation to the Divine WiU : " Blessed art thou, O Lord our God, King of the Universe, who art the true Judge." Others (who have not been present) also use this formula on hearing the news. This declaration is also accompanied by the rending of the garment.' The outer garment is cut and left unbound during the thirty days of mourning. The mourners (father, mother, son, daughter, brother and sister), in order to be able to devote aH their time to the preparation for burial, are freed from all religious obligations tiU after that event. Two or three days usually intervene between death and burial, during which time mourners abstain from wine and meat. (In Palestine and the East burial takes place on the day of death.) Every act of attention to the dead is considered a work of piety, and every congregation has a guild whose members devote themselves to fulfiUing these duties. It is known as the Holy Guild (Chevrah Kadishdh). Among the Sefardim such persons are called Lavadores (a Spanish word = " washers"). The late Sir Moses Montefiore (we are told) belonged for a long time to the guild of Lavadores, and frequently performed the duties attached to the office.* From the moment of death till burial the corpse is not left alone. The duty of watching over and preparing the dead for burial is not, however, now, as a rule, performed by volimteers as formerly, but by professional watchers, generally four in number, who are called Wacher (German = " watchers"). These burial societies can be traced back, apparently, to the fourth century. In the earlier period the burial of the dead was a duty undertaken by the whole community. 1 The rending of the garment is confined to mourners. * Jewish Year Book (1897-98), p. 202. " SARGONAS " 305 " All who pass by when one is buried," says Josephus, " must accompany the funeral and j oin in the lamentation." In Babylonia this was carried so far that when a death in the Jewish community was announced every Jew ceased from work and assisted in the preparations for the funeral. In some Jewish congregations this custom has survived to comparatively modem times. Thus we are told that " in 1730 all shops were shut in Sofia whenever a Jew died." ^ It was also customary to pour all the water out of the house where the dead lay unburied. It is well known that a Cohen is not permitted to be present in the same place as a dead body, except in the case of near relatives (Lev, 21^"^). It may be remembered that the Chief Rabbi (who is a Cohen) was unable to be present in St. Paul's Cathedral at the funeral of Bishop Creighton and was represented on the occasion by Dr. Gollancz. The preparations for burial include the cleansing and robing of the body. The cleansing was formerly preparatory to an anointing with oil. But this custom has now disappeared. The burial robes are aU of white ; in the Middle Ages they were red. They include the sargonas and the talith. The sargonas (Germ. Sarg = " coffin") is a white shroud, and in some countries it is the custom for the bride to present her husband with this article on the wedding day. It is worn by the husband on New Year's Day {Rosh Hashanah), the Day of Atonement, and on Seder evening (in some cases). On the day of the funeral the body is borne to the cemetery, or Beth Chayyim ( = " House of Life"). Attached to this is a kind of mortuary chapel (called the " HaU " in Singer's Prayer-Book), where the service is said." Mr. Zangwill (in They that Walk in Darkness, p. 233,) calls it " the House of the Priests." " In Talmudic times," we are told, " the body was 1 Cf. Abrahams, op. cit., p. 333. » Singer, p. 318 ff. 21— (a4>7) 306 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP carried on a bier to the burial place, and placed in the groupd so as to be in contact with it, either the side or the bottom of the coffin being removed for that purpose, but Jewish coffins are now enclosed." ^ On the principle that Death is the great leveller, great simplicity is aimed at in Jewish funerals. Simple deal coffins are, as a rule, used for rich and poor alike. Sometimes emblems were used suitable to the special character of the deceased — e.g., scrolls of the Law would be placed on the coffin of a distinguished teacher, or a Chuppah on that of a betrothed person. In the past, too, it was customary for women, among them professional mourners, to foUow. But Jewish ladies of the family do not now, as a. rule, go to the burial ground. In the Ghettos the Beth Chayyim, or cemetery, was usually quite close — ^in the Jewish quarter, in fact. According to Jewish Law, however, it must be at least fifty paces from the nearest Jewish house. But the Jewish cemetery was not always close at hand. Thus at one time, in England, the only available Jewish cemetery was in London, and the corpse, in consequence, had to be con- veyed sometimes from considerable distances. It is interesting to iiote that the existence of such a cemetery in Wood Street is attested in the Patent Roll of 1285.^ According to the Talmud, it is supremely desirable for the pious Jew to die and be buried in the land of Israel. "The land of Israel " — one passage runs — " is as dough compared to Babylon, except in the matter of burial " {Kethuboth, iio^). Indeed one Rabbi declares that " the dead outside the land of Israel will not live again." Accordingly we read of many pious Jews emigrating to the Holy Land in order to have the privilege of dying there. In Mr. Zangwill's book. They that Walk in Darkness, there is a pathetic study of this type, entitled, " To die in 1 Jeunsh Year Book. ' Abrahams, op. cii., p. ^7 f, MOURNING 307 Jerusalem" (p. iii i). The difficulty about those who die outside the Holy Land has given rise to a fantastic superstition. It is believed by some that on the morning of the Resurrection, which wiU take place at Messiah's advent, when the great trumpet shall sound and the dead arise, those Israehtes who have been buried outside the Holy Land will have to undertake a long subterranean journey and dig and burrow their way to the land of Israel. For this long passage underground, the Polish Jews, it is said, stiU provide their dead with little wooden forks, with which to dig their way.^ Mourning. — After the burial the mourners return home and keep seven days of mourning, known as Shiva (Hebrew = " seven"). During this period it is customary for them to abstain from work and sit upon the ground, on cushions, or on low seats. This is known as " sitting Shiva." On the day of the funeral they return home to a repast prepared for them by friends, a principal item in which is hard-boiled eggs, which are supposed to be a symbol of life. These " meals of condolence " are continued, and consolatory visits made by friends during the whole seven days. On Sabbath, however, there is a break ; they no longer sit on the ground. From the eighth day to the end of the month mourning of a less severe character is continued by the relatives (altogether thirty days). But on the part of the children this lasts tiU the end of the year. The ■ son of the deceased is expected to say Kaddish for a parent in the S5magogue every morning and evening for eleven months afterwards. A father, however, cannot say Kaddish for a son. The funeral oration is spoken either at the grave, or in the house of mourning, or in the Sjmagogue. In Mr. Zang- wiU's King of the Schnoners, this role was fulfiUed by a remarkable character known as " Rabbi Remorse Red Herring." Another function which now plays a ^ Hershon. Rabb. Comm. on Genesis, p. 283, note. 308 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP large part in Jewish life is the " Setting of the tombstone," which generally takes place some months after the funeral. A special service is provided for this in the Prayer-Book (Singer, p. 325 f.). A description of one is given in Mr. ZangwiU's They that Walk in Darkness, p. 233. The obituary columns of the Jewish Chronicle are filled with the dates of these functions. In mentioning the name of a deceased friend it is customary to add some such formula as " Peace be upon him," or " His memory be for a blessing," or " The memory of the righteous be for a blessing," or " may his rest be Eden." The Hebrew equivalents of these expressions are usually abbreviated in writing. Sometimes another pious formula is used, viz. : " May so and so Uve," or " May his light continue to shine." CHAPTER XVI. The Synagogue and the Sacred Year and Calendar. T E Synagogue ; its Arrangement ; Officers ; Services — Arrangement of Calendar — Dates of the Festivals and Fasts — The Jewish Era. I. The Synagogue. The name Synagogue is a Greek one meaning " assembly " ; its Hebrew equivalent is Beth ha-keneseth, i.e. " House of Assembly," a term, however, which does not occur in the Hebrew Bible. The conclusion to draw from these facts is that the S3niagogue did not define itself as an institution till the Greek period, i.e., the period subsequent to the conquests of Alexander the Great, B.C. 323. By the time of the New Testament, as everybody knows. Synagogues had become a widespread institution, and it was owing to their existence that Judaism was able to perpetuate itself after the destruction of the Temple. Ancient Synagogues were arranged differently from the modem. In the Talmudic period they seem to have been modelled on the Temple — ^the entrance was from the east, and the Ark containing the scrolls of the law was in the west. In the modem Synagogue the position is exactly reversed — the Ark is placed in the east end, and the reader, while on the Bema, faces east. The form of the Synagogue is not fixed — it is sometimes round, in other cases octagonal. The Great Synagogue in Duke Street, Aldgate, London, is of the latter shape. It reminds one somewhat of a basilica. At the east end, in a large recess covered by a curtain, and fronted with circular marble steps (which are surrounded by a rail of massive brass, with gates), is the Ark. Round the other three sides the seats for the congregation are arranged. In the centre is the Bema or Almembar (an Arabic word corrupted into Almemar or 309 310 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP Alemmar), i.e. the raised platform with rails from which the prayers are said and the Law is read. Galleries run round the three sides. In the Great Sjmagogue, the north and south galleries are reserved for the women ; the west for the choir (of male voices). The women's gallery up to comparatively recent times had a grille, — but now it is quite open. Sometimes the women's part consisted of a separate room, w^th just a small open- ing into the Synagogue, but otherwise entirely separate. The Ark is kept, as has already been pointed out, in a recess in the east end, which is called the Hekal (i.e. Temple), or Kodesh (i.e. sanctuary). In the Great Synagogue this is enclosed with folding doors, in front of which hangs the double curtain, which is drawn back when the Hekal is opened. In front of this again is suspended the Ner Tamid or perpetual lamp, which is always kept lighted. On the right of the Hekal is the door leading to the vestry. The fronts of the galleries of the Great Synagogue are garnished with Hebrew inscriptions, enumerating various charitable bequests given by deceased members of the congregation. The Ark is called in the Mishnah and by the Sefardim Tebhah, i*.e. chest or coffer, to distinguish it from the Ark of the Covenant (Hebrew Aron). But in modem Hebrew the latter term {Aron) is commonly employed. It was customary in the earlier period " on certain extraordinary occasions, when, on account of the absence of rain, a general fast was ordered, for the tebhah with a sefer-torah in it, to be carried into the street, where a special service was held." " The Sefer-Torah (book of the law) is a parchment scroll in which the whole Pentateuch is written by hand upon calfskin or sheepskin, with an ink made of lamp-, black, in the Hebrew text, and in the so-called square or Assyrian character, without vowel points, accents, or verse divisions, but the paragraphs are marked according to the Masorah, or tradition of the text, some THE INTERIOR OF THE SYNAGOGUE 311 by starting on a new line, some by leaving a shorter or longer blank in the same line. The scroll is mounted on wooden rollers, is first wrapped in a white band, and then encased in a silk or velvet robe. A silver hand for pointing is hung by a cord or chain ; often silver ornaments are placed on the heads of the rollers. Every S5magogue of any pretensions has three or more scrolls of its own " (Dembitz). The moment, in the Sabbath morning service, when the Ark is opened and the scroll solemnly taken out by the reader and carried to the Bema, is the most solemn one in the service and is marked by an impressive ceremony. A striking feature about the Synagogue is the absence of anything in the nature of pictures or pictorial emblems. Nothing in the nature of images, portraits, or statues representing living beings, whether real or imaginary, is to be seen. For such symbolism the Jew is altogether unprepared, and in order that he should not misunder- stand it a long process of preUminary education would be necessary. The only thing one sees is Hebrew inscrip- tions — texts from scripture or charitable bequests. The device, however, known as " the shield of David " (Mdgen David), made by two interlaced triangles forming a six-pointed star, is occasionally seen in the decoration.^ But it is doubtful whether this is of Jewish origin. Another noticeable feature is the absence of instrumental music. The labour involved in producing such music is held (according to Rabbinical law) to be incompatible with the Sabbath rest. Of course, it was (as is weU known) an essential element in the Temple service. But the Rabbinical view is that, apart from the Temple service, the Sabbath laws remain in full force for the priests as well as for the rest of the congregation. Further, " its absence (says Dr. Friedlander) though not directly a sign of mourning has served to preserve the memory of > Especially on the curtain of the Hekal. 312 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the destruction of the Temple, and to strengthen our longing for its restoration." But there is a strong tendency to introduce it, which has been satisfied in the Reform S5aiagogue. Its absence, however, has some large com- pensations. The singing of the responses, the psalms, and hymns to the traditional melodies by choirs of highly trained male voices is extremely beautiful. Some of the hymns — hke the venerable 'En Kelohenu and the 'A don ' Olam — that can be heard every Sabbath in the Synagogue are strikingly impressive. It ought to be mentioned also, that before a Synagogue is used for Divine worship it is consecrated {Chiwuk). The scrolls of the law are carried round the building seven times, and then deposited solemnly in the Ark. Unlike mosques or Roman CathoHc churches. Synagogues have from time immemorial been furnished with benches and chairs. In some cases the Beth Hammidrash (i.e. reading room and library), is found in close proximity to the Synagogue, where the week-day service (if a minyan is present) can be held. In the larger Synagogues, however, the week- day-services are usually held in the ante-room of the S57nagogue building. In aU cases public service — with responses and reading of the Law and the Prophets from the desk — can only be held if a quorum of ten male worshippers above thirteen years old is present. This quorum is technically known as the minyan. It is, however, held that if nine are present, and a boy under age, but of sufficient intelligence to understand the matter, these can form a congregation. In some of the smaller chevras we believe the rule about the quorum is not always adhered to now. Officers of the Congregation. — ^The highest functionary of a Jewish congregation is the Rabbi ( = lit. my master) called by the Sefardim, the Chakam (i.e. the learned). By a congregation is meant a community of Jews suffici- ently numerous to maintain a Rabbi or Rabbinical Court SYNAGOGUE OFFICERS 313 {Beth Din) made up of three judges {Dayyanim). Such a congregation may worship in one or a hundred Synagogues. Where a congregation is too small to main- tain a Rabbi it is known as a yishub, or settlement, and is generally dependent on the Rabbi of the nearest town. In London there are not many congregations in the sense just explained. Thus the Ashkenazic congregation, worshipping in a large number of Synagogues, has at its head the Beth Din presided over by the Chief Rabbi. There are not many holders of the Rabbinical Diploma in England. Thus in London there are the three members of the Beth Din, who, of course, hold the Rabbinical Diploma, viz., the Chief Rabbi, and the two Dayyanim. There are alsothe Chakam (Dr. Gaster) and one or two others. Dr. Hermann Gollancz, of the Bayswater Synagogue, holds the Rabbinical Diploma, but, we believe, exercises no independent jurisdiction, acting simply as minister of his Synagogue. The Rabbinical Diploma (Hattarath Hora'a) is conferred by recognized Rabbis after examin- ation, and certifies the recipient's learning in Rabbinical law, and confers upon him the right to pasken, i.e. to decide disputes according to Rabbinical law. In Pales- tine, the Rabbinical succession was formerly perpetuated by ordination. With the Synagogue services as such the Rabbi has nothing to do. Of course he can and often does preach. But he is teacher and lawyer rather than minister in the narrow sense of the word. The S5aiagogue also recognizes the cohanim, or Priests, and the Levites, but they are accorded no official position, only one of honour. The cohen's presence is not neces- sary (except to bestow the priestly blessing, which is now very rarely done, and if at all only on festivals). But it is the rule to caU up first in order to the reading of the Law a priest and levite. The official who is necessary for the service is known as the Chazzan (lit. "overseer") who recites the prayers and reads the lessons. He is the Reader, in fact. In some 314 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP S3aiagogues there are two — a principal and an assistant. In the larger Synagogues, too, it is customary to divide the offices of preacher and reader. The preacher and principal official is in these cases called the minister, and is assisted by the reader. Both preachers and readers are dignified by the title Rev. ; the Chief Rabbi by that of Very Rev. In German, a regular Chazzdn is called Vor- Sanger or Vorbeter, i.e., leader in song or prayer. The term " cantor " is also sometimes applied. The professional Chazzan is, as a rule, chosen " with a view to a good voice, musical training, and thorough acquaintance with chants and accustomed times " ; "his shortcomings in morals and religion," says a Jewish writer, " being too often overlooked." In progressive Synagogues he has to be a thoroughly trained vocalist. In some of the larger Synagogues the Chazzdn does not ' read the lessons, but this is done by an assistant known as the Baal Kore, or master-reader (a modem title). In this case vocal and musical accomplishments are not necessary as the required cantiUation is very simple. The prophetic lesson is read, in the modem Synagogue, from a printed book, with vowels and accents, which is laid on the desk (Shulchan). Occasionally, however, a scroU is used — ^there are some Synagogues in " Poland and elsewhere, in which parchment copies of the Prophets are kept with the bare letters, like the scrolls of the law" ' which necessitates that the prophetic lesson can only be read by one of the permanent officials. The Chazzan reads the service on Sabbaths and holidays. At the week-day daily service, when a minyan is present, this is often done by one of the congregation, who acts as the Sheliach Tsibbur, (i.e. messenger of the congrega- tion, cf. the Angel of the Church in the Book of Revelation). " The needful qualifications are correct Hebrew reading, understanding the contents of the Prayer-Book, and a » Dembitz. LAY OFFICIALS OF THE SYNAGOGUE 315 good moral and religious standing. No man who is under excommunication can act as leader, or be counted of the Ten."' The lay officials of the Synagogue are : — The Parnas or President, and the Gabbai or Treasurer, who are the two wardens of the Synagogue. The Presi- dent, Treasurers, and a Coimcil of Members control the affairs of the S5magogue. The Parnas presides over the meetings of the Council, and as a rule acts as Segan; and allots the various duties or mitzvoth connected with the service. In most Synagogues there is a pew specially reserved for the two wardens, loiown as the Parnas box. The lay officials are expected to stand by the reader on the Bema during the lessons. The presiding officer at the desk is the Segan. As a rule the Parnas or Gabbai acts as Segan, but on special occasions the privilege tempor- arily devolves on a private member, e.g. the father of a Bar Mitzvah, or of a bridegroom at the Sabbath when or near which the ceremonies are to take place. In this case the person is said to " act as Segan." The Parnas commands the services of a paid official known as Shammash, or beadle — ^he is sexton, beadle, and usher all in one. The Synagogue Services [Sabbath and week-day). — ^There are three daily services in the Synagogue, viz.. Evening Prayer [Maarib), Morning Prayer [Shacharith) and After- noon Prayer (Minchah). On Sabbaths, New Moons and Festivals, an additional prayer {Musafj, is inserted between Schacharith and Minchah, and on the Day of Atonement a further service is added after Minchah called Ne'ilah (concluding service). At Maarib and Shacharith the Shema is read, while the great prayer known as Tefillah or Amidah is common to all services. It may be well to remind the reader that public service, that is service in the SjTiagogue, can only be held when ' Dembitz. 316 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP ten males, of full religious age, are present. By no means all Jews, however, attend, daily service. In this case the prayers are read at home, the only difference being that certain important prayers Hke Kaddish and the parts of the service involving responses are omitted. Practically one of the chief reasons for holding the daily service is to enable orphans to say Kaddish, and to make up the required minyan at Synagogue to enable them to do so is considered a pious duty [mitzvah). "The custom of praying three times in the day, though not mentioned in the Law, is Bibhcal. There is the passage in the fifty-fifth Psalm (which perhaps was written after the, institution of regular prayer) where the righteous man declares at evening, and at morning and at noonday will I complain and moan, and he shall hear my voice (Ps. 55^'). And again we are told of Daniel that he continued kneeling upon his knees three times a day and praying and giving thanks before his God (for so Dan. 6^" should be rendered ; see Driver ad loc.) In both these cases, however, it is private prayer that is meant. In the Temple services public provision was (as is well known) made for the three times of prayer. But it is a mistake as Schiirer {HJP Vol. iii., p. 290 ff.) has pointed out, due to a misunder- standing of certain passages in the Acts {2^^, 3^, 10^,^,*") to suppose that the stated hours were the third, sixth and ninth hours (i.e. our 9, 12 and 3 o'clock). The actual times were (i) about the time when the morning burnt offering was offered ; (2) in the afternoon at the ninth hour (3 o'clock) when the evening meal-offering was offered ; and (3) sunset. A fuU description of these services is given in Schiirer, ibid., p. 292 ff. In the modem Synagogue morning and afternoon prayer are considered of greater obUgation than evening prayer, because they correspond to the times w;hen the daily sacrifice was offered in the Temple. In this way, the words of the prophet Hosea are in spirit comphed with : We shall render as bullocks {the offering of) our lips " MUSAF " 317 (Hos. 14*). It is tolerably well known that morning prayer in the Modem Synagogue is held at a very early hour — ^in some of the small chevras as early as 6 a.m. (in order to enable the poorer Jewish workmen to get their prayers over before the working day begins). In the Great Synagogue Sabbath morning prayer begins at 8.30. The Reform Synagogue stands alone, probably, in making the hour so late as 10.30. The reason for the early hour is to be found in the rule that the Shema' (which must be recited twice a day, morning and evening) must be said before 9 o'clock. This is the strict rule in accordance with the precept in Deut. 6' : And thou shalt impress them upon the children, and shalt talk of them when thou sittest in thy house, and when thou walkest by the way, and when thou liest down, and when thou risest. When thou liest down, according to tradition = from early starhght to midnight ; when thou risest = ixom the Ught of the dawn tiU 9 o'clock. But in practice these limits are not always by any means strictly observed. Thus Minchah and Maarib are usuaUy run together, and to enable this to be done, the evening service is often said before its proper time, i.e. before starlight. Some- times, however, the reverse process is followed, e.g. on Friday evening, at the beginning of the Sabbath, when Minchah is said immediately before the evening service. The additional prayer known as Musaf, is said on those days, for which additional offerings are prescribed in the Law. In most places it immediately follows the morning service without a break, e.g. the Sabbath morning service at the Great and other Synagogues in London. " But in many synagogues of Austria and Hungary, and in Western Asia also," we are told, " the true morning service for the Sabbath is held at a very early hour, at 6 or 7 ; the worshipper then goes home, takes breakfast, and comes back at 10 o'clock for the 'lessons,' for the sermon, and for Musaf." "This," says a Jewish writer, "is correct, for it is a leading Jewish principle that whatever duty can be 318 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP performed at break of day should be performed before the morning meal, and before any business or pleasure is entered on ; and this principle applies most strongly to the reading of the Shema ' when thou risest.' "^ The morning service on weekdays (except Mondays and Thursdays) lasts about forty-five minutes, and can be said in that time without undue hurry ; on new moons (including Musaf) in about one hour. Sabbath morning service is much longer. In the Great Synagogue it lasts exactly three hours. The afternoon service on week- days takes about ten minutes, the evening service fifteen minutes. II. The Sacred Year and Calendar. One of the most noteworthy links that connect the modem Jews with their great historic past is their sacred year and calendar. This has been maintained intact (though with developments) from Bibhcal times, and it is interesting to notice that the calendar-system which is implied in the New Testament may be studied in the Ufe, as it were, in the social organization and worship of the modem Jews. i. The Arrangement of the Calendar. The elements of the calendar are, of course, the day, the month and the year. The day is reckoned from even- ing to evening, and begins when (on a clear night) three stars are visible, which is supposed to be twenty-five minutes after sunset. This is technically known as " the coming forth of the stars." It is worth remarking that this division of the day is guaranteed by the first chapter of the Bible. In the enu- meration of the days of Creation evening comes first : And there was evening and there was morning one day (Gen. i ®.). Accordingly, the day is divided into evening, morning, and afternoon, for each of which, as has been pointed out above, 1 Dembitz. DESIGNATION OF WEEK-DAYS 319 an appropriate service of prayer is provided. The week is, of course, identical with the our own, consisting of seven days, Saturday being the seventh. But the Jews have no special names for the days of the week except for the seventh which is called the Sabbath, or Day of the Sabbath (i.e. " Day of Rest "). The only distinctive Jewish mode of distinguishing them is by numbers {first, second, third day of the week, etc.), a method of reckoning which is familiar to us through the New Testament (cf. e.g. St. John 20^®). It is worth noting, however, that in post-Biblical Hebrew the sixth day (Friday) is termed Eve of the Sabbath {'Ereb shabbdth) or the coming in of the Sabbath. It is interesting also to notice that the Hebrew word for Eve {'ereb) or rather its Aramaic equivalent {'dr4btd) came to be the technical designation of Friday ; and in exactly the same way the Greek equivalent -Trapaa-Kev^ {" = Preparation " viz., for the Sabbath) came to be the regular name for Friday, and is stiU so among the Greeks. According to St. John (19^*) it was on Preparation-day that the crucifixion took place, and according to unbroken Christian tradition that day has been fixed as Friday, or, as we caU it, " Good Friday." The evening following Sabbath is known as the going out of the Sabbath, and similarly the day preceding a festival and the evening following it are called Eve of the Festival and The Departure of the Festival. The Jewish month is lunar, beginning with the new moon. The moment at which it commences is technically termed its molad or " birth," which is noted in every Jewish calendar for each month. Its length strictly should be 29 days 12 hours 44 minutes and 3^ seconds. But for practical purposes this is adjusted by making the months 29 and 30 days in length alternately. Since, however, twelve such months only make a total of 354^- days, while the solar year contains 365J days, a further adjustment was rendered necessary to prevent the seasons getting wrong. The difficulty is met by adding an extra month — the second 320 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP Adar — to certain years which are called " leap years." In a cycle of nineteen years (" the Metonic cycle ") the difference as compared with the corresponding solar years would amount to seven months. Hence in every such cycle it is necessary to have seven " leap years," viz. the third, sixth, eighth, eleventh, fourteenth, seventeenth and nineteenth. The fixing of the molad of the month and the determina- tion of the length of any given year is now made exactly by astronomical calculations and published through the J ewish ecclesiastical authorities. But formerly the proclama- tion of the new moon and the making of a " pregnant " year (i.e. the addition of the thirteenth month) was the prerogative of the Sanhedrin and the Patriarch, and was regarded by them " as the highest mark of their sovereignty in Israel." ^ When the day of the new moon had been fixed by observation the Sanhedrin proclaimed its decision, and this was conveyed by signals and messengers toj ewish congregations within reach. There were, however, congregations in distant parts which could not be reached in this way in time. As the incidence of the festivals depended on the dates of the months, this created a dif&culty which was solved by the congregations outside of Palestine observing two days as Holy Days instead of one.^ Thus the New Year {Rosh ha-shdndh) is kept two days (Tisri i and 2) instead of one. The one exception was the Day of Atonement (Tisri 10) which had no additional day " because the people were unable to abstain from food two whole days." This observance of an additional day is really only a pious custom {minhag) which has ceased to have any meaning now that the calendar is accurately fixed beforehand by astronomical calculation. But the custom having become » Dembitz. ' The possible variation for the beginning of a new month was limited to two daj^. The new moon might in some cases be seen a few hours earlier in one place than in another. NAMES OF THE MONTHS 321 practically universal, it is held in orthodox Je-wish circles that it can only be abolished by a properly constituted Sanhedrin whose authority shall be recognized by the whole Jewish people. " Reformers, however," we are told, " keep only one day, and this example is being largely followed." Before the Babylonian Exile the months had Jewish names of which only four have survived, viz., the months numbered 1,2,7 ^-nd 8 in the table below (l, Abib = Nisan, 2, Ziv = Iyar, 7, Ethanim = Tisri, and 8, Bul = Cheshvan). In the Bible they are usually indicated by numbers (first, second month, etc.) ; but after the exile the Baby- lonian names were introduced, and are still in use among the Jews. These are : — Name of Month. Corresponds roughly to 1. Nisan 2. lyar = 3. Sivan = 4. Tammuz = 5. Ab 6. Elul 7. Tisri = 8. Cheshvan = 9. Kislev = 10. Tebeth = 11. Shebat = 12. Adar = And in leap year 13. Adar Sheni ( = Second Adar) April May June July . August . September October . November December January . February March . Duration. 30 days. 29 30 29 30 29 30 29 or 30 days 30 or 29 „ 29 days 30 ., 29 (in leap year 30). 29 days Thus an ordinary year cannot be less than 353 or more than 355 days ; and a " leap year " cannot be less than 383 or more than 385 days. It will be noticed that the order of the months just 1 Jewish Year Book. It stiU remains true, however, that owing to the wide dispersion of the Jews a simultaneous observance of a festival for twenty-four hours can only be secured (owing to the difference of time and longitude) by adhering to the two-day rule. aa— (2417) 322 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP enumerated makes Nisan the first month, i.e. makes the year begin with spring. Now this is the beginning of the sacred year according to the Pentateuch ; and on this arrangement of the year the cycle of sacred festivals is based. But there is another reckoning of the year which in post-exilic times we find existing side by side with the above. According to this the year begins with Tisri (i.e. the seventh month of the Pentateuch-reckoning). This marked the beginning of the secular or civil year, and is the year of the modem Jews. Prof. Schiirer (a very high authority on these matters) thinks that beginning the year with Tisri was the more ancient practice. There is some support for this view in a statement of Josephus who says the beginning of the year with Nisan, as ordained by Moses, holds good with reference only to sacred things ; whereas, on the other hand, " for buying and selling and other business " the year commences with Tisri according to the more ancient pre-mosaic ordinance.^ The two systems as they formerly existed side by side may be compared to our own ecclesiastical and secular year, the former beginning with Advent, the latter with January. But since the destruction of the Temple the Mosaic sacred year has largely ceased to have any practical importance, and what was formerly the secular year only has been accepted as the basis of its sacred year by the Synagogue. The Jewish New Year, then (Rosh ha- shanah) ^ begins with the first of Tisri. The arrangement of the Jewish Year is determined by certain rules, the most important of which are that the Day of Atonement must not fall either immediately before or immediately after the Sabbath (on account of the 1 Schiirer HJP, i, 38. 2 One of the names for this festival is the " Feast of Trumpets." The Jewish year corresponding to 1906-7 (viz. 5667 according to the era of Creation) began on Tisri i = September 20, 1 906 and ended Elul 29 = September 8, 1907. THE CALENDAR RULES 323 inconvenience involved in preparing for the Sabbath or the Fast). If, therefore, in accordance with this rule, Tisri 10 (i.e. the Day of Atonement) cannot occur on^a Friday or a Sunday, Tisri i cannot occur on a Wednesday or a Friday. Further, in order to prevent the old national holiday Hosha'na Rabba (falls on Tisri 21) from occurring upon the Sabbath, Tisri i cannot fall upon a Sunday, that is to say , it cannot occur on Sunday, Wednesday or Friday. Another compHcation is brought about by the molad. The Jewish Day formally begins six hours before mid- night. If, therefore, the molad or new moon " occurs after midday but before two o'clock, it cannot become visible till the next day, which has, therefore, to be reckoned as the day of the new moon." Thus " if, by calculation, the molad should strike Saturday afternoon, the first of Tisri must be put off to Sunday, and, this being disallowed, further on to Monday." ' The adjustment so necessitated is made at the end of the months Gheshvan and Kislev for the preceding year. The first of every Jewish month {Rosh Chodesh = ' ' Head of the Month ") is kept as a half-holiday. It is identical with the " new moon " of the Bible. When the preceding month has thirty days the thirtieth day is kept as Rosh Chodesh as well. Thus lyar has two days of Rosh Chodesh, viz. Nisan 30 and lyar i, while Nisan itself has only one (Nisan i). ii. The Dates of the Festivals and Fasts. We have first of aU {a) " The Solemn Days," viz.. New Year and Day of Atonement. 1. New Year {Rosh ha-hashanah) first day =: Tisri i ; second day = Tisri 2. 2. Day of Atonement {Yom Kippur = Tisri 10). The first ten days of the New Year (Tisri i-io) form a penitential period something like our Advent, and are known as " the ten days of penitence." ' Jewish Year Book. 324 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP (b) The Three Festivals, viz., Feast of Tabernacles, Passover and Feast of Weeks. 1. Feast of Tabernacles {Sukkoth) first day ^Tisri 15 ; „ second day =Tisri 16; ,, ,, third to seventh days, middle days of the Festival (half- hohdays) ; „ , , seventh day = Hosha- 'na Rabba, Tisri 21 ; „ ,, eighth da.y = shemini 'Atseret (Eighth Day Festival), Tisri 22 ; „ „ ninth day = Simchath Tordh (Rejoicing of the Law), Tisri 23- [Total nine days.] 2. Passover (Pesach^^^Gk.'jrda-^a) first day = Nisan 15; „ second day = Nisan 16 „ seventh day = Nisan 21; „ eighth day^Nisan 22^ 3. Feast of Weeks (Shdbuoth ^ weeks) first day = Sivan 6 ; second day = Sivan 7. [The " Feast of Weeks " is so called because it marks the completion of a week of weeks (i.e. seven weeks or " Note that the commencing and concluding days which are full holy days, are doubled here as elsewhere, in accordance with the rule explained above. The Biblical first day now becomes two (Nisan 1 5 and 1 6) : and the Biblical seventh day likewise two (Nisan 21 and 22). THE HISTORICAL FEASTS 325 49 days) from the second day of Passover when the " omer " of new corn was offfered. The days of this interval are counted as they proceed, and this is known as the " Counting of the Omer." The fact that the fiftieth day marks the incidence of the Festival is the explanation of its Greek name Pentecost ( =: Fiftieth sc. day). It corresponds, of course, to our Whitsuntide.] (c) The Historical Feasts. Besides the above there are two feasts commemorating events in the later history of the Jewish people, viz., Chanukkdh or Dedication, which is celebrated in memory of the re-dedication of the Temple, after a period of defilement, by Judas Maccabseus, in 164 B.C. (cf . I Maccabees) ; and Purim, commemorating events related in the Book of Esther. I Chanukkah ^ lasts eight days : first day = Kislev 25 ; eighth day =Tebeth 2. [It often falls about Christmas-time.] 2. Purim {:= ? Lots) lasts one day, viz., Adar 14. It is the carnival of modem Jewry. (d) The Four Fasts (commemorating events connected with the fall of Jerusalem) : viz. — 1. Tebeth 10 commemorates the beginning of the siege of Jerusalem. 2. Tammuz 17 commemorates the breach made in the wall. 3. Ab 9 the destruction of the First and Second Temples (traditionally supposed to have taken place on the same day of the month). This is known, as the " Black Fast " in contradistinction from the " White Fast," the Day of Atonement. 4. Tisri 3, the Fast of Gedaliah (the Jewish Viceroy left by Nebuchadnezzar after the destruction of Jerusalem, who was murdered, cf. Jer. 41). 1 Chanukkah = Dedication, ri iyKalvia of St. John io»" Vulg. : Encaenium : It was called also The Feast of Light. 326 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP AH these fasts begin at daybreak, except that of Ab g, which (like the Day of Atonement) begins the previous evening and lasts twenty-four hours. All four fasts are alluded to in. Zech. 8^\ (e) Other {minor) fasts are : — 1. Fast of Esther = Adar 13 (before Purim). 2. Fast of the Firstborn =Nisan 14 (before Passover). Note. — It should be added that Passover must always be celebrated on the first full moon after the vernal equinox. Hence the canon of the Council of Nicaea fixing Easter on the Sunday following the first full moon after the spring equinox. And so our own Prayer-Book, which sets forth that " Easter Day ... is always the first Sunday after the full moon which happens upon, or next after the twenty-first day of March " (i.e. the spring equinox). III. The Jewish Era. A word must be said in conclusion about the Jewish Era. In the Books of Maccabees all dates are fixed by the Seleucid Era (begins 312 B.C.). This continued in use till about the tenth century A.D., and was commonly employed for dating documents for legal purposes. Hence it is known as the " era of contracts." Curiously enough it survives among the Jews of Yemen (South Arabia) to this day. But since the tenth century the great mass of Jews has used the Era of Creation (A.M.=annomundi) which they fix as beginning 3760 B.C., disagreeing with Ussher's reckoning which dates it 4004 B.C. Thus the year 1907 according to this notation, is 3760 +1907^5667. In printed Hebrew Books, etc., this is usually shortened to 667 simply.' The Christian Era is generally indicated in Jewish circles by the letters c.E. i.e. " common era." ^ 1 In Hebrew letters 667 appears as t V^D ; /I = 400, "1 = 200, D=6o, and T = 7. » A full and detailed Calendar is printed each year in The Jewish Year Book (London, Greenberg & Co.). CHAPTER XVII. THE PRAYER-BOOK .1 The General Character of the Prayers — Influence of Sacrificial Worship of the Temple on the Synagogue Liturgy — The Benedictions and the " Eighteen Blessings " — ^The Shema' with its Benedictions — Kaddish and Prayers for the Dead — Arrangement of the Prayers generally. The S5magogue Liturgy is all important as revealing the inner side of the legalistic system of theology on which orthodox Judaism is based. It reflects the popular piety and devotion. As one of the present writers has said elsewhere, " it was the piety of men who clung tenaciously to the Law as the final and supreme expression of a divine revelation, but the piety was none the less true and deep. It could enlist in its service aU the affections and the passionate devotion of large-hearted and profoundly religious natures. As expressed in its Prayer-Book the legalistic piety of orthodox Judaism affords one more example of the religious genius of a people uniquely distinguished in the domain of religion." A few introductory notes on the general character of the prayers of the Synagogue Liturgy (with some illus- trations) and on the arrangement of these prayers in the regular services is all that can be attempted here. It is hoped that this will suffice to enable the reader to begin the study of the Jewish Liturgy for himself intelligently. I. The General Character of the Prayers. One of the most striking features about the Synagogue prayers in general is their scriptural character. Not only are whole psalms, other passages, and single verses 1 To the literature cited in Part i, Chap, v, add here the art. Liturgy in JE, viii, 132 ; an essay by G. H. Box The Spiritual Teaching and Value of the Jewish Prayer-Book (Longmans, 1906). Zunz (Gottesdienstliche Vortrdge) is the principal authority. 327 328 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP used, but the material of those prayers which are not directly scriptural citations is largely drawn from the sacred writings. Sometimes it is a striking allusion to some point in Scripture that we meet with, or it may be an adaptation of a scriptural sentence, as when, for instance, the promise : / will restore thy judges as at the first, and thy counsellors as at the beginning (Isa. i^* becomes a petition : Restore our judges as at the first, etc.) Another noticeable feature about the prayers is their congregational character. In this respect, of course, the Jewish Prayer-Book conforms to the standard recog- nized by all the great authorized liturgical compilations — our own Book of Common Prayer being a signal example. Throughout the Hebrew Prayer-Book ^ the petitions and other forms are couched in the plural number, and the first person plural that so constantly occurs includes all Israel. In this connexion it should be noted that the only proper name recognized in the hturgy for the Jewish people is the sacred name of Israel.^ "Israel," or " The House " or " People of Israel," or "God's People " are spoken of ; never " Jews." The names " Jerusalem " and " Zion," also, always refer to the places so called. The Divine names employed in the earlier compositions are those of the Bible. In later Rabbinical forms, how- ever, periphrastic designations are common, the most frequent being " The Holy One, blessed be He." The mysterious designation of God as "The Place" (Heb. ha-mdkom) is also met with. This is sometimes rendered 1 In the eleventh clause of the so-called " Eighteen Blessings " (Shemoneh 'Esreh) or Amidah-Prayer (for which see below) in Singer p. 48. 2 With a few exceptions, which however only include prayers or formulas to be recited privately : cf., e.g.. Singer, p. 114 (before putting on the Talith). ' Israel, of course, is the sacred name given by God to Jacob : cf. Gen. 3228; 3510; as such it is often applied in Scripture to the chosen people as the people of God. THE SYNAGOGUE PRAYERS 329 " The Omnipresent," but its real explanation is quite uncertain. Other forms of address found are : " Our Father, Our King " ; and " The Merciful." ^ The great personal name of God (miT') which is familiar to us as " Jehovah " is now never pronounced by the Jews. Instead they substitute the word " Lord" (Adonai) or in some cases " God " (Elohvm). In the time of the Temple " the ineffable name " (i:>13Qrt Ut) was uttered by the High Priest in the services of the Day of Atonement, and also occasionally by the ordinary priests in the formula of the Priestly Blessing (Numb. 62*"26) But with these exceptions the pronunciation of the name even then was regarded as impious, and was ultimately discountenanced altogether owing, in all probability, to its superstitious employment in working miracles. It should be added that all the prayers are written and chanted in the sacred tongue, i.e. Hebrew, with the exception of a few which are written in the cognate Aramaic dialect. It is curious to notice that in some cases the same formula appears in both Hebrew and Aramaic. An example can be seen in Singer, p. 73 (bottom) and p. 74 (top). Of course Hebrew has for more than two thousand years ceased to be a living language among the Jews. In the time of our Lord, Aramaic was the popular language among the Jews of Palestine, and continued still so to be for some centuries later ; and this was true also of the Jews in Babylonia. When our Lord spoke in the synagogue and expounded the Scriptures, He used the Aramaic language. In fact it was, as is well known, the regular practice for the Scriptures to be read in Hebrew, and translated by a meihurgemdn, or interpreter, verse by verse, or paragraph by paragraph, into the Aramaic vernacular. Outside 1 From this last Mohammed may have derived the epithet which so constantly recurs in the Koran ; e.g., in the formula : In the name of God, the compassionate, the merciful. 330 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP of Palestine among the Jews of the Dispersion in Greek- speaking countries the case was different. There Greek was largely, if not exclusively, used. It seems that not only the Scriptures, but also the most important parts (if not all) of the Liturgy — such as the Shema' and the Skemoneh 'Esreh — were regularly recited in the Hellen- istic synagogues in Greek, and not in Hebrew at all.i And even in the Mishnah sanction is given to the use of any language whatever in repeating the Shema', the Shemdneh 'Esreh, and the grace at meals. ^ Still the paramount importance of Hebrew was always insisted on by the Rabbis, and according to Rabbinical law every father was bound to teach his child Hebrew as soon as it began to speak.^ In later practice Hebrew has been the only language recognized as legitimate for prayer and worship. II. Influence of the Sacrificial Worship of the Temple on the Synagogue Liturgy. Regarding the structure of the liturgical forms it is important to remember that this has been fundamentally influenced by the sacrificial worship of the Temple. Long before the destruction of Jerusalem, and. the consequent cessation of the sacrificial system, the syna- gogue had come into existence, and firmly established itself wherever Jewish communities flourished. It met a widespread religious need, owing to the centralization of the sacrificial worship in Jerusalem. While only a limited number of Jews could be present at any one time in the central sanctuary, and assist in the offering of the sacrifice, no such disabiUty would apply to the services of the Synagogue. To a certain though hmited extent, indeed, the Synagogue was affiliated to the Temple worship. It will be remembered that for purposes of 1 Cf. HJP, iv, 283 ff; also iii, p. 10. » Sofa, vii, I (exceptions, 2). * Toseft. Chag. begin.; cf. B. Sukkah 42". ATTITUDE TOWARDS SACRIFICE 331 the daily sacrificial worship, not only the priests and Levites, but also the lay Israelites generally were divided into twenty-four courses of service, each of which had to take its turn in coming before God (in the Temple) every day for a whole week, by way of representing the whole body of the people, while the daily sacrifice was being offered to Jehovah.^ But it appears that not the whole division of Israelites on duty, but only a deputation from it, was actually present at any given time in the Temple ; the others, who had been left behind, assembled in the local sjmagogues (at the time when the sacrifice was actually offered in the Temple) and engaged in prayer and the reading of Scripture. (See Taanith iv, 2.) StUl the Synagogue was essentially independent of the priesthood and the sacrificial cult, and was entirely free from the limitations applying to a centralized worship, and a sacerdotal system. Hence, when the latter disappeared in the great catastrophe of 70 a.d., the Synagogue was the one institution exactly fitted to be the instrument for the reconstruction of Judaism. The Synagogue now became not merely supplementary to the Temple worship, but took its place. And this fact has profoundly influenced not merely the structure of its Liturgy, but also the form and substance of its prayers. The question is often asked, What is the modern Jewish attitude towards sacrifice ? If the sacrificial system was necessary in order to maintain communion with God, how can the Jews reconcile themselves to their present religious condition — which has lasted now for more than eighteen centuries — without priest, altar, or sacrifice ? The Jewish answers to this question are, perhaps, not quite consistent. On the one hand the Rabbis taught that " charity or repentance was an accepted substitute or equivalent for sacrifice." The following quotation will illustrate the Rabbinical view : — At this 1 HJP, iii, 27s f. 332 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP time, when there is no temple, and we have no altar, th^re is no atonement but repentance. Repentance atones for all transgressions, yea, though a man be wicked all his days, and repent at last, none of his wickedness is mentioned to him, for it is said : As for the wickedness of the WICKED he shall NOT FALL THEREBY, IN THE DAY THAT HE TURNETH FROM HIS WICKEDNESS. (Ezek. 33^").* On the other hand, the traditional Liturgy provides a sort of paraboUc and metaphorical fulfilment of sacrifice in the following ways : — (i). By providing forms of prayer for daily worship which correspond to the original daily sacrifice. One of these — the afternoon service — actually bears the name of the original offering {minchdh). In accordance with this principle those days which were originally provided with additional sacrifices (Sabbaths, new moons, and festivals) are now provided with additional forms of prayer (musaf = additional) . (2). Special sections from the Law and the Mishnah which contain the original enactments about the daily and Sabbath offerings, are placed at the beginning of the service (cf. Singer, p. 9 ff.). And on high days and festivals it is the rule to supplement the Pentateuch lesson by the paragraph from the Law which enumerates the sacrifices enacted for the day. For instance, during the Feast of Tabernacles the paragraph Num. 29*""*' is read in addition, from a second scroll. The principle underlying all this is stated in a Haggadic passage in the Talmud. Abraham is there repre- sented " to have anxiously asked God hoW the sins of Israel would be forgiven when their temple was destroyed, and they should have no place I Maimonides (Rambam), Hilkoth Teshubah, ch. i, § 3 (cited in McCaul, Old Paths, p. 386). THE ^'EIGHTEEN BLESSINGS" 333 where to bring their sacrifices, and he was told that to read tlie duty of these sacrifices from the Tor ah would be accepted as a full equivalent." ^ (3). Various prayers have been inserted in the Liturgy which breathe the hope and supplication that the Temple service may be restored. In some cases an older prayer has been amplified in this sense. It is doubtful, however, whether if even the exile could be brought to an end, and the Jewish race were once more gathered into Palestine, with full control of the land, the Temple and its sacrificial worship would be resumed. According to so orthodox a Jewish writer as Dr. Friedlander * such a revival could only take place even then if "sanctioned by the divine voice of a prophet." Judaism may, therefore, with justice, be said almost completely to have spiritualized the sacrificial idea. The daily offering of prayer, praise, and thanksgiving morning and afternoon in the synagogue is a spiritual counterpart and fulfilment of the old daily sacrifice in the Temple. In this way the words of the prophet Hosea are in spirit fulfilled : We shall render as bullocks {the offering of) our lips (Hos. 14^). III. The Benedictions and the " Eighteen Blessings." Nothing is more striking in the Jewish Liturgy than the regular recurrence of formulas of Blessing or Bene- diction (Heb. berakah). These regularly accompany the performance of religious duties positively enjoined in the Law (e.g., the binding on of the phylacteries), and also play an important part in the liturgy itself. In its simplest form the Blessing can be seen in many examples (cf. Singer, p. 4 f ; p. 287 ff : " Blessings on various occasions "). Thus, before washing the hands : — * Dembitz, op. cit. p. 259. ' Jewish Religion, p. 417, 334 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP Blessed art thou, Lord our God, King of the Universe, who hast sanctified us by Thy commandments, and com- manded us concerning the washing of the hands. Or again, on placing the Tefillah (phylactery) on the arm : — Blessed art thou, Lord our God, King of the Universe, who hast sanctified us by Thy commandments, and hast commanded us to lay the Tefillin (Singer, p. i6). A whole series of short Benedictions has been developed expressive of thanksgiving for personal benefits or enjoy- ments, thankful recognition of God's goodness and providence as shown in the work of creation and the phenomena of life and nature. One of the most ancient and interesting of these is that recited over meals. In accordance with the Biblical command (Deut. S^") grace at meals.^ i.e., according to the Rabbis' grace both before and after eating, is obligatory. The Blessing over bread, which is recited before the meal begins, and which may have been known to our Lord runs : — Blessed art thou, Lord our God, King of the Universe, who bringest forth bread from the earth. The recitation that follows the meal is more elaborate. Here the Blessings now number four (see Singer, p. 286), and are ascribed by the Talmud {B. Berak 48''), the first to Moses, the second to Joshua, the third to King Solomon, and the fourth to the Rabbis of Jamnia (second century A.D.). Altogether, something like a hundred forms of Bene- diction are extant in Rabbinical literature, and this fact eloquently attests how vivid in Jewish piety the sense of God's providence and goodness is, and what genuine devotion this sensitiveness has evoked. As a Jewish writer well says, " Every manifestation of Divine protection and help became an opportunity for the pious > Hebrew Birkath ha-mazon, cf. in the New Testament the reference to our Lord's custom of giving thanks before distributing bread at a meal (St. Matt. 14^'; i S^° ; 26" and cf . Acts 273=). THE "SHEMA-" 335 Israelite to offer up thanksgiving in the usual form of a benediction." (Dr. Kohler in JE, iii, lo.) In the liturgy proper the set Benediction plays an important part. One of the most famous of its constitutent elements — the so-called " Eighteen Blessings " (Shemoneh 'Esreh = " Eighteen ") ^ — consists of a number of bene- dictions constructed in regular form, which are strung together, and invariably end with the formula " Blessed art Thou, O Lord our God, King of the Universe, who," etc. Here, strangely enough, however, the element of petition is mingled with that of blessing. The Shemoneh 'Esreh is one of the central parts of the Prayer-Book ; it recurs in various forms in all the services, and, moreover, is recited in a double form, first silently and then audibly, in the congregation. Special Benedictions are also recited before and after the reading of the Law, being introduced by the formula, " Bless ye." This is in accordance with Biblical precedent (Neh. 8').* IV. The Shema' with its Benedictions. Another prominent and important element in the liturgy, the recitation of which is introduced and followed by solemn Benedictions, is the Shema'. The Shema' consists, as is well known, of three paragraphs from the Law, viz., Deut. 6*~» ; nis-ai and Num. isa'-^i (cf. Singer, p. 40 f.). The solemn recitation of the Shema' is undoubtedly one of the most ancient features in Jewish hturgical worship. It is more than once alluded to by our Lord in the Gospels (cf. St. Mark 12*^ f. and parallels). The question arises. What is its exact significance in Jewish worship ? What is the essential meaning 1 See for these Singer, pp. 44-54. In the present recension one has been added, and there are really nineteen. ' With this may be compared the custom of chanting the formula " Glory be to Thee, O God," and " Thanks be to Thee, O Lord, for this Thy Holy Gospel," before and after the reading of the Gospel in our own liturgy. 336 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP attached to its three sections ? The idea on which, in the Jewish mind, most stress is consciously laid is, with- out doubt, the assertion of God's essential unity found in its opening clause : Hear, Israel : the Lord {Jehovah) our God, the Lord -{Jehovah) is one ! It is significant that this opening clause is separated from the rest of the contents of the formula by the solemn interjection : Blessed be His name, whose glorious kingdom is for ever and ever ! ^ Originally, the assertion of God's unity was directed against the polytheistic ideas of surrounding heathendom. But now that Judaism finds itself (in Europe, at any rate) in a Christian environment, the old idea has been modified, and the formula is understood in a Unitarian sense as opposed to the Trinitarian conception of the Godhead on the part of orthodox Christianity. At the same time it should be noted that an extended significance is given to the clause by the great Jewish commentator, Rashi (a.d. 1040-1105). According to him it is not merely an assertion of God's essential unity, but a declaration that " the Lord who now is worshipped by Israel wiU hereafter be alone worshipped by all man- kind, and wiU thus be the only God in recognition, as He is already in truth."* Understood in Rashi's sense the first clause of the Shema' may be compared with the second petition of the Lord's Prayer, " Thy kingdom come," and with the frequent expressions of a similar aspiration that occur elsewhere in the Jewish liturgy.* ■ It is also the last utterance to be said by the dying Israelite on his deathbed (see Singer, p. 317) ; note also its repetition in the rehearsal of lie deathbed scene at the conclusion service for the Day of Atonement (Singer p. 269). 2 Cf. Rashi on Deut. 6*. The average Jew, however, stiU firmly beUeves that Christians worship three Gods. ' E.g., especially in the Kaddish : " Magnified and sanctified be His great name in the world which He hath created," etc. (Singer, p. 37). THE "SHEMA"' 337 The second section of the Shema' (Deut. ii^^'^^) con- tains promises of reward for obedience to the Divine commandments, and threats of punishment for dis- obedience. The third section (Num. 15*''*^) embraces the commandment relating to the fringe and the " corners of the garments " to the literal performance of which so much importance is attached by orthodox Jews. The Shema' may thus be regarded as a sort of elementary creed, but it is by no means a formal one. The necessity for formulating the articles of Israel's belief was not felt to exist till a comparatively late date (twelfth century A.D.), when Maimonides summed them up under thirteen paragraphs (cf. Singer p. 89). This, however, has never been formally adopted by the Jews, though it is recited in the Synagogue, and in a metrical form (see Singer, p. 2, known as Yigdal) often sung by the congregation. It is noticeable that the contents of the Shema' correspond to the second and eleventh articles of Maimonides' Creed (God's unity, and the doctrine of rewards and punishments) . As already stated the recitation of the Shema' is preceded and followed, both in the evening and morning, by benedictions ; both in the evening and morning it is preceded by two, while in the evening it is followed by two, and in the morning by one. The first Blessing that precedes in the evening (cf. Singer p. 96) gives thank- ful expression for the providential order by which day is divided from night. The next, known as 'Ahdbdh (=Love) from its opening word, is a thanksgiving for God's love to Israel, as shown in His gift of the Law.' The last clause (of the third section) of the Shema' refers to the deliverance from Egypt. Hence the Bene- diction that immediately follows both in the evening and the morning has reference to redemption (Heb. guellah) and in each case it closes with the words : Blessed 1 The evening 'Ahabah differs in diction from that of the morning, and is probably of later origin. 23— (2417) 338 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP art Thou, Lord, who hast redeemed Israel. ' It is a thanks- giving for the crowning act of redemption from Egj^tian bondage by which Israel became a nation and Jehovah's people. From Jer. 23' it seems probable that reference to the deliverance from Egypt in the public services goes back to the time of the first Temple. The Bene- diction that follows (the second) is peculiar to the evening, and is one of the most beautiful compositions in the Jewish liturgy (cf. Singer, pp. 99, 100). The morning Benedictions are almost certainly of greater antiquity than those of the evening.* The former consist of two preceding and one following the recitation of the Shema.' The first of these is the great Benediction over the creation of light (cf. Singer, pp. 37-39), and in what was probably its original form was quite short. In this form it was a thanksgiving for the creation of natural Ught, the light of day, and was thus implicitly a protest against Persian duaUsm with its gods of light and darkness (Ormuzd and Ahriman), and against sun- moon- and star- worship. The second Benediction, known, as already explained, from its opening word as Ahabah (= Love) is a thanks- giving for the light of revelation as given to God's people in the Law (Torah). As a Jewish Rabbi (Asher of Lunel) has well remarked : " The sun gives light only in the daytime, the Torah by day and by night ; as Psabn 19 praises God first for the sun and then for the Torah (Law) which enlightens the mind, so should we also give praise in these two Benedictions." * The Benediction that follows the morning Shema' is, as already stated, that known as geulldh {=Redemp- tion).* In its essence this is a thanksgiving for the 1 The technical name of the whole Benediction is geulldh. See for the full form (for the evening) Singer, pp. 98, 99. 2 It is probable that the Shema in its present form was originally designed for the morning service only. ' Cf., JE, i, p. 281 (s.v. 'Ahabah Rabbah). * See Singer, pp. 42-44, " KADDISH " 339 redemption from Egypt. But here again a great deal of amplification has taken place. Originally the subject of the Benediction was thanksgiving for past, not request for future, redemption. In its present form, however, a petition has been inserted towards the end (see Singer, p. 44), which runs : Rock of Israel, arise to the help of Israel, and deliver, according to Thy promise, Judah and Israel. Of the other inserted matter one of the longest pieces is that near the beginning of the Benediction, commencing with the words : It is true the God of the Universe is our King, and ending : There is no God beside Thee (cf. Singer, pp. 42, 43). Here the two main thoughts are the unchangeable validity of the Law, and the assertion that God alone is Redeemer. The latter was probably intended as a protest against Christianity.^ V. " Kaddish and Prayers for the Dead." Side by side with the Shema' and the Eighteen Blessings may be ranked in importance the formula known as Kaddish. The Kaddish fulfils much the same function in the Jewish services that the Lord's Prayer does in Christian ofiices. It introduces different stages in the service. Thus in its responsive form it introduces the Shema' and its blessings (cf. Singer, p. 37). It also is used in a longer and shorter form, and, strangely enough, partially corresponds in substance to the Christian prayer. Its most important clauses contain a prayer 1 Cf. also in the same context the sentence : " True it is that Thou art indeed the first, and Thou art the last, and beside Thee we have no King, Redeemer or Saviour " (Singer, p. 43). Similar expressions occur elsewhere in the liturgy (usually later insertions). It is noticeable that the Christian idea of redemption from sin never occurs. While in the New Testament the idea of redemp- tion has been wholly spiritualized, in the devotional literature of the Synagogue the old national and materialistic associations still cling to it. The contrast between the two conceptions is marked, and the spiritual and religious advance of the Christian one is obvious. 340 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP for the sanctification (or hallowing) of God's name and the estabhshment of His kingdom throughout the world (=the second and third petitions of the Lord's Prayer). This runs as follows : — , Magnified, and sanctified he His great name in the world which He hath created according to His will. May He establish His Kingdom during your life and during your days, and during the life of all the House of Israel even speedily and at a near time, and say ye Amen?- A curious custom has grown up in connexion with this prayer. A special form of it known as " Mourners' Kaddish " (cf. Singer, p. 77), is recited by mourners during the first year after the death of a parent, and on the anniversaries afterwards. The mourners present mount the bema, and clad in the praying-shawl (talith) chant in a body the reader's part of the prayer, receiving the responses of the congregation. The prayer is in no sense in itself a prayer for the dead, but the public recita- tion of it in this fashion by a son is regarded as proof of the piety of the dead, as represented by a pious survivor. In this connexion it may be noted that on certain days (four) in the year,^ prayers are said in the Ashkenazic Synagogues for the souls of dead parents or relatives. Only those who have actually suffered bereavement take part in these exercises — others leaving the s3magogue for the time being. Each person prays independently ; for a dead father thus : — May God remember the soul of my honoured father {naming him) who has gone to his eternal home : on whose behalf I vow alms : by way of reward, be his soul bound up in the bundle of life (cf. i Sam. 25^^) with the Souls of Abraham, Isaac and Jacob, Sarah, Rebecca, Rachel > The whole is said by the reader, the congregation joining in the Amen. => Viz., the eighth day of Passover, second, of Pentecost, Day of Atonement, and eighth day of Tabernacles (Shemini Atsereth). ARRANGEMENT OF PRAYERS 341 and Leah, and all other righteous men and women that are in the Garden of Eden, and let us say Amen.^ In many Synagogues a sort of bidding prayer is read by the cantor on the great festivals ; a list of names of dead pious donors being read out, and a commemoration being made of them. Bequests are made for this special purpose, or donations given by surviving relatives. A requiem for the souls of the martyrs is also said in the morning service for certain Sabbaths (cf. Singer, p. 155.) VI. The Arrangement of the Prayers. The prayers that make up the Jewish Liturgy may be classified as foUows : They consist of Benedictions (i.e. as we have seen, special forms of thanksgiving for various occasions, or for use before or after the perform- ance of some rehgious duty) ; passages from Scripture and Rabbinical Literature about Sacrifices ; specimen- passages from the post-Biblical Literature which are intended to remind the good Jew of the importance of sacred study as a religious obligation ; Psalms and Hymns of praise and thanksgiving ; Confession of faith, as embodied in the Shema' (Deut. 6* f ., " Hear, O Israel," etc.), and in the Creed of Maimonides ; Petition — prayers for the granting of various benefits, always, or almost always with reference to Israel. The most important of these are embodied in the great Amiddh prayer (the so-caUed " Eighteen Blessings ") ; Confession of sin and supplication for forgiveness. The element of confession [widduy) has been elaborately worked out, especially in connexion with the Atonement-Day Services. Prayers of supphcation [tachanunim) are also frequent, and special litanies of forgiveness (selichoth), in poetical form, have been elaborated. The latter are used in » Cf. Singer, p. 326. 342 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP connexion with the penitential period cuhninating in the Day of Atonement. ^ Some idea of the ordering and arrangement of a Jewish S3magogue-service can be formed from a short analysis of one of the t37pical services — the daily morning prayer. The characteristic features and arrangement of this recur, with modifications in all the other services. The morning service, as set forth in Singer (pp. 1-94), is made up as follows, and in the following order-: — (i) Blessings of the Morning. These refer to the change from night to day, from sleep to fresh life, from rest to activity (Singer, p. 4. ff.). They were originally intended for private devotion at home. (2) Sacrifices and Study. Passages from the Bible and post-biblical writings referring to the daily sacrificia Iservice in the Temple (Singer, p. 9 ff.), and an extract from the Baraitha (Singer, p. 13 f .) ; cf. also the short extract from the Mishnah, p. 5. These passages were ^ inserted as a short sample and minimum of study. (3) Psalms and sections of praise. Various psalms and psalm -pieces, culminating in the Red- Sea Song (Exodus 15), and closing with the " Benediction of Song " (Singer, pp. 17-36) : (4) Half-Kaddish. Introducing the Shema' {" Hear, O Israel," etc.), and its eulogies (before and after it) (Singer, pp. 37-44) : (5) The Shemoneh 'Esreh ("Eighteen Blessings") or Amtdah-prayer (Singer, pp. 44-54) : (6) Supplications (tachanlinim), pp. 54-62, followed by " And David said " (p. 62), Ps. 6 (penitential), 1 From the New Year (Tisri i and a) to the Day of Atonement (Tisri 10) a penitential period of great solemnity is observed (" the ten days of Penitence"). ' The reading of the pieces about sacrifice was also considered as, in some sort, a substitute for the actual offering of the same. THE MORNING SERVICE 343 " O Guardian of Israel " (pp. 64-65) and Half Kaddish. (7) Psalms 145 and 20, followed by "And a Redeemer shall come," and " But Thou art holy," etc. (pp. 71-75) ; then— (8) Full Kaddish, " It is our duty " and " Mourners' Kaddish " (pp. 75-78) ; and finally — (9) The Psalm for the Day (p. 80 ff.). CHAPTER XVIII. The Sabbath. The Sabbath not a Burden — The "Hallowing" of the Sabbath — The Weekly Lesson from the Pentateuch and the Prophets — The Sabbath Rest from Labour, etc. It is a mistake to suppose that the Sabbath-rest of the Jews is to them a rigorous and exacting observance, so austere in its demands as to kill out aU joy and loveliness. On the contrary, it appeals to the real Jew as a divinely- given rest from the turmoil and bitter opposition of a hostile world. It is — and always has been among the Jews — essentially a festal observance. The more opposi- tion and persecution have crystaUized without, the more passionate has the attachment of the Jew become to what he regards as the most precious legacy of his national past. It is true that Hke all Jewish observances its external setting has been rigorously fixed and defined by Law, and as a consequence the institution of the Sabbath has been liable to the dangers that especially beset legalism — externalism and formalism. It is necessary, however, to guard against the mistake of refusing to recognize beneath all the forbidding exterior of Rabbinical enact- ments about the thirty-nine kinds of work not permitted on the Sabbath, etc., the heart of passionate feeling and emotional tenderness that pulsates behind. One of the most beautiful expressions of Jewish senti- ment about the Sabbath is to be found in the h3niin sung every Friday evening in the Sjmagogue in which the Sabbath is compared to a bride, and bidden to come to her husband who awaits her — the Almighty. ^ In the ' See Singer, p. 1 1 1 f . : from its opening words it is called lekah dodi. 344 SABBATH-HYMN 345 excellent English version of Mrs. H. Lucas the first four stanzas run as follows : Come forth, my Friend, the bride to meet ; Come, O my Friend, the Sabbath greet ! " Observe ye " and " remember " still The Sabbath — ^thus His holy will God in one utterance did proclaim. The Lord is one, and one His name To his renown and praise and fame. Greet we the Sabbath at our door, Well spring of blessing evermore. With everlasting gladness fraught. Of old ordained, divinely taught. Last in creation, first in thought. Come forth, etc. Come forth, etc. Arouse thyself, awake and shine. For lo ! it comes, the light divine. Give forth a song, for over thee The glory of the Lord shall be Revealed in beauty speedily. Come forth, etc. Crown of thy Husband, come in peace, Come, bidding toil and trouble cease. With joy and cheerfulness abide Among thy people true and tried, Thy faithful people-^Come, O bride ! Come forth, my Friend, the bride to meet, Come, O my Friend, the Sabbath greet ! The duties and obligations connected with the Sabbath are summed up in the code of Maimonides under four terms, derived from the corresponding Biblical enactments. These are : (a) " Remember " — the term with which the fourth commandment, as given in Exodus 20* begins ; (b) " Take heed " (the corresponding term in Deut. 512) ; (c) " Honour " and (d) " Delight "—these last two terms being derived from the great prophetic passage on the Sabbath in Is. 58^3-14 I. The Hallowing of the Sabbath. The commandment regarding the Sabbath as given in Exodus runs : Remember the Sabbath Day to sanctify it (keep it holy). The traditional way of explaining the 346 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP term " remember " in this injunction is " remember it over the wine " (T.B. Pesach, 107^) ; and the ceremonies in which this is carried out are known as Kiddush or " Sanctification " and Habdalah or " Separation " (" Distinction"). Before sunset and darkness on Friday the Jewish wife lights in the dining-room extra candles or a special lamp in honour of the Sabbath, pronouncing over them, as she does so : Blessed art Thou, Lord our God, King of the Universe, Who hast sanctified us by Thy commandments, and commanded us to light the Sabbath lamp. On the return of the father with his sons from the Synagogue service (for the women rarely attend Synagogue on Friday night), they find the table prepared — spread with a clean tablecloth, and at the head (where the father sits) two loaves of bread (which are, as a rule, specially baked for the occasion), in memory of the double portion of manna which was gathered on Fridays. These are covered with a napkin : near them stands an empty cup, and close to this a jug or bottle of wine to fill it. The husband begins by chanting the praise of a virtuous wife.' He then begins the Kiddush proper. This is prefaced by the verses in Genesis relating the work of creation on the sixth day and the seventh. Then he fills the cup and holding it up, proceeds : — Blessed art Thou, Lord our God, King of the Universe ; the Creator of the fruit of the vine. Blessed art Thou, Lord our God, King of the Universe, Who hast sanctified us by Thy commandments, and wast pleased with us, and hast given us for a heritage, in love and favour, Thy holy Sabbath, a memorial of the work of creation. For it precedes all the holy convocations, in memory of the going forth from Egypt. For Thou hast chosen us, and hast hallowed us above all nations, and hast given us in love and favour Thy 1 Cf. Singer, p. 123. THE " KIDDUSH " CEREMONY 347 holy Sabbath for a heritage. Blessed art Thou, Lord, Who hallowest the Sabbath. The father then drinks from the cup, hands it to his wife, and she to the children and others at the table, all drinking from it. Then follows the ceremony of washing the hands. The husband then utters the benediction for bread : Blessed art ThoU, Lord our God, King of the Universe, Who bringest forth bread from the earth. And he proceeds to cut one loaf, taking a piece for himself and distributing pieces to the others. If wine is not at hand, the washing of hands takes places first, and the benediction over bread is substituted for that over wine, and the bread cut and distributed at once. Then follows the Sabbath meal. It should be added that the Kiddush also exists in a purely verbal form in the Friday evening service at Sjma- gogue (which, of course, precedes the Sabbath meal just described). There it forms the middle section of the Amidah Prayer. (See Singer, pp. ii6, 117.) And also, since Talmudic times, it has been customary in the S5magogue for the reader to sanctify over the cup near the end of the service.^ This is decidedly irregular, as the Kiddush ceremony ought to be performed at the place of the meal, i.e., at home. It seems to have arisen from the custom which existed in the middle ages of pro- viding for poor travellers. They were lodged and fed either in rooms adjoining the S5niagogue, or even in the Synagogue itself. " It was for these that the reader recited Kiddush, before they commenced the evening meal, as most probably wine was not served to all." ^ Hence the ceremony is placed at the end of the service. The special circumstances which gave rise to the custom have long since disappeared — poor travellers no longer ' The reader does not, however, drink himself, but usually lets some children take a few drops from the cup. ' Friedlander. 348 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP being provided for in this way. But the ceremony is still, nevertheless, retained as part of the Synagogue service. The only exception is the first two nights of Passover, when there has never been any need to read Kiddush in the S5magogue. On these nights the poor were provided with four cups of wine each, and they recited Kidd4sh by themselves as part of the Seder (Passover Meal). Kiddush it may be added is not confined to the Sabbath. The festivals also are pre- ceded in exactly the same way by a solemn " sanctifica- tion." Thus there is a Kiddush for Passover, Weeks (i.e., Pentecost), and Tabernacles, and the 8th Day of Solemn Assembly. The ceremony is substantially the same in aU cases, wine being used and a festive meal following, only the blessings being varied to suit the special character of the day. Thus the Kidd4shrcup is the first of the four Passover Cups. The remarkable Ukeness in form of this ceremony to the Christian Eucharist must have already suggested itself to the reader.^ There is also another kindred ceremony which takes place on the mornings of Sabbaths and Festivals, and which is called (in irony according to Dembitz) Great Kiddush — " great " because of its slight importance. It is celebrated before breakfast ; certain appropriate verses from Scripture are recited ; then the benediction over a cup of wine or strong drink ; then the benediction over bread and the meal. The passages recited are Ez. 31"'^'; 20*"^^ and Is. 2313,14, fQj. the Sabbath morning.* It wiU have been noticed that the Sabbath is specially connected not only with the work of creation, but with the deliverance from Egypt whereby Israel was made a nation. This latter connexion has a Biblical basis in the Deuteronomic version of the Ten Commandments, where as an additional 1 See further on this point an art. by G. H. Box on "The Jewish Antecedents of the Eucharist," in The Journal of Theological Studies ii, 357 f. (1902). ' Cf. Singer, p. 174. THE "HABDALAH" CEREMONY 349 reason for the sabbath-rest being shared by man-servant and maid-servant, Israel is reminded that thou wast a servant in the land of Egypt, and the Lord thy God brought thee out thence by a mighty hand and by a stretched out arm : therefore the Lord thy God commanded thee to keep the Sabbath day.^ The other ceremony to which reference has been made is called Habddldh, i.e., separation, and takes place on Saturday evening after the going out of the Sabbath. After the evening service at Synagogue the family returns to the house. The constituents of the ceremony are a cup of wine, a lighted wax candle, and a spice- box. Certain verses of scripture having been recited, the blessing over wine is said, followed by one for the " light rays of the fire," another " for many kinds of spices," and lastly by the Habddldh proper which runs thus : — Blessed art Thou, Lord our God, Who distinguishest between holy and profane, between light and darkness, between Israel and the nations, between the seventh day and the six tpork-days ; Blessed art Thou, Lord, Who distinguishest between holy and profane.^ The wine is then drunk, and the wax candle is put out with drops from the cup. Here again a purely verbal form has been embodied in the Sjmagogue-prayers. In the evening service for Saturdays " separation " is introduced in the fourth benediction in the Amidah-Frayer.^ The Talmud says quaintly : " When the children of Israel were poor, it was ordained to ' separate ' in the Prayer (i.e., in the Amidah-Prayer at the Ssmagogue-service) ; when they got to be rich, to " separate ' over the cup (i.e., at Home) ; then they got poor again, and again separated in the Prayer." Now, of course, both are done as described (at Home and < Deut. 5IB. » Cf. Singer, p. 216 f. » Cf. Singer, p. 46. 350 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP in the Synagogue).* But to resume our description of the home-ceremony. After the drinking of the wine hymns follow. The opening stanza of one of these, as rendered by Mrs. Lucas, runs thus : — May He Who sets the holy and profane Apart, blot out our sins before His sight. And make our numbers as the sand again, And as the stars of night. In another hymn they pray to God to send speedily Elijah the prophet, Elijah the Tishbite, Elijah the Gileadite, and the Anointed King. A few customs connected with the Habdalah ceremony are worth noting. (i) The wine when poured into the cup, is allowed to flow over (a symbol of joy). (2) Some dip the finger in wine and pass it over their eyes, in allusion to the words of Ps. 19' : The Com- mandment of the Lord is pure, enlightening the eyes. Devotion to the divine Law is so expressed. (3) Only males partake of the Habdalah wine. It is the rule for Jewish women to abstain from wine and strong drink. They only partake of the KiddUsh wine because of its importance. If a festival falls on a Sunday (i.e., begins on Saturday night) the Habdalah is still said (only in a slightly modified form) as the sanctity of Sabbath is superior to that of the festival. In such a case the modified Habdalah is combined with the Kidd4sh of the Festival. Of the antiquity of KiddUsh and Habdalah there can be no possible doubt. The Talmud [Berakhoth 51'') records that it was a matter in dispute between the Schools of Hillel and Shammai as to whether the Kiddush ' It should be added that besides the separation in the Amidah' Prayer, the full Habdaldh service is recited by the Reader in Synagogue at the end of the service for the conclusion of the Sabbath (cf. Singer, p. 215). SABBATH-LESSONS 351 should come first and then the benediction over the wine, or vice versa. Thus the custom was already a well-established one in pre-Christian times. II. The Weekly Lesson from the Pentateuch AND Prophets. Another way in which the special sanctity of the Sabbath is marked and emphasized is by the form and substance of the Sabbath-Services in the S3magogue, especially that of Sabbath-morning. Not only is this service lengthened by the running on to it of the musaf or " additional " service, but in the morning service itself certain special features occur, such a? the substitution in the middle of the Amidah-pTayeT (or " eighteen Bene- dictions") of a single paragraph relating to the Sabbath instead of the thirteen middle paragraphs that ordinarily stand in the week-day forms of the Prayer.' But the most important feature about the Sabbath-moming service is the reading of the Lessons and the connected ceremonies. The most sacred thing in a Synagogue is the scroll of the Law ; and the central and most solemn point in the great S5magogue service of the week — that on Saturday morning — is reached when the Reader and other Synagogue- officials proceed solemnly to the Ark and bring back the sacred scroll to the reading-desk for the reading of the weekly lection. The Pentateuch -lessons may only lawfully be read from a specially prepared parchment scroll which is known as Sefer Torah. Ordinary printed editions on paper are not allowed for this purpose. For reading purposes the Pentateuch has been divided into fifty-four sections ' The first three and last three paragraphs of the Amidah are invariably said ; but the middle thirteen are only said on ordinary weekdays : on Sabbaths and Festivals their place is taken by one (or more) long paragraph bearing on the special character of the day. (Cf. Singer, pp. 138-139 : " Moses rejoiced . . . O Lord Who hallowest the Sabbath " for this speciai Sabbath paragraph,) 352 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP to cover a year. As in some cases the requisite number of Sabbaths does not occur in the year two sections are occasionally read instead of one The section for each week is called by the Germans Sidra, by the Sefardim parashah.^ The Sidras are sometimes of great length.* To the ordinary Jew the first subsection of the Sidra is usually more familiar than the others, because it is read (in anticipation of the following Sabbath) on the previous Sabbath afternoon, and again in the morning service of Monday and Thursday (which were the old market days in Palestine). The Pentateuch-lesson is distributed among various persons who are said to be " called up " to the reading. The Mishnah-TiAe about this is as follows : On Mondays and Thursdays and on Saturday afternoons three read, neither more nor less ; on new moons [chodesh) and middle-days of Festivals {Choi ha-moed) which are reckoned half-holidays, four, neither more nor less ; on full Festival-days five ; on the Day of Atonement six ; on the Sabbath seven — never less (but there may be more). None should read in the Tor ah less than three verses. It is the function of the Leader (Segan) to call up these 3, 4, 5, 6, 7 (or more) men to the reading-desk {shulchan). Formerly each person so called read his allotted portion himself : but this is now always done by the Chazzan or Reader, the person called simply standing by the side of the former and following the text as it is read. When a Cohen (i.e., a person of priestly descent) is present he is called first ; then a Levite ; and finally five ordinary Israelites. Each of these recites a blessing before and after the reading of his subsection (cf. Singer, p. 146 f.). The last pprson called is designated maftir with reference to the Haftarah or prophetic lesson which the maftir often reads. Haftctrah means " leave-giving " or " dismissal " ^ and is 1 By the Germans, however, the term parashah is applied to the subsections into which the Sidra is divided. ' There are indications that a three-year cycle of lessons once existed (in Palestine) ; but this has now completely disappeared. » Cf. the name " Mass " derived from the formula of dismissal, " ite missa est " (as usually explained). THE "HAGBAHAH" CEREMONY 353 applied to the prophetic lesson because at one time the service seems to have concluded with the latter. The Haftarah is usually read by one person — sometimes even by boys under thirteen — ^from a printed book with vowels and accents, not from a scroU. The yearly cycle of Pentateuch lessons ends on Simchath Torah {" Rejoicing of the Law ") the ninth day of Taber- nacles, i.e., Tisri 23. On that day the last section of the Law is read, and the person who is called up for this section is styled " Bridegroom of the Law " (Chathan Torah). On the same day, also, the first chapter of Genesis is read, and the person called up to this is designated " Bridegroom of Genesis " {Chathan Bereshith). In both cases the actual persons called up ^ often read the allotted portions themselves, as the Bar-Mitzvah does. In all other cases the reading or rather cantillation is performed by the chazzan. The ceremonial taking of the scroU from and returning it to the Ark forms the most solemn part of the service. There is a procession to the accompaniment of singing by the choir. FuU details are given in Singer, pp. 145-148. After the Pentateuch lesson has been concluded, and before the Prophetic lesson is read, the ceremony of the hagbahah or " elevation " of the Scroll takes place. The leader holds up the scroll on high, turning round with it in different directions so that aU may see it. At the same time the congregation repeats the formula beginning : " This is the Law which Moses set before the Children of Israel," etc. (Singer, p. 148). With the Sefardim this ceremony precedes the reading of the Law. III. The Sabbath-rest from Labour, etc. In accordance with the commandment, " Thou shalt do no manner of work " on the Sabbath Day, various forms of labour, or what was defined by the Rabbis as " work " are prohibited. As is well known, 1 To be called up on this occasion is regarded as a special honour. 24— (a4i7) 354 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP travelling or going beyond a certain distance (" a Sabbath day's journey ") is disallowed (cf. Exod. 16^8 ; Acts i"), no fire maybe kindled (cf. Exod. 35^), and all buying and selling is forbidden (cf. Neh. 13^*). In the Mishnah [Shabhath vii, 2) thirty-nine kinds of work are pro- hibited. These include " ploughing, sowing, reaping, threshing, grinding, baking, hunting, kUUng an animal, tanning, sewing, writing, kindling light or fire, and carr5nng things abroad." Such things as riding in a carriage or vehicle, playing music, etc., are also held to be unlawful in strict circles. As it is also regarded as unlawful actually to handle money on Sabbath and festivals there are no collections in the Synagogue-service similar to our collections in church. Instead sums of money are promised or vowed, the names of donors being announced, or rather invoked in blessing at the Desk. As, further, it is illegal to write, or use pen, paper, or ink, a difficulty naturally arises about registering amounts and names of donors on such occasions, which has been overcome by the use of string and an ingenious arrangement of perforated stuff. As has already been mentioned the day is regarded as a high festival. All fasting and mourning is prohibited, and the Sabbath-meals have a festive character. CHAPTER XIX. The Festivals. Passover : the Prepaxation ; the Seder or " Home-Festival " ; the Passover Synagogue Services — Pentecost : " The Counting of the Omer " ; the Festival — ^Tabernacles — Dedication — Purim. I. Passover. The season of Passover forms quite an epoch in Jewish social Hfe. The " Passover-hoHdays " are eagerly looked forward to by all sorts and conditions of Jews as a time of family reunion, a period for the renewal of old friendships and the interchange of social amenities, and an opportunity for the exercise of hospitality and the consolidation of racial bonds. As such the Passover season plays an immensely important part in main- taining the ties which — in spite of the decay of orthodox Jewish beliefs in many quarters — keep the members of the Jewish community apart and distinct. Many a Jew who has long since yielded to the dis- integrating influences of modem culture still finds the old family associations of this festival strong enough to draw him to the festal board. He finds himself unable to resist the tender memories and the bonds of good fellowship that cling around the Seder-table. The Feast of Passover falls in " the first month of the year " (Exod. 12^) i.e. Nisan, or, to give it its old Hebrew name Abib (Exod. 13*, etc.). According to the Biblical injunction the lamb was to be slain on the afternoon of Nisan 14, and eaten the same evening, which would be counted the beginning of Nisan 15. From this time for seven days (i.e. Nisan 15-21) unleavened bread was to be eaten (cf. Exod. 14^* f.), no leaven of any kind being permitted to remain in the houses of Israelites. The first 355 356 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP and seventh days (i.e. Nisan 15 and 21) were to be observed as " holy convocations " (Exod. 12^*), i.e. full holy days, the intervening days being half-hohdays. But from time immemorial the Jews outside of Palestine have added a day to their principal festivals. Thus Passover now lasts eight days (viz. from Nisan 15 to 22) instead of seven ; and two days are kept as " holy con- vocations," at the beginning (Nisan 15 and 16) and end of the festival (Nisan 21 and 22), instead of the one in each case enjoined in Scripture. The explanation of this custom has already been given above.^ The observances connected with the Passover-festival can conveniently be described under the following heads : (i) the Preparation ; (2) the Home-Festival {Seder "■) ; and (3) the services in the Synagogue. i. The Preparation. Elaborate preparations have always been made for the due observance of the festival. In the time of our Lord these (in Palestine) began in the middle of the month preceding Nisan (Adar), and included the repairing of roads and bridges, and the whitening anew of sepulchres. It was also a specially busy time in tbe matter of cere- monial and other kinds of purification. In modern days, also, elaborate preparation in the home is the rule. This begins some considerable time before the date of the festival. The house is turned out from top to bottom, and every particle of leaven that can be discovered is carefully removed. This has given rise to an interesting ceremony. After the cleansing process has been completed, on the evening which begins the 14th of Nisan (i.e. the evening preceding the festival), the head of the family (or his representative) proceeds to make a formal search throughout the house, with a 1 See pp. 333 ff. ' " Seder "=" order," "service"; the home-festivdl of the first two nights (consisting of a banquet with rehgious ceremonial) is so described. DESTRUCTION OF LEAVEN 357 lighted candle for leaven.^ Every nook and comer is thoroughly investigated, and it is customary to make a point of having a little leaven available in order that it may be " discovered " and then placed in some con- venient spot tUl the morning. After the first meal of the morning all leaven must be removed, i.e. as Dr. Friedlander explains, either sold, or given as a present to a non-Israelite or destroyed. This is known as Bi'ur-chdmets (" Destruction or removal of leaven "), The formal search, like the performance of other religious duties, is preceded by a blessing : " Blessed art Thou, O Lord our God, King of the Universe, Who hast sanctified us by Thy commandments, and hast commanded us concerning the removal of leaven." ^ After the completion of the search in the evening, the following declaration is uttered (in Aramaic) : — All leaven that is in my house which I have not seen, and have not removed, I declare annulled, and to be of no more worth to me than the dust of the earth. The next morning all leaven (reserved or otherwise) is solemnly burnt after breakfast, and a similar declaration is made. Henceforth, no leaven is tolerated in the house during the rest of the festival ; and unleavened cakes only are eaten in place of leavened bread.^ Another important part of the preparation consists in the provision of " kosher " utensils (i.e., utensils free from contact with chamets or " leaven ") for use during the festival. This means either that a brand- new set of vessels is provided, or a set that is specially kept for Passover-purposes is brought out. In some 1 The technical name for this is bedikath chamets, "search for leaven." Cf. Zeph. i" " This is said, of course, in Hebrew (as are all the prayers quoted. Some, however, are written in Aramaic). ' Hence the name "Feast of Unleavened Bread," frequently used in the Gospels. Possibly the Passover and the ' ' Feast of Unleavened Bread " were originally regarded as distinct festivals (so among the Samaritans at the present day). But in the Jewish observance the distinction has disappeared. 358 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP cases vessels that have been in ordinary use may be employed, but only after having undergone a drastic process of ritual cleansing. During the afternoon the table is prepared for the Seder-raeal, which is begun after the return of the male members of the family from the Synagogue. The arrangement and furnishing of this are described below. ii. The Home-Festival (Seder). The most interesting and important feature of the Passover is the service celebrated at home on the first two nights of the festival. This is known as the " Seder." As already mentioned, the preparation of the Seder- table and the room or rooms to be used takes place in the afternoon. The table is set in the following manner : At the head, immediately in front of the celebrant, is the Seder-dish. On this are placed three large, specially baked, unleavened cakes {matsoth ; pronounced " motsos " by the Ashkenazic Jews), each wrapped up in a cloth ; and on top of these a hard-boiled egg, a roasted shank- bone, " charoseth " (a mixture of scraped apples and almonds or nuts with raisins and cinnamon), a saucer with salt water and bitter herbs (horse-radish) and parsley {moror=" bitter "). The table is also furnished with wine and cups, glasses, or goblets for each person, an extra cup being provided for the Prophet Elijah, in case of his sudden arrival. Large chairs with cushions or pillows are also set for the master (or celebrant) and mistress of the house (but not always for the latter). Each of these elements possesses a symbolical significance. Thus, of the three unleavened cakes, two are explained to represent the " double portion " of Sabbath and Holy Day, while the third represents the " bread of poverty." " The bread of poverty is intended to remind us of the bread of poverty or affliction eaten by our forefathers when kept as slaves in Egypt." ' ' Friedlander, Jewish Religion, p. 380, note. The Passover Tabic Spread To f;ice p. 358 THE "HAGGADAH" 359 The " bitter herbs " {moror) are emblematic of the hard service of the IsraeUtes in Egypt. The " charoseth," on account of its brown colour, is representative of the clay out of which Israehtes made bricks. ^ The shank- bone is a relic of the paschal lamb ; and the hard-boiled egg stands for the daily free-will offering (chagigah) brought during the festival to the Temple. During the Se^er-service each person present drinks four cups of wine. The wine generally employed is made of raisins (unfermented). But now Palestine wine is frequently used. In broad outline, the service proceeds as follows. It is opened by the sanctification of the day (Kiddush), after which the first cup of wine is drunk ; then follow the washing of the hands ^ and the distribution to all present of some parsley and lettuce which is eaten with a blessing. The " afikoman " is set aside ; and (after the shank-bone and egg have been temporarily removed) the Seder-dish is taken hold of by the company, who, on lifting it, utter an invitation to all who are needy to share in the festival. Then follow the questions by the youngest child present, which introduce the reply. This is the Haggdddh proper, or " teUing forth " in narrative form, with comments, stories, and explana- tions interspersed, of the history of Israel's slavery in Egypt, the Exodus, and the birth of the nation. The Haggaddh proper is concluded by the recitation of the first part of the Hallel (Pss. 113, 114), after which the second cup of wine (the " cup of the Haggdddh ") is drunk. The washing of the hands ^ (preparatory to the partaking of the meal) now follows, after which 1 This is the popular explanation. In fact, the " charoseth " is a kind of Oriental sauce used with such edibles as bitter herbs. Into it the hofse-radish should be dipped. The Rabbis speak of it as an antidote against possible ill effects of the bitter herbs. 2 By the celebrant only. 2 By all the company. 360 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the two unleavened cakes are distributed in small portions to the company, and partaken of ; also the " bitter herbs " (horse-radish) dipped in the " charoseth." " Hillel's ceremony " concludes this part of the service. The evening meal (or banquet) is then partaken of, followed, of course, by the usual " Grace after meals " which finishes with the drinking of the third cup of wine. Before Grace is said, however, the " afikoman " is distributed to those present. After Grace, the door is opened, the fourth cup of wine filled, the concluding part of the Hallel (Pss. 115-118) and the " Great Hallel " (Ps. 136) recited, and algo the " Benediction of Song." The proceedings are brought to an end by the singing of certain popular poetical pieces, which will be enumerated below. Such is the Setter-service in broad outUne. It remains to explain more fully some of the more striking and interesting features. As will have been seen, the actual sequence is somewhat complicated. Even the Jews have felt this, and have recourse to a series of rhymed (Hebrew) catchwords to remind them of the correct ordering of the ceremonial. These translated are as follows : (i) sancify ; (2) wash ; (3) greens ; (4) divide ; (5) tells ; (6) washing ; (7) brings forth unleavened ; (8) bitter ; (9) wraps ; (10) the table set ; (11) laid aside ; (12) Grace ; (13) Hallel ; (14) accepted. It will be convenient in setting forth further details to follow the numbered programme given above.^ (i) The first cup of the Passover is the Kiddush cup, by which both Sabbaths and the festivals are sanctified. (2) The celebrant only at this point washes his hands ^ The full Haggadah service can easily be obtained in- Hebrew and English. Citations are here made from the edition edited by the Rev. A. A. Green with notes {The Revised Hagada). London : Greenberg & Co. THE " SEDER "-SERVICE 361 to qualify him for his priestly functions for the time being. (3) At this point parsley is dipped in salt water and dis- tributed by the celebrant, who utters a blessing, and the company partake. The parsley so dipped is supposed to represent the hyssop dipped in blood (Exod. 12 ^^). (4) The celebrant now " breaks in two the middle matsah (unleavened cake) , leaving one half on the Seder- dish, and placing the other half aside as the " afikoman " (Green). The last word, which appears in the Mishnah in a Hebrew dress, is clearly Greek, and may mean " the aftermeal entertainment," or " what comes later " {ephikomenon) , i.e. dessert.' At any rate, the portion so broken off is " hidden " for the time being (placed under the pillow of the celebrant's chair), and afterwards broken and distributed, and eaten by the company as the last morsel. ^ Sometimes, apparently, the afikoman is preserved until the following year, and then burnt with the leaven on the eve of the next Passover. After the reservation of the afikoman, the shank-bone and egg are removed from the Seder-Aish, which is then taken hold of by the company, and elevated, the following formula being recited : " This is the bread of affliction which our fathers did eat in the land of Egypt ! Let all who are hungry come in and eat ; let all who require come in and celebrate the Passover. This year here — next year in the land of Israel ! This year as slaves — next year free ! " ' (5) The shank-bone and egg are now replaced, and • eppiq6man= perhaps ^»i kSmoi/ comessatum ire. " The custom is probably a survival of an earlier time, when a part of the paschal lamb was reserved till the end of the feast, and then distributed in morsels to be eaten, in order that the lamb should be the last thing actually tasted. The curious custom of the children " snatching " the afikoman, and then getting it redeemed by presents, is based upon a mistranslation of a passage in the Talmud (see Green, p. 25, note). ' The formula is in Aramaic, and dates from the eariy years of stress in exile during the Roman period. 362 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the youngest child present proceeds to ask the question as to the peculiarities of this night as distinguished from other nights.^ Then follows the telling {haggddah) by way of response. It begins : We were slaves to Pharaoh in Egypt, and the Lord our God brought us forth from thence with a strong hand and an outstretched arm, etc. (of. Green, pp. 27 ff.). The material of the "narration " is varied and inter- esting, but too long to quote. It ranges over the four kinds of sons — the wise, the wicked, the simple, and the infant — the questions they ask, and the replies appropriate to them, suggested by several passages in the Law ; ^ followed by an edifying discourse on the providential ordering of Israel's history, by which they were led from the idolatry of ancestors to the worship of the true God, through -wonderful experiences (Green, pp. 33 ff.), with a grateful acknowledgment of all the benefits so conferred.^ Some Rabbinic explanations of the meaning of the Passover and the significance of the unleavened bread and bitter herbs bring the Haggddah towards its concluding outburst of praise in4;he recitation of the first part of the Hallel * (Pss. 113, 114). 1 One of the most interesting features in these is the remark : " On all other nights we take our meal either sitting or reclining ; but on this night we all recline." This goes back to the Oriental banquet with couches on three sides of the table, across which the guests reclined, leaning on the left elbow (cf. St. John, 13''-*'). * One main aim in the Passover Haggddah is to impress, by an object lesson, on the minds of the children, Israel's consciousness of its wonderful history and destiny. ' This is embodied in a composition with a refrain in which all join, " It would have suf&ced ! " {dayyenil). It begins : " If He had brought us out from Egypt, and not executed judgments upon the Egyptians — it would have suf&ced ! If He had executed judgments upon the Egyptians and not upon their gods— it would have suf&ced ! " etc. (see Green, p. 45 f.). ' The Hallel was sung in the Temple during the slaughter of the paschal lambs by the priests. Possibly the division of the Hallel (part before, and the rest after, the family meal) is due to the idea that the family meal now takes the place of the old Passover family sacrifice (see Green, p. 50 note). THE " SEDER "-SERVICE 363 Then follows the drinking of the second cup, the " cup of the Haggdddh." (6) All the guests wash their hands at this point as the preliminary to the meal. (7) The celebrant now breaks the first and second unleavened cakes, and distributes pieces to all present. These are eaten after the recitation of the blessing. (8) A piece of horse-radish (the " bitter herbs ") dipped in the " charoseth " is distributed to each person, and eaten after the appropriate blessing. (9) " Wraps." A curious ceremony, known as " Hillel's ceremony," follows. The celebrant breaks up the third unleavened cake, cuts slices of the horse-radish, places them between two pieces of the unleavened cake (forming a sandwich), and distributes to each person saying : " In memory of the Temple like Hillel. Thus did HiUel when the Temple stood. He used to wrap together pieces of Passover lamb, unleavened bread, and bitter herbs, and eat them together ; in order to fulfil what is written : ' upon unleavened cakes and bitter herbs ye shall eat it ' " (Ex. 12^). (10) The evening meal is then served. This usually means a long array of courses of dishes which are specially favoured by Jews, and are quite strange to the average " goy " (Gentile), such as soup and fish prepared in curious ways, etc. (11) At the conclusion of this the afikoman is dis- tributed in pieces to the guests, and eaten as explained above. (12) Grace is then said (see Green, pp. 59 ff.), and the third cup of wine^the " Cup of Blessing " — is drunk. (13) The door is then opened, and certain imprecatory verses from the Psalms and Lamentations are recited (Ps. 79 *.^ ; 69^^ ; Lam. 3®^), beginning : " Pour out Thy wrath upon the nations who know Thee not," etc. In reality, this seems to be a relic of the old banqueting 364 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP customs of the Oriental Jews. At the conclusion of the feast, after Grace, the doors were opened to allow of the departure of guests who were on a journey. The imprecatory verses form really no part of the original Haggdddh service ; they were added in the Middle Ages, when the Passover-festival became associated with such terrible danger and persecution from Christians. After this, the fourth cup of wine is filled, the rest of the " Hallel " recited (including the " Great Hallel "), and the Benediction of Song (beginning " The breath of every living being," etc., Green, p. 79). At the conclusion of this in the Liturgy of the Portuguese Jews, and formerly in that of the Germans, the fourth cup was blessed and drunk. Now, however, the Germans insert some poetical pieces before the drinking of the fourth cup, viz., " And it came to pass at midnight " (Green, pp. 83-87), on the first night ; and on the second, one beginning " Ye shall say it is the sacrifice of the Passover," each line ending with the word Pesach (Pass- over) (Green, pp. 87-91), and a curious alphabetic song, with the refrain ki 16 nd'eh (" For to Him [praise] is due "). The fourth cup is then drunk. (14) A prayer for the divine acceptance of the service follows {nirtsdh — accepted), (see Green, p. 95). To this the German Jews add three popular songs or hymns ; the first beginning " O mighty God ! rebuild Thy house speedily " (Green, p. 97) ; the next " Who knoweth just One ? I know One — One is the God of the world. Who knoweth just two," etc. (Green, p. 99 f.) ; and the last and most popular of all " Chad Gadya,^ One only kid, one only kid " (Green, p. 105 f.). All are sung to traditional music.^ The last mentioned is a variation on the popular folk-song " The House that Jack built." Its last clause 1 " Chad Gadya " is the title of an exquisite sketch in Mr. I. Zangwill's Dreamers of the Ghetto (pp. 453 £[.). * This is given in Green p,p. 108 ff. "CHAD GADYA" 365 runs : " Then came the Holy One — Blessed be He — and slaughtered the Angel of Death, who slaughtered the butcher, who slaughtered the ox, who drank up the water, which quenched the fire, that burnt the stick, which beat the dog, that bit the cat, that ate the kid which my father bought for two zuzim. One only kid, one only kid ! " The following explanation is given of this curious adaptation. " Our Father in Heaven bought the kid Israel with the blood of circumcision and the blood of the Passover. The kid was swallowed by the cat Egypt. Egypt was conquered by Babylon (the dog) ; both (Egypt and Babylon) by the Medes and Persians (the stick) ; these by the fiery Alexander ; Alexander's empire by Rome, which, like water, overspread the whole world ; Rome, as mistress of Palestine, was sup- planted by the ox, the Saracens." * Possibly the butcher may stand for the Crusaders, and the Angel of Death for the hoped-for deliverance from their cruelties. If so, the piece may have been composed during the existence of the Latin kingdom of Jerusalem. iii. The Passover Synagogue-Services. There are, of course, festal services ^ in the Synagogue at Passover, with a fuU complement of offices (evening, morning, additional, and afternoon prayer). The morning service is distinguished by the reading of special lessons from the Law and the Prophets ; and the Hallel is sung. A series of special lessons is read consecutively in the services during the eight days. On the first Sabbath after the first two days of Passover it is customary to read Canticles in the service. This custom^ — which arose after theTalmudic period apparently^ was suggested by the verse (2^^) : " Behold the winter is gone." The allegorical interpretation of the Book, however, has had • Dembitz op. cit. p. 365. 2 The full services can be seen in the larger (Festival) Prayer- Books (Machzorim). 366 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP some influence in this connexion, the idea suggested being the betrothal of Israel to God. The coming of the Passover season is heralded by the Sabbath which immediately precedes or faUs on the first of Nisan (called Shabbath ha-chodesh). The special lesson from the Pentateuch read on this occasion is Ex. 12^"*" which deals with the commandment about celebrating Passover ; the prophetic lesson is Ezek. 45^^-46^^ (description of the sacrifices of Nisan I, ^assover, and other feasts in the future Temple). The Sabbath immediately preceding Passover is caUed " the great Sabbath " — for what reason it is unknown. II. Pentecost (Weeks). i. The Counting of the Omer. The interval between Passover and Pentecost is termed " the days of the counting " (Heb. yeme ha-sefirah), owing to a curious custom which is inaugurated on the eve of the second day of Passover, immediately after the evening service. It is, based upon the following injunction contained in Lev. 23^^,^' : And ye shall count unto you from the morrow after the Sabbath,! from the day that ye brought the omer (E.V. " sheaf ") of the wave-ofEering, seven Sabbaths shall ye com- plete; even unto the morrow after the seventh Sabbath shall ye number fifty days. The word " omer " usually has the meaning " sheaf " in Hebrew. But it is also the name of a measure (cf. Ex. 16^*), containing about half a gallon, and is so interpreted here by the Rabbis, who regard the " wave- offering " of the passage as having consisted not of a sheaf, but of an omer of grain (barley). 1 i.e., according to the Rabbinical view, from the second day of Passover, the first day being regarded as " the Sabbath." According to another ancient view, " the Sabbath " here = the Saturday after the Passover Feast. PENTECOST 367 The " counting " now takes place during this interval in the Synagogue. It is preceded by a blessing, thus : Blessed art Thou . . . Who hast sanctified us by Thy commandments and hast commanded us to count the days of the Omer. The formula used is : " This is the day since the Omer." After a week has elapsed the number of weeks as well as of days is specified. In this way forty-nine days are " counted," the fiftieth being Pentecost. During the greater part of this period marriage and festivities are prohibited, perhaps because the month lyar, which roughly corresponds to May, may have been popularly regarded, as like the latter, an unlucky season for marriages. What looks like a later explana- tion is that the period is full of sad memories of Jewish massacres (in the time of Hadrian and the Crusades). The 33rd day of the Omer ( = lyar 18) is, however, not one of the prohibited days. According to tradition, a plague that had raged among R. Akiba's disciples was stayed on this day ; hence it is called " the scholar's festival." On the three days immediately preceding Pentecost ^ also marriage celebrations are permitted. ii. The Feast of Weeks [Pentecost). The " Feast of Weeks " (Heb. Shabuoth) is celebrated on the 50th day of the Omer (hence its name " Pentecost," a Greek word "fiftieth,"), and now on the following day also, i.e., Sivan 6 and 7. In the Bible — where, of course, a festival of one day only is referred to — it is described as "the feast of Harvest" (Ex. 23^*), and " the day of the First-Fruits " (Num. zS^'). It really marked the close of the grain-harvest, which in Palestine lasted seven weeks (from Passover to Pentecost) . In the modern Synagogue the harvest-character of the festival is suggested by decorations of trees, plants and flowers. 1 Called " the three days of the bounds," in allusion to Ex. 19", 12 (the three days' preparation before Mt. Sinai. The law- giving is supposed to have taken place at Pentecost). 368 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP The " Feast of Weeks " is also regarded as the Feast of Revelation — " the season of the giving of our Law " — because according to tradition the Law-giving on Sinai took place on the 6th day of the third month (i.e. Sivan). This tradition, however, cannot be really ancient, as it is not alluded to either by Philo or Josephus. The special lessons are : ist day, Ex. 19-20 (account of the Law-giving on Sinai) and Ezek. i (revelation of God's glory) ; 2nd day, Deut. 15^^-16" and Hab. 3. The Book of Ruth is also read, no doubt originally because it contains a beautiful harvest-idyll. Jewish homes are also often decorated in the same way as the Synagogues at this season. By the Reform Congregations (especially in the United States) Pentecost, as being the traditional birthday of Judaism, has been selected for administering " confirmation " to Jewish girls in the Synagogue. III. Tabernacles (Sukkoth). The Feast of Tabernacles commences on the 15th of Tisri (five days after the Day of Atonement) , and lasts seven days. Of these the first two (Tisri 15 and 16) are full festival days, the last five (Tisri 17-21) half- holidays. The " eighth day " Festival [Shemini 'Atsereth), which like other festival days is doubled (Tisri 22 and 23 — the second day in this case is called Simchath To rah), closes the celebration. The whole nine days bear one descriptive designation, " season of our rejoicing." The festival is one of venerable antiquity. Its observance is commanded in the Mosaic Law (Lev. 23^*), and its purpose is there explained as to commemorate the way in which the Israelites dwelt in booths {sukkoth) during their journey through the wilderness. Every Jew who owns a court or garden is required to erect a booth, or something more or less equivalent, and to dwell in it — or at least have meals in it — while t2 CQ " SUKKOTH " 369 the feast lasts. In order that the character of the original booth may as far as possible be retained, the modern counterpart is very lightly constructed. It " must not be covered with fixed boards and beams or with canvas, but with detached branches of trees, plants, flowers, and leaves, in such a manner that the covering is not quite impenetrable to wind and rain ; or starlight " (Friedlander). The booths are required to be made during the days that intervene between the Day of Atonement and the Feast itself ; they are adorned with garlands, flowers, and the like ; often the text "Ye shaU dwell in booths seven days" (Lev. 23*^), is displayed in a prominent place within the booth. On the eve of the Feast the members of the household attend Synagogue, and on returning assemble in their booth and partake, of a meal. On this evening (the first of the Feast) the meal (as in the case of the weekly Sabbath on Friday evening ^) is preceded by KidMsh or the solemn sanctification, first over a cup of wine which is then handed round, ^all drinking of it, and then over two wheaten loaves, specially baked and placed on the table covered with a cloth ; these the head of the family then proceeds to cut into pieces, which are distributed to and eaten by aU present.^ A special blessing — which is repeated before every meal during the seven days — foUows ("Blessed art Thou, O Lord. . . . Who hast commanded us to dweU in a booth "). At the conclusion of the meal, and on leaving the booth, the following prayer is said by the head of the household. May it please Thee, O Lord my God, and God of my fathers, that in like manner as I have this time obeyed Thy command, and have been sitting in the booth, so in the • Cf. pp. 346 &. " KiddUsh is repeated at the meal on the eve of Shemini Atsereth (Tisri 22). as— (2714) 370 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP coming year I may be counted worthy to sit in the booth of Leviathan.' The next morning the whole family repairs to the Sjmagogue. In the S3niagogue the ancient and original character of the celebration as a Harvest Festival — the " Feast of Ingathering," or thanksgiving for the gathered produce of the fields and gardens — is prominent in various ways. The Synagogue itself is decorated with plants and fruits ; a,nd there are the palm-branch proces- sions. These take place after the " additional " {musafj service, which follows morning prayer (on Sabbaths and holy days). Every day of the seven is provided with this service and the processions, which culminate on the seventh day {Hosha'na Rabba). The palm-branch (lulab) is prepared in accordance with Lev. 23 *° : " And ye shall take unto you on the first day the fruit of the goodly tree, branches of palm-trees, and boughs of thick-leaved trees, and willows of the brook, and ye shall rejoice before the Lord your God seven days," The lulab accordingly is invested at its lower end with myrtle branches and branches of the willow. These are attached to the lulab by means of palm-leaves. The worshipper takes the palm-branch (lulab) in the right hand, and the ethrog or citron (fixed in a metal receptacle) in the left, reciting as he does so the following blessings (the second blessing is only said on the first day of the Festival) : (i) Blessed art Thou, O Lord our God, King of the Uni- verse, Who hast sanctified us with Thy commandments, and commanded us to take up the pahn-branch. (2) Blessed art Thou, O Lord our God, King of the Uni- verse, Who hast preserved us alive, sustained us, and brought us to enjoy this season. ' The Leviathan plays a prominent part in haggadic legend, especially in connexion with the messianic time. The monster is to be killed and the flesh is to furnish food for the righteous (at the messianic banquet) . From the hide tents will be made by God for the pious of the first rank. This last feature will explain the allusion in the text of the prayer above. JOYOUS CHARACTER OF " SUKKOTH " 371 These are lifted up during the recitation of the Hallel (Pss. 113-118) in morning prayer. At the end of the Musaf or " Additional " prayer the scroU of the Law is taken from the Ark to the reading-desk, a procession is formed, and the worshippers, with the citron and palm- branch, make a circuit while certain prayers called " Hosannas " {Hosha'anoth) are recited. These are introduced as foUows : For Thy sake, O our God, save now (Hosanna) ! For Thy sake, O our Creator, save now ! For Thy sake, O our Redeemer, save now ! For Thy sake, O Thou who seekest for us, save now ! • The processions, however, do not take place on the Sabbath that intervenes in the festival : nor are the palm-branch and citron handled on that day, the carr5dng of these being regarded as a form of work. The joyous character of the festival finds its fullest expression on the seventh day, the popular name of which is Hosha'na Rabba (" The great Hosanna "). It is so called because the exclamation " Hosanna," and the " Hosanna-processions " are much more frequent than on the preceding six days.^ On this day, after the Additional Prayer (Musaf), not merely one scroll (as on the previous days) but all are taken from the Ark, and seven processions take place round the whole Syna- gogue, a separate " hosanna " hymn being sung each time, and the scrolls being borne by different worshippers in each of the processions.* At the completion of the processions, the worshippers being now in their places, the lulab is laid aside and the 1 The joyous character of this ancient popular hoUday has always been so marked that the framers of the Jewish Calendar- year found it necessary to devise a rule for preventing its falling on the Sabbath. Cf. above, p. 323. ' Or else they are taken to the Reader's desk and there held in an upright position (the procession encircling the Torah as it formerly did the altar) . See I. Abrahams, Festival Studies, -^.t.^, and cf. the illustration on the opposite page. 372 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP willow-bunch ^ taken up, and a few more poetical pieces are said. All join in the messianic hymn beginning "A voice brings glad tidings, brings, glad tidings and says." Then with the utterance of a petition for forgive- ness of sins each shakes or strikes the willow-bunch on the desk before him tUl its leaves fall off, and throws it away. It should be added that in accordahce with an ancient pious custom many Jews have a watch on the eve of this Festival. The watchers meet socially and read Deu- teronomy, the entire Psalter and passages from the Zohar (with Kabbalistic prayers). In the intervals of these exercises they eat cakes, fruits, and other refreshments. The recitation of the HalUl, the waving of the lulab during this, the " Hosanna " processions with lulab and ethrog and the Hosha'na Rdbba ceremonies (including the willow bunch) are all survivals of the great ceremonies connected with the ' 'water- drawing " which distinguished the Feast of Tabernacles in the time of the Temple. The ritual is described ip the Mish- nah (Sukkah iv and v). "A golden pitcher holding three logs >vas filled by a priest with water from SUoam and brought through the water-gate, the multitude reciting Is. 12'. Amid trumpet blasts the water was poured simultaneously with a libation of wine into a tube in the altar, through which it flowed mingling with the libation of wine by an underground passage to the Kidron." ^ The season wag one of great festivity, notably on the evening at the end of the first day when in the brilliantly illuminated^ Court of the Women there was a torch dance, to the accompaniment of singing and music, lasting till early morning, in which the leading Israelites took part. The libation of water was probably founded upon very ancient practice, being regarded as symbolical of rain, with which Tabernacles was associated. Of this ceremony and its accompaniments the Mishnah [Suhk. v, i) says : " he who has not seen the joy of the water-drawing ^ The willow-bunch (which is distinct from the lulab) is pre- pared the night before and taken to the Synagogue for the morn- ing-service. It is made up of five small willow-twigs tied together, and is popularly known as " Hosha'na," being peculiar to this day (Hosha'na Rabba). * JE, xi, 661. ' The great golden candelabra in the court of the women were lit on this night. There may be an allusion to this in St. John 8»». c ^ "SIMCHATH TORAH" 373 has never seen joy in his life." During the feast the libation of water was made each day at the time of the morning sacri- fice, and it is to this custom that our Lord implicitly refers in St. John 7" (" If any man thirst let him come unto me and drink"). On each day of the first six there was a procession round the altar ; on the seventh day, seven. The willow-branches were also a great feature. In the Temple they were placed round the altar, the Shofar was blown, and the priests encircled the altar, lulah in hand and singing a verse from the Hallel : " I pray, O Lord, save now {JiosManna) ! 1 pray, O Lord, give success now ! " In the Portuguese Synagogues similarly it is customary to sound the shofar during the processions on Hosha'na Rabba. This also may be a reminiscence of the Temple usage. 1 In some Synagogues it is customary to erect a booth similar to the one erected at home. The seven days of Tabernacles are immediately fol- lowed by the " eighth-day Festival " {Shemini Atsereth) (Tisri 22) and its double, which has received the special name of Simchath Tor ah " Rejoicing of the Law " (Tisri 23). No special ceremonial in the Synagogue-services marks the former of these days. The Hallel is recited in its full form and the Book of Ecclesiastes is read from a scroll. The memorial for the dead [hazkarath neshamoth) is also made in the morning service.^ On the eve of the day, after the Synagogue-service, the; sanc- tifi-cation {Kidd4sh) is said at home, often in the booth, which is continued in use this day and the next. The following evening the Feast of the " Rejoicing of the Law " begins. This is usually the occasion for much boisterous mirth. The festival is post-Biblical in origin, and in fact did not become a fixed institution till the one-year cycle of lections from the Pentateuch had become firmly established. The distinctive feature of the day is the processions ' It has now, however, acquired other associations, and is regarded as intended to give "those who have not become thoroughly reconciled with God on the Atonement-Day a last opportunity of repentance before the final judgment of God is sealed" (Rosenau, Jew. Cer., p. 99 f.). 2 Cf. above, pp. 339 ff. 374 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP with the scrolls of the Law in the morning service. All the scrolls are taken out of the Ark, a lighted candle being left in their place. A procession, headed by the Reader, who is followed by the men bearing the scrolls, is formed, and all sing : We beseech Thee, O Lord, save now ! We beseech Thee, O Lord, give success now ! We beseech Thee, O Lord, answer us when we call ! When one circuit has been completed other men are invited to carry a scroll during the next round, and so on. After the procession has been finished all but three scrolls are returned to the Ark and the regular reading of the lessons begins. " A Cohen is first called ' with all the priests ' ; they all come to the platform and say the benedictions together ; then a Levite is called ' with all the Levites.' Then others are called, have short passages read to them in chap. 33 of Deuteronomy ; these same passages being read over and over again until none are left uncalled but the three needed to finish Deuteronomy, to read in Genesis, and to act as maftir [i.e., to read the prophetic lesson] " (Dembitz). The names given to the one who read 3 the last section of Deut. ("Bridegroom of the Law ") and to him who begins to read Genesis (" Bridegroom of Genesis ") have already been explained (see p. 353). Th^se ceremonies are in many of the German Synagogues anticipated the previous evening. Towards the end of the evening service, contrary to all rules, the scrolls are taken out of the ark, and carried about in procession, men and boys joining in (the latter with paper flags representing the twelve tribes and burning tapers), and singing the hymns proper to the following morning service. While this is proceeding the women throw nuts and raisins from the galleries. This is essentially the children's part of the Festival. In some places it has also been customary for the children to tear down the " booths " {sukkoth), and bum them on Simchath Tor ah. IV. Dedication (Chanukkah). The Feast of Chanukkah, or Dedication, like that of " CHANUKKAH " 375 Purim, is associated with a historical anniversary, and is not mentioned in the Torah. It commemorates the victories of the Maccabees over the tyrant Antiochus Epiphanes, and more especially the re-dedication of the Temple by Judas Maccabseus in 164 B.C. After the Temple had been purified, a new altar of burnt-offering built, and new holy vessels made, the fire was kindled on the altar, the lamps of the candlestick lit, and the re-dedication of the altar celebrated for eight days, (i Maccab. 4^*). This celebration has points of contact with that of Tabernacles, which also lasted eight days and at which lights were a prominent feature. According to Josephus the popular name for Chanukkah was (jtxSra = " Festival of Lights." Another of its names is " Feast of the Asmoneans." It is referred to in St. John 10^^ as " the feast of the dedication " {-ra ejKalvia). It begins on the 25th of Kislev and lasts eight days (till Tebeth 2), and is celebrated by the kindling of lights (wax tapers or lamps ^) on every evening of the festival. On the eve of the first day one light only is kindled ; on the second two, and so on up to eight on the eve of the eighth day. This ceremony is more particularly distinctive of the home, but also takes place in the Synagogue, every congregation possessing a candelabrum of burnished brass or silver for this purpose. It is traditionally based on the miracle which is said to have occurred at the purification of the Temple. When the time came for re-Ughting the " continual lamp " only a small cruse of the consecrated oil could be' found, suffi- cient for one day's supply. It, however, miraculously lasted eight days till a fresh supply could be prepared. According to the Talmud it was a disputed point between the schools of HiUel and Shammai whether the lights should ascend in number from one to eight (HUlel) or begin with eight and decrease to one (Shammai). The lighting of the Chanukkah-\a.mp is the feature of principal importance in the Festival. The original ' Properly a lamp should be used, but now wax tapers are commonly employed. 376 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP object of this was the festive illumination of the house outside. The lights were to be set up near the door opening into the street, or (if there were more than one such door) in front of each. Only when it was too dangerous (in times of persecution) ivere they to be re- moved within. Their original purpose was further emphasized by the injunction that they were not to be used for reading purposes {Shabb. 21^-^3^). The number of lamps or candles was determined by the number of male persons in the house. In old-fashioned Jewish homes it is still " quite usual. . . to furnish to each boy his own set of them, one for the first night, two for the next, and so on to the eighth. . . The lamps or candles are set near a window, where people in the street may see them, soon after dark before the streets are deserted, all to ' publish the miracle.' " ^ When the Chanukkak-light is kindled the following Blessings are chanted by the person who kindles, and those who see it kindled : (i) Blessed art Thou, O Lord our God, King of the Uni- verse, Who hast sanctified us by Thy commandments, and commanded us to kindle the Chanukkah-lamp. (2) Blessed art Thou, etc. . . . Who didst work miracles for our fathers, in those days at this season. (3) » Blessed art thou, etc Who hast let us Uve, and sustained us, and caused us to reach this season. A h5ann of praise is then sung extolling God's deliver- ances.' The CAanukkaA-laxa-ps (or candelabra) have been elaborately developed in many artistic ways. Many fine specimens of work in this form exist. Provision is made for eight lights, and also another, distinct from the rest, known as " shamash," the " attendant " light. This last served as the lighter for the others (it being unlawful to kindle one C/ianukkaA-light from another). It was also (in theory) the light that was " used " for the ordinary purposes of seeing or reading. The CAanukiaA-lights were intended solely for festive illumination.* 1 Dembitz, op. cit., p. 337. « (3)' is only said the first night. ' Cf. Singer, p. 275 (" O Fortress Rock of my Salvation "). ♦ Cf. Singer, p. 274 (" We kindle these lights," etc.). " CHANUKKAH "-LIGHTS 377 In most modem Jewish houses, where Chanukkah is observed, the Chanukkah-M^^ts, are reserved for the interior of the house and the purely domestic character of the festival is prominent. It is especially a women's festival. As has already been pointed out, no " profane " use was to be made of the lights — no ordinary work was to be done by them. Consequently games (especially card-games) riddles, and other pastimes were indulged in on Chanukkah-evenings. Women and girls were even encouraged to " kindle " Chanukkah lights for themselves. Children, also, share prominently in the festivities, being regaled with stories and presents. The first and last days are devoted more particularly to these forms of festivity. The poor are also remembered at this time, even begging from door to door (which is not tolerated at other times) being allowed. In the S5magogue Chanukkah is marked by one or two special features. As has already been mentioned the Chanukkah-lavcip is kindled in the Synagogue, as well as the home, each evening. This is followed by the chanting of Ps. 30, which, as its title shows (" A Song at the Dedication of the House "), was specially appropriated to this celebration.^ In the morning service for each of the eight days the Hallel is chanted at the conclusion of the Amidah (cf. Singer, p. 142 bottom). Not improbably the Hallel, i.e. Pss. Ii3-ii8,was compiled in its present form for this festival. In the Jewish Liturgy it is treated as a single composition, being pre- ceded by a special blessing (cf. Singer, p. 219 f). There is also a special paragraph in the Thanksgiving-Benediction of the Amidah-prayei,^ which refers to the Maccabean triumphs. During the eight days of the feast also special lessons are read ; they are taken from Num. 1 Cf . Singer, p. 274. It was sung by the Levites in the Temple at this Feast. " See Singer, pp. 51-52 (" We thank Thee also for the miracles, etc.). It is known as " al ha-nissim ("for the miracles"). 378 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP 7-8* (account of the gifts given at the dedication of the altar of the tabernacle ; S^"* refers to the kindling of the lights of the holy candlestick). If a Sabbath occurs within the festival Zech. 2""*' (the vision of the golden candlestick) is read as the prophetic lesson (Haftarah) ; if a second Sabbath should occur i Kings ^40-60 (thg dedication of Solomon's Temple) is also read as the Haftarah. V. "PURIM." The Feast of Purim (i.e. according to the Biblical explanation " lots ") is celebrated on Adar 14, or in a leap-year, on the 14th day of " Second Adar " ^ in com- memoration of the wonderful deliverance of the Persian Jews from the machinations of Haman, as recorded in the Book of Esther. '^ As is already apparent in the Book of Esther itself the Festival is pervaded by a secular rather than a religious spirit, and this character has always distinguished it. It is the carnival of modern Jewry. Nevertheless the day has received religious recognition in th6~ Synagogue-services, a development which must have come comparatively early, as the presence of the Book of Esther in the Canon of the Old Testament sufficiently attests. The reading of the "scroll " [Megillah) as the Book of Esther is termed par excellence, is, in fact, the oldest and most prominent feature in the Synagogue- services for the day. The entire text is cantillated at evening and again at morning prayer. 1 Adar is the lath month ; " second Adar " the intercalated 13th month. When the latter occurs the 14th of first Adar is called "little Purim" {Purim Katan) and is marked by certain observances. " In Shushan, Persia, it is observed on Adar 15, in accordance with Esther 9»*, which day consequently is called" Shushan Purim." See further on the real significance of this, J E, xi, i6|(s.v. Shushan Purim) . " PURIM " 379 The text is invariably chanted by the precentor from, a parchment scroll (not from a printed book) which must have been carefully prepared and written by a Jewish scribe in accordance with certain rules. The chanting is also set to a special melody. The congregation follows the cantillation in printed texts. The reading of the Megillah is preceded by the following blessings : (1) Blessed art Thou, O Lord our God, King of the Universe, Who hast sanctified us by Thy commandments, and hast commanded us concerning the reading of the Megillah. (2) Blessed art Thou, O Lord our God, etc., .... Who wroughtest miracles for our fathers in days of old, at this season. A third blessing, and also one after the reading, follow ; these can be seen in Singer, p. 276 f. On the eve of the Feast ^ it is customary to have a money collection in the Synagogue. A plate or basket is placed in the Synagogue for the purpose. The proceeds are sometimes given to the precentor, sometimes distributed among the poor. It is, however, on its social side that the festival has developed its most remarkable features. The Book of Esther enjoins that the celebration shall be one " of feasting and joy and of sending portions one to another, and gifts to the poor." Accordingly it is a time specially marked by the exchange of presents (known as " shiloach manoth " = " sending of gifts"). "On the eve of the festival the table in many a home is set with sweets for visitors, more especially for masquers, who in every community go from home to home in large numbers on this holiday. On Purim, too, card-plajdng is freely indulged in." ^ Masquerading — boys and girls going from house to house in grotesque masques singing comic songs — is an importation from the Roman carnival. It stiU prevails among the Jews of Eastern Europe. Feasting, which takes the form of a Purim-banquet, 1 Purim can never occur on a Sabbath. ' Rosenau, op. cit. p. 130. 380 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP is naturally a feature. Its jovial character is marked, the breach of all ordinary rules being pennitted. In fact restraints of all kinds seem to be suspended on this day, the spirit of boisterousness even invading the Synagogue itself (it takes such forms as hissing, stamping, rattling the Purim-rattle at the mention of Haman's name). Outside the Synagogue the spirit of exuberant mirth has expended itself in such activities as burning Haman's efhgy, etc.^ The Purim play has also enjoyed great popularity and assumed many forms from Geonic down to modem days. 1 For many interesting details on this side of the subject, see I. Abrahams, Jewish Life in Middle Ages, and Festival Studies. CHAPTER XX. The Solemn Days and Fasts. The New Year and Day of Atonement — The Blowing of the Shofar— Meaning of the New Year Celebration— Significance of the Day of Atonement — The Fasts — Significance of Fasting — Private and Public Fasts. I. The Solemn Days (New Year and the Day of Atonement) . The Jewish Year— the New Year of the Synagogue- opens with a penitential period consisting of ten days. These are known as " the ten days of penitence " (" asdrdh yeme teshbuhah), and also as "solemn days" {ydmin ndra'im).'^ The latter term, however, is applied more par- ticularly to the beginning and end of this ten-day period, i.e. to New Year (Tisri i and 2), and the Day of Atonement (Tisri 10). But the "solemn days," themselves are heralded by certain distinct observances and devotional exercises which serve to prepare the way for what may not altogether inaptly be regarded as the " Jewish Advent season." These are [a) The blowing of the Shdfdr or ram's horn, and (b) The recitation of certain special prayers immediately before or after the daily service, which are called Selichofh, i.e., " Litanies or Prayers of Forgiveness." In the Ashkenazic Synagogues the Shdfdr is blown, on week-days (not on Sabbaths) during the whole month of EUul (i.e. the month immediately preceding Tisri) at the close of the morning service ; and, in some Synagogues, in the evening service as weU. But it is not blown in the Portuguese S3niagogues before the ten penitential days. In the Sefardic ritual the place of the SM/ar-blowing » Lit. = " awful days." 381 382 SYNAGOGUE REL'iGION AND WORSHIP is taken by the SelichSth prayers, which are recited during the whole month of ElM, and are continued morning and evening until the Day of Atonement. Among the Germans the Selichdth are only recited during the morning service, beginning but a few days (a week at most) before the New Year, and ending on the Day of Atone- ment. These prayers, together with certain verses and the shorter confession, are usually said very early in the morning, before the regular morning service. Hence these days are known as Selichdth-days. Dembitz also mentions that " in many places in Germany there are still ascetics who carry on a similar service on every week- day of the year not marked as joyous or festive. This service is known as Shomer labboker (watchmen of the morning)." ' II. The New Year (Rosh Ha- Shanah). The New Year is kept on the first two days of Tisri, which is the seventh month according to Biblical reckoning. Its characteristic Jewish name is Rosh ha-shandh, i.e. New Year. 2 This name only occurs once in the Old Testament, viz. Ezek. 40^, but in that passage it is applied not to New Year's Day, but to the beginning of the Year, which in the context covers the first ten days of the year. The name Rosh ha-shdnah is, however, applied in the Mishnah to the first day (as in modem usage), and is there used in this connexion as a title of long standing.* In the Bible the New Moon (i.e. the first day) of Tisri is specially distinguished from ordinary new moon days. It is bracketed with the Day of Atonement as "a holy convocation," on which " no servile work " was to be performed — ^in other words, as possessing a specially solemn sabbatic character. It is specially designated as yom teru'dh," i.e. "Day of Shofar-blowing," and ' Jewish Services, p. 173. « Lit. " head of the year.'' ^ Cf . the Mishnah tract Rosh ha-shanah et al. " TERU'AH " 383 zikron teru'ah," i.e., " memory of Shofar blowing " (cf. Num. 291 and 23^*) ; and it is interesting to note that by the Synagogue the Psalmist's injunction (Ps. Si^), Blow ye the trumpet in the New Moon ; on our solemn feast day, is interpreted to refer to the new moon of the seventh month, i.e. the first of Tisri. But why should the beginning of the seventh month have been singled out for such special honour ? Because it marked the begin- ning of the civil year. According to the Mishnah ^ it was in the month of Tisri that the year of Jubilee began, that slaves were hberated, and landed property returned to its original owners. It should be mentioned, however, that on ordinary new moon celebrations of the Bible the ram's horn was blown when the special sacrifices for the day were offered ; in the New Year's Festival, however, the Shdfdr was blown throughout the whole day. In the modem S5magogue the blowing of the Shofar is still the characteristic feature of the day. As a rule, it is blown during the morning service before the sefer torah (scroll of the Law) is returned to the Ark, and also during the Musaf (or additional) service. The name Teru'ah, which the S5magogue regards as the special Scriptural name of the Festival, denotes the sound of an alarm, and is regarded as an awakening or reminding. According to the Jewish commentator, Saadya, it reminds of the following ten things, with which it is directly or indirectly connected : (i) Creation ; (2) The duty to return to God ; (3) Revelation on Mount Sinai ; (4) The exhortations of the Prophets ; (5) Des- truction of the Temple ; (6) The binding of Isaac for sacrifice; (7) Imminent danger; (8) Day of Judgment ; (9) Redemption of Israel ; (10) Resurrection. Its main thought is to call man to repentance ; but, at the same time, it also serves to carry to God's throne the cry that evokes His grace and mercy. » Cf. Eosh ha-shanah I, i. 384 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP These points are beautifully brought out in the following prayer said before TerU'dh : — Thou hast {aforetimi) heard my voice, O hide not thine ear at my breathing, at my cry (Lam. 3'?). May it please Thee, O Lord my God, the God of judgment, that now it be an acceptable time before Thee, and that Thou in the multi- tude of Thy mercies and loving-kindness wilt vouchsafe to rend all the veils which make a separation this day between Thee and Thy people Israel ; and to s^nd away all who slander and reproach us. Shut the mouth of Satan that he accuse us not, for on Thee our eyes are hanging. I will exalt Thee my God, the King, the God of judgment. Hear the voice of the prayers and TerH'oth of Israel Thy people, this day in mercy. Amen. The proper and special place for the hom-blowing is after the 4th, 5th and 6th Benedictions of the Shemoneh 'Esreh or TefiUdh for the Additional {or Musdf) service of the New Year. This service has a special form for the New Year. It will be remembered that the " Additional " is now run on to the ordinary morning service, following soon after the Prophetic Lesson of morning prayer for Sabbaths and festivals. But it was felt to be necessary to find a place in the service for a prayer of thanksgiving for the performance of this special duty — the givings of thanks for special ceremonies and pious acts (like the " laying of the TefiUin," e.g.) being a common feature in the Jewish prayers. Such a prayer, however, could not be introduced in the solemn Tefillah, without inter- rupting it. Hence the blowing of the Shdfar has been introduced into an earlier part of the service, viz., soon after the reading of the Prophetic lesson. After a Psahn (such as the 47th) has been sung, or appropriate verses read, the man chosen to blow the ShSfdr slowly chants the following Benediction : Blessed art Thou, O Lord our God, King of the Universe, who hast sanctified us by Thy commandments, and hast commanded us to hear the sound of the Shdfar. Blessed art Thou, O Lord, our God, King of the Universe, who hast let us live, and kept us up, and hast made ys reach this season. c/) FEAST OF TRUMPETS 385 The blower (called TSkedh) then proceeds (under the direction of the Chazzan) to make his first series of thirty blasts or " pulses." These are interspersed with prayers. Each series of blasts is given in response to the command of the Chazzan. The last command given is called a " Great Sounding " [Teki'dh gedolah), and in obedience to it the performer produces notes louder and more prolonged. He then says the following : Happy are the people that know the Teru'ah, Lord, in the light of Thy countenance they walk (Ps. 89"). The people repeat this after him, and then the ordinary service proceeds. It ought, perhaps, to be explained at this point that the Shdfar as now used is really a horn and not a trumpet. It is a ram's horn without mouthpiece, "sharply bent at the broad side near the base ... so as to double the column of air " (Dembitz). According to the Jewish Year Book, it only emits " very primitive and ear-piercing sounds " ; in any case it is very difficult to perform on it at all successfully, and as the performer is often chosen for his piety principally — and piety and skill together are not always available — the result is sometimes somewhat pecuHar.^ One of the best known names of the New Year celebra- tion is that of Feast of Trumpets. In the S5magogue prayers, two other names also occur, viz.. Day of Memorial {Y6m zikkaron) and Day of Judgment (Yom Din) — both emphasizing aspects of the season that will be explained presently. Before attention is called to the special prayers that mark the services of the day, the arrangement of its Services must be briefly indicated. » In the ancient Synagogue the Shdfar was also used to proclaim to the assembled congregation public sentence of excommuni- cation. Excommunication was, strictly, a punishment of the Synagogue ; hence the New Testament term for it is put out of the Synagogue. St. John 9" ; 12". 25— (2417) 386 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP First of all it should be bome in mind that the New Year is now celebrated on two days, viz., Tisri ist and 2nd. Both are regarded as solemn days of rest, and accordingly have besides the ordinary evening, morning and afternoon prayer, an Additional service of Prayer (M4sdf) following on morning prayer ; also the first day is inaugurated by a special form of KidMsh (for New Year Kidd4sh, cf. Singer, p. 243). Supposing that the New Year does not fall on a Sabbath (Saturday), the ordinary service is said for evening (Singer, p. 95 ff.), morning (Singer, p. i ff.), and afternoon (Singer, p. 94 f.) the only difference being that a special form of Amidah-Vvs.y&r is substituted for the ordinary one. The Additional Service for New Year (which runs on after the morning) has also a special form of Amidah. ' In order to grasp the characteristic features of the celebration it is necessary to get some notion of the structure of these special forms. On week-days, as has already been explained in Chapter xvii, the Amidah Prayer consists of nineteen separate benedictions ; but on Sabbaths and days of rest (such as the Festivals and solemn days), only the first three and last three of these are (in a modified form) recited, the middle thirteen being replaced by an entirely new benediction called the Sanctity of the Day. The form of this varies according to the particular festival ; further, if the Festival happens to coincide with a Sabbath, other modifications take place. This middle paragraph, with the proper modifications for the New Year's services (evening, morning and afternoon) can be read in Singer, p. 240 ff. It begins : " Thou hast chosen us from all peoples." To this the reader must be referred. A remarkable feature, characteristic of the New Year's services, and in fact of all the daily services for the ten ^ This is discussed below, pp. 397 ff, "ABINU MALKENU" 387 " days of penitence " is that the recital of the Amtdah Prayer which has just been described, is concluded (except on the Sabbath) by a striking prayer containing forty-four petitions, each beginning with the words "Our Father, our King" (Abinu Malkenu). This so well brings out the penitential note which marks the New Year services, that it is worth while to consider it a Httle more closely. It will be found set forth in Singer, pp 55 ff . From it, and the other New Year prayers, some striking parallels to the opening clauses of the Lord's Prayer may be gathered. Thus in illustration of the clauses : Our Father which art in Heaven, ; Hallowed be Thy name ; Thy Kingdom come : note some of the following : Our Father, our King, we have sinned before Thee, Our Father, our King, we have none other King but Thee, Our Father, our King, renew us a good year. Our Father, our King, bring us back before Thee in perfect repentance. Our Father, our King, vouchsafe to write us in the Book of Redemption. Our Father, our King, hear us, though no good works of our own be in us. We will sanctify also Thy name throughout the world God, the God of our Fathers, reign Thou over the whole world in Thy glory. In one respect the A binU Prayer strikingly differs from the Lord's Prayer. The latter -opens with words and thoughts concerning God's glory, and reserves for later petitions acknowledgment of human sin and frailty, and prayers for pardon. Our own Anglican services, however, especially Mattins and Evensong, agree with the AUn4 in beginning with Scriptural calls to repentance and the general confession. 388 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP But the most characteristic prayers in the New Year services are the special Benedictions inserted in the middle of the Amidah Prayer of the Additional Services. These constitute three paragraphs known as kingdoms (malkiyySth) remembrances {zikrondth) and horn-blowings (Shofaroth), after each of which the S ho far is blown. Kingdoms is so called because it contains verses of Scriptural passages in which God is recognized as King. It can be read in Singer, p. 245 f., beginning : " But on account of our sins we were exiled from our land," etc. Remembrances is similarly made up of verses in which God is shown to be mindful of mankind, and especially of Israel. The last of these sections — that known as Shofaroth — is made up of verses in which the Shofar is named literally, or metaphorically, in passages where, as it were, God sounds, in thunder-notes, a call to Israel or mankind. Of the three paragraphs just mentioned, the most striking is the middle one — Remembrances. It can be seen in Singer, pp. 249 f. beginning with the words "Thou rememberest." This piece it is which has given the celebration a pecuHar character, that, viz., of the yearly " Day of Judgment " (Y6m Ha-din), which (as has already been pointed out) is one of its current names in the Syna- gogue. The behef that God has chosen this and the days connected with it as a time for passing special judgments upon His creatures is reflected here. It was this beUef, no doubt, that influenced the Synagogue to give to the first ten days of the New Year their penitential character. According to Jewish tradition, the great books of judg- ment are opened on the first day of Tisri, and closed ten days afterwards on the Day of Atonement. According to the Targum the scene in Heaven described in Job I* f. took place on New Year's Day, Satan yearly playing the part of accuser before the Divine Judge. In the Talmud {Rosh ha-shondh 16'') it is said that the sounds of the Shofar are intended to " confuse " Satan THE DAY OF JUDGMENT 389 when so employed. ^ In the same passage it is stated that three books are opened on this day, " one for the thoroughly wicked, another for the thoroughly pious, and the third for the large intermediate class. The fate of the thoroughly wicked and the thoroughly pious is determined on the spot ; the destiny of the intermediate class is suspended until the Day of Atonement, when the fate of every man is sealed." ^ A man's fate is determined according as merit or demerit predominates in the final reckoning — hence the importance of multiplying good deeds before the fatal Day (of Atone- ment). Those who emerge from the ordeal successfully are entered in the Book of Life (cf. Ex. 32^^^ Is. 4*, Ps. 69*8, Dan. i2\ Phil. 4», Rev. 38, 138, 178, etc.). This explains the petition : " Inscribe us in the Book of Life," 3 and also the salutation of New Year's Eve : " May you be inscribed (in the Book of Life) for a happy year." It is interesting to note that " the beUef that on > Cf. JE, ii, 286 b. ' Cf., op. cit. ibid., where also the following liturgical piece, which vividly brings out this aspect of the season, is quoted : " God, seated on His throne to judge the world . . . openeth the Book of Records ; it is read, every man's signature being found therein. The great trumpet is sounded ; a still, small voice is heard ; the angels shudder, saying, ' This is the day of judgment ' : for His very ministers are not pure before God. As a shepherd mustereth his flock, causing them to pass under his rod, so doth God cause every living soul to pass before Him, to fix the limit of every creature's life and to foreordain its destiny. On New Year's Day the decree is written : on the Day of Atonement it is sealed who shall live and who are to die, etc. But penitence, prayer and charity may avert the evil decree." It should be noted that the fate not only of individual creatures, but of countries — " which of them is destined to the sword and which to peace, which to famine and which to plenty" — is also determined at the same time. Cf., Singer, p. 250. ' It is significant that in the closing prayer of the Day of Atone- ment, the expression " inscribe us " is altered to " seal us," i.e., " seal our fate." In the JE (loc. cit.) the writer remarks : " In letters written between New Year and the Day of Atonement the writer usually concludes by wishing the recipient that God may seal his fate for happiness." 390 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the first day of the year the destiny of all human beings was fixed, was also that of the Assyrians. Marduk is said to come at the beginning of the year {" rish shatti ") and decide the fate of one's life." ' Of course the day is not only conceived of as one for remembering God's judgments, though this is its domi- nating thought. It also has as one of its chief purposes the remembrance before God by Ter4'ah, or the blowing of the Shofar, of His mercies in the past, and of His gracious promises to His people for the future. The various reminiscences connected with the Day, which are com- memorated in the prayers or special hymns during the services, have been thus admirably summed up : Rosh ha-shanah is first a memorial of God's work of Creation, accomplished (as believed) at this season. It proclaims the world's Creator as our King. It is, again, a memorial of the departure of the twelve tribes from Egypt, that great deliverance which is nevermore forgotten or omitted among the " praises of Israel." It is, further, a memorial of the giving of the Law on Sinai when " the trumpet sounded long " ; and a memorial also of the binding of Isaac (the patriarchal type of the future resurrection), imploring a renewal of that goodwill of the Heavenly Father, which acts of faithful submission and obedience evoked on Mount Moriah. It is finally a memorial of the divinely promised return of Israel to Jerusalem in the latter days, the rebuilding of the Holy City, the long expected coming of Messiah, and the glorious Resurrection of the sleeping dead." In connexion with this last point, an interesting piece of ceremonial outside the Synagogue, which the Jews in many places are in the habit of observing, may be men- tioned. It is customary for them on the eve of the New Year (regarded as a kind of All Souls' Day) to visit the graves of the dead, and there offer prayers and salutations to and for them in their last earthly resting place. The late Canon Kingsbury has mentioned that "a similar ^ Op. cit., ibid, and ref. ' Kingsbury, 7%« iV^Tf Year of the Synagogue, and its Lessons for the Church (Church and Synagogue), \o\. i, pp. 7 f. THE DAY OF ATONEMENT 391 rite to this is observed in the so-called evangehcal com- munities of various parts of Germany, on the last Sunday of the Christian year (the Sunday before Advent), when the congregations are often clad in mourning for friends who have departed during the last twelve-months, and special remembrance is made of them in the service." ' It has already been noted that the day is traditionally connected with the binding of Isaac. According to tradition it is the birthday of Isaac, and also of the prophet Samuel. Hence the Pentateuch lesson for the first day is Gen. 21 ; for the second Gen. 22, both being followed by the section in Numbers that enumerates the sacrifices of the Festival (Num. 29^"*) ; while the prophetic lesson for the first day is I Sam. i^-2^0 (the narrative of Sainuel's birth, together with Hannah's song). For the second day the Haftarah is taken from Jer. 312-20, g, prophecy dealing with the restoration of Israel. The dedication of the first ten days of the New Year to repentance is haggadistically connected with the com- mand (Exod 342*) : The first of the first-fruits of thy land thou shalt bring unto the house of the Lord thy God. In accordance with this the first ten days of the year are regarded as an offering of first-fruits to the Lord. III. The Day of Atonement (Yom Kippur). Once every year, on the last of the " ten days of peni- tence," with which the Jewish New Year opens (Tisri loth), the Jews foregather in their thousands in order to carry out to their utmost extent the rigorous demands which their religion makes, for the proper observance of the Day. As is well known the multitudes that assemble in the various synagogues and temporary places of worship requisitioned for the occasion, include many who are not known, at any other time, to pass the doors of a place of ' Kingsbury, The New Year of fke Synagogue, and its Lessons for the Church (Church and Synagogue), vol. i, p. 8. 392 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP worship, the year through. " Many who do not keep any of the Jewish customs still attend Synagogue and fast on this day." Such are known as " Yom Kippiir Jews," and thispact alone eloquently testifies to the supreme place occupied by " The Day " in the rehgious life of the modern Jew. What is it that gives the Day of Atonement this unique place in the life of a whole people ? How is the observ- ance regarded, what are the conceptions and the meaning attached to it by the throng of worshippers ? There must be some deep and all-compelhng motive at work, some profound feeling or conviction in action to make the strict and solemn observance of the Great Fast under modem conditions practically universal. In order to answer these questions aright, it is necessary to review briefly the past history of the Day. As everybody knows, it occupies a highly important place in the Levitical Law. It was, in fact, the supreme piaculous act of the Old Covenant. It will be remembered that elaborate details are given for its ceremonial observ- ance in the sixteenth chapter of Leviticus, which need not be discussed now. It wiU suffice here to add that in order to understand these fully it is necessary to supplement the details given in Leviticus by ethers preserved in the Mishnah. For instance, we learn from the latter authority that it was customary for the High Priest to prepare for his solemn functions on the great Day by going into retreat for the seven days immediately preceding. For our purpose, however, it is more important to observe (l) that like Rosh ha-shanah it possessed a Sabbatic character, abstention from all work being rigidly demanded ; (2) that it was to be kept as a strict fast, " from even unto even " (cf. Lev. 23*^ ^*) ; and (3) it was to be observed by all Israelites (" whatsoever soul shall not afflict himself — ^i.e., fast — shall be cut off from among his people," etc. Lev. 22^'"**), and was to be of perpetual obhgation (" it shall be a statute for ever EFFICACY OF THE DAY OF ATONEMENT 393 throughout your generations in all your dwellings " Lev. 23*^,^*). As its name implies, its supreme purpose was atonement, which was to be made by sacrifices for the High Priest, the priests, the Sanctuary, and the people. The last aspect of the ceremonial — ^that which concerns the people as a whole — ^has most importance for us. " On that day," runs the enactment, " shall atonement be made for you to cleanse you ; ye shall be clean from all your sins before Jehovah." And again : " It shall be an everlasting statute for you, that atonement shall be made for the children of Israel for all their sins once a year." Some scholars have questioned whether all kinds of sin are included in the atoning efficacy of the ceremonial. It has been argued that " only unintentional sins were included in this annual forgiveness." ^ But, as Mr. Montefiore has pointed out, " By the letter of the law it was seemingly implied that the guilt of all sins, of what kind soever, be they ritual or moral, voluntary or involuntary, would be wiped out and atoned for by the ceremony of the Atonement Day." ^ In its original institution the Day of Atonement was essentially bound up with the system and theory of Levitical sacrifice. It was instituted, as Mr Montefiore has pointed out, " for the community, not for the individual, in order to cleanse Jahveh's (Jehovah's) nation and land from the residual taint of individual sins that may have been supposed to remain even after legal and ritual purification had already been provided for in each case. For only so could the nation and community preserve that ceremonial purity which would enable Jahveh to continue dwelhng in their midst." How essentially imperfect, deficient and unsatisfying 1 So Kuenen as quoted in Montefiore, Hibbert Lectures, p. 335. 2 Hibbert Lectures, ibid. 394 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP such a ceremonial system of atonement reaUy is must have often been apparent to the more spiritually minded among the Jews, even before the destruction of the Temple and the consequent cessation of all sacrifice. The higher view is powerfully stated, from the Christian standpoint, by the writer of the Epistle to the Hebrews. And when the great catastrophe came, and the Temple with aU its elaborate ritual of sacrifice was finally swept away, the logic of events would seem to have triumphantly vincicated the truth of the Christian contention, that the Levitical system was essentially transitional to something higher. With the disappearance of the sacrifices the conclusion appears inevitable that the Day of Atone- ment has become a thing of the past. If it survived how could it be regarded as ansrthing but a meaningless anachronism ? This conclusion the later Judaism refused to draw. With curious and almost pathetic tenacity it has retained the ancient observance, and, as we have seen, no rehgious celebration is more fondly cherished by modem Jews. What, then, is the theory underlying the modern observance ? The Rabbis taught that " charity or repentance was an accepted substitute or equivalent for sacrifice." Only with this a certain atoning efficacy was given to the Day itself. The following quotation wiU illustrate the Rabbinical view : At this time, when there is no temple, and we have no altar, there is no atonement but repentance. Repentance atones for aU transgressions, yea, though a man be wicked aU his days, and repent at last, none of his wickedness is mentioned to him, for it is said, " As for the wickedness of the wicked, he shall not fall thereby, in the day that he turneth from his wickedness" (Ezek. 33'"). The Day of Atonement itself also atones for them that repent, for it is said, " For on that day he shall make an atonement for you " (Lev. 16'"). ' The Rabbis rightly insist, again and again, on the value I Maimonides as cited above, pp. 331 f. SUPERSTITION REGARDING THE DAY 395 the indispensability of true, deep, heart-felt repentance. Only they fatally hampered their theory by assigning together with this a certain atoning efficacy to the Day itself. The consequence has been that a mass of super- stition has, as Mr. Montefiore admits, " gradually surrounded" the celebration of the Day in the Synagogue.' As has already been pointed out,^ the first ten days of the New Year have come to be regarded by the Jews as a time when God passes special judgments upon His creatures, and goes through an annual process of judging and forgiving. According to the Mishnah, " Repentance atones for light offences then and there (i.e., God pardons them immediately), with regard to heavy offences repent- ance makes them hang in the balance until the Day comes and atones for them." * In other words, the atoning efficacy of the Day itself is required in order to secure the Divine forgiveness. Mr. Montefiore explains that " no more is implied than that there is a formal suspension of forgiveness between the repentance and the Day. Practically, forgiveness is assured by repentance ; formally, it is suspended until the actual Day arrives. Otherwise" (he pathetically ex- claims) " what would there be left for the Day to do ? " As a special Day has been reserved for Atonement, and as a special atoning efficacy has been made to inhere in the Day itself, it is not to be wondered at if multitudes of Jews assign a superstitious efficacy to formal and acknowledged repentance on this particular Day. Each individual may be " only too willing," to use Mr. Montefiore's words, " to apply to himself the words of the Scripture : On that day shall he make an atonement for you, to cleanse you that ye may he clean from all your sins before Jehovah." ^ Op. cit., pp. 523. " See p. 388 f. ' Yoma, viii, 8. 396 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP It must not be forgotten, however, that the Rabbis are alive to some of the dangers connected with the observance The Mishnah is careful to teach that the ceremonies of the Day of Atonement are ineffectual unless accompanied by repentance. " Death and the Day of Atonement work atonement " (one passage runs), " where there is repentance." ^ " If a man says," we are told in the same context, " I wiU sin and repent, I will sin and repent," Heaven does not give him the means of practising repentance ; and if he says " I wiU sin, and the Day of Atonement will bring atonement," the Day of Atonement will bring him no atonement." * Further, we are told in another passage that " the Day of Atonement absolves from sins against God, but not from sins against a fellow man until his companion be reconciled." ^ On this account it has become customary to terminate all feuds and disputes on the eve of the Day. " Even the souls of the dead are included in the commun- ity of those pardoned on the Day of Atonement. It is customary for children to have public mention made in the Synagogue of their departed parents, and to make charitable gifts on behalf of their souls. But no amount of charity will avail the soul of a wicked man." * We are now in a position to consider very briefly the actual celebration of the Day as practised in the modem S5magogue. There are altogether five services on the Day of Atone- ment, viz., (i) Evening Prayer [Ma'anh), recited on the evening of the ninth of Tisri, after sunset, when according to Jewish reckoning the Day begins ; (2) Morning Prayer {Shacharith) ; (3) The Additional (Musaf) ; (4) Afternoon Prayer {Minchah) ; and (5) Closing Prayer {Ne'Uah), > Yoma, viii, 8. ' Yoma, viii, 9. » T. B. Yoma, 87a. (cf. JE, ii, 288a). » JE, ii, 288a (with reff.). THE " AMIDAH "-PRAYER 397 The services numbered here (2) to (5) are held continuotisly, from morning to sunset, on Tisri the tenth.i The structure of these services follows the outline of the corresponding services for ordinary occasions, with certain modifications and additions. The most important of the modifications concern the AmUah-Vra,yei:, and can be partially seen in Singer, pp. 255 f., esp. pp. 256 f., while the additions consist mainly of penitential prayers [Selichoth), and forms of confession (Widdiiy).^ The part of the services in which the characteristic notes of the Day receive their fullest and most intense expression is undoubtedly the central Benediction of the M4saf (Additional) Amidah-Fray&r. This paragraph alone occupies no less than seventy-two pages in the Festival Prayer-Book. * It begins with a beautiful prayer for the Synagogue Reader, which the following quotation will illustrate : — Reader : O God, and the God of our fathers, be Thou with the mouths of those whom Thy people Israel have deputed to stand in Thy presence to pray and supplicate for Thy people, the House of Israel. Teach them what they shall say, instruct them what they shall speak, answer their request, and cause them to know how to glorify Thee. May they walk in the Ught of Thy countenance ; may they bend the knee unto Thee, and may the utterance of their mouths bring blessings on Thy people, and may aU be blessed with the blessing of Thy mouth. They conduct Thy people into Thy presence, and they approach into the midst of them ; the eyes of Thy people are fixed on them, and their eyes do anxiously long for Thee. . . . Congregation : May they not falter with their tongue nor be entangled in their speech, so that their congregation who 1 Even in the Reform Synagogues the services are, practically without exception, continuous throughout the day. ' The complete prayers for the various services of the day are very voluminous, and include a number of poetical pieces. They can be read in extenso in the Festival Prayer-Books. In De Sola's Edition of the Festival Prayers the services for the Day of Atonement occupy two whole volumes, as also in the new ed. of the Festival Prayers pubUshed by Routledge. » Cf. De Sola, vol. v, pp. 46-117 (=Routledge's new ed. pp. 155- 191). 398 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP confide in them should through them be ashamed : suffer not their mouth to utter a word that is contrary to Thy will : for those who are favoured of Thee, O Lord our God, are indeed favoured, and those on whom Thou hast mercy are treated with the tenderest afiEection. . . . i This is followed by a summary account of Biblical history from Adam to Aaron. The whole Temple Service of the Day of Atonement is then minutely described, the most interesting feature of which, perhaps, is the three forms of confession used by the High Priest — for himself and his household, for himself and the priesthood, and lastly for the whole people — which were actually employed in the Temple-services. The first of these — uttered by the High Priest on laying his hands upon the head of a young bullock which was offered as his sin-offering — ran as follows : — O Lord, I have sinned, I have trespassed, I have done wrong before Thee, I and my house, O Lord : grant atone- ment for the sins, trespasses and wrongs which I have committed before Thee, I and my house, as it is written in the law (Torah) of Thy servant Moses : " For on this day he shall atone for you to cleanse you from all your sins before the Lord " (Lev. i6'»). In each of the three confessions the High Priest pro- nounced the ineffable name at which the congregation " kneeled and prostrated themselves, falling on their faces and sa3dng, ' Blessed be the name of His glorious majesty for ever and ever.' " * After an elaborate descrip- tion of the other sacrificial details, a composition described as the prayer of the High Priest is then recited. This is supposed to have been uttered by him on the successful completion of the sacrifices and begins thus : — May it be acceptable in Thy presence, O Lord our God, and the God of our fathers, that this year we have just entered may be to us and to all Thy people Israel a year in which Thou mayest open the treasuries of Thy blessing ; a year of plenty and blessing ; a year of good decrees in our favour proceeding from Thee, etc., etc. 1 De Sola, v, pp. 49 f. (=new ed. pp. 158). ' De Sola, op. cit., p. 54 (=new ed. p. 161), THE " AMID AH "-PRAYER 399 This is followed by a rapturous description of the beautiful appearance of the High Priest, based upon . Ecclesiasticus 46 foil. The lines are chanted by the Reader and closed in each case by a refrain said by the congregation. Reader : As Heaven's 'expanded canopy (ref.) was the High Priest's appearance ! and so on. Now the plaintive note is heard : Happy the eye that beheld all these — for, verily, to hear only of them afflicts our soul ! Happy the eye that saw our Temple, and the joyful assembly of our congregation — for, verily, to hear only of them afflicts our soul ! But the iniquities of our fathers have caused the desolation of the Temple, And our sins have prolonged the period of our captivity ! may the rehearsal of these things procure forgiveness for us. And the affliction of our soul be the means of our pardon ! Thou hast, therefore, in Thine abundant mercy given us this Day of Atonement, And this day of pardoning iniquity — for the forgiveness of iniquity, and the expiation of transgression ! ^ Temple, altar, and priest have been reft away, troubles have multiphed, and the contemplation of present misery only serves to intensify the sense of loss, and to quicken the desire for the re-establishment of the ancient glories and ritual. With an ardent expression of hope and supplication for their restoration this section of the Amidah ends. The technical name for this part of > In the reform ritual (i.e., the ritual of the Reform Synagogues) expression is given to the view of an " atonement for mankind by the sacrifice which Israel, as the martyr priest, is destined to bring." JE. i, 76b. 400 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the prayer is Ab6ddh = " Service," because it recites the manner in which the Atonement Service was conducted by the High Priest in the Temple at Jerusalem. As such it has been set to specially impressive cadences which aptly express — especially in the most solemn parts, as when the three confessions of the High Priest are recited — the religious emotions roused by the service.^ The most characteristic note of the services for the Day is struck in the various forms of Confession of sin {Widduy). The most frequently recurring of these is ap- pended to the Amidah-Fvayev for each service, and opens thus : Our God and God of our fathers, let our -prayer come before Thee ; hide not Thyself from our supplication, for we are not arrogant and stiff-necked, that we should say before Thee, Lord our God, and God of our fathers, we are righteous and have not sinned. Yea, verily, we have sinned ! We have trespassed, we have been faithless, we have robbed, we have spoken basely, we have committed iniquity, we have wrought unrighteousness, we have been presumptuous, we have done violence, we have forged lies, we have counselled evil, we have spoken falsely, we have scoffed, we have revolted, we have blasphemed we have been rebellious, we have acted perversely, we have transgressed, we have persecuted, we have been stiff-necked, we have done wickedly, we have corrupted ourselves, we have committed abomination, we have gone astray, and we have led astray. May it then be Thy Will, Lord our God and God of our fathers, to forgive us for all our sins, to pardon us for all our iniquities, and to grant us remission for all our transgressions. For the sin which we have committed before Thee under compulsion, or of our own free will : And for the sin which we have committed before Thee in hardening of the heart : ' For an account of this music see the Art. ABODA, Music of, in the JE i, p. 76 f. "KOL NIDRE" 401 And for the sin, etc.''- For all these, God of forgiveness, forgive us, pardon us, grant us remission. The opening service of the Day of Atonement, i.e., the service held in the evening of Tisri the ninth, is known as Kol Nidre { = All Vows). This name is derived from a formula of remission of vows which is recited immediately before the service. This, however, is preceded by another declaration, of which mention must be made. Just before nightfall " the two most learned and reputable men of the congregation stand up with the leader (reader) and aU three say thrice : " By the opinion of God and the opinion of the Assembly, as given in the session on high, and in the session below, we give leave to pray with the transgressors." ^ The original meaning of this declaration must have been that the three, forming a Beth Din or Court with power to absolve from the ban, gave leave to the excom- municated to join in the prayers of the congregation. It is now, however, an empty form. Then follows the Kol Nidre, which runs thus : All vows and prohibitions, and bans, and devotions in sacrifice, and vowings by nickname,^ and penalties and oaths, which we have vowed, or which we have sworn, or which we have put under ban, or which we have forbidden to ourselves {from this Day of Atonement to the next Day of Atonement, may it come in peace) ; we have repented of all of them ; let all of them be dissolved, abandoned, put at rest, be void, and be annulled, not valid, nor of force : our vows are no vows, our prohibitions are no prohibitions, our oaths are no oaths. 1 Of these clauses — ^beginning with the words " And for the sin : " — there are altogether forty-four (two for each letter of the alphabet). For the whole confession, see Singer, pp. 258-263. ' Cf. Dembitz, op, cit., p. 175. * i.e. vows made in mutilated words like Konam for Corhan (sacrifice) because such are valid (Dembitz). 27— (2417) 402 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP This is sung three times by the Cantor. Then he and the congregation say together thrice : And all the congregation of the children of Israel shall be forgiven, and the stranger that sojourneth among them ; for as to all the people it was done unwittingly (Num. The terms of the declaration have reference to the classification in Niim. 30, where the abrogation of particular vows, under certain conditions, is set forth. The Rabbis discouraged the practice of making vows, and established a rule that a man might make a declaration at the beginning of the year by which vows made that year would be void (unless in making the vow it was expMcitly excepted from the operation of the declaration). This custom was formerly carried out privately, but has now been transferred to the Eve of the Day of Atonement, and altered into a general declaration embracing the community. The vows intended are those affecting the personal welfare or comfort of the individual vowing, and legal obliga- tions, of course, do not fall within the scope of the declaration. 1 After this declaration the first of the Atonement -services begins (Ma'artb) and is terminated by the recitation of the prayer AMnu Malkenu (see Singer, pp. 55-57). On the following afternoon the last of the services of the Day — and the one which is peculiar to it — the Ne'tlah (" conclusion ") is read, and this also includes towards the end Ahinu MalkenH, which is followed by a most impressive ceremony — the solemn recitation of the 1 " It was probably intended as a warning against hurtful vows which would probably be entered upon during the excitement of the most solemn day of the year, and would be against the third commandment, but the enemies of the Jews have interpreted it as releasing them from the consequences of a legal oath, to which, of course, it has no application, having reference only to vows laid upon oneself in regard to one's own character " [Jewish Year Book, 1896, p. 164). LESSONS FOR THE DAY 403 prayers said by every good Jew with his last breath when on the point of death. It consists of the first line of Shema', said by the Reader and Congregation once : Hear, Israel : the Lord our God, the Lord is One, followed by Blessed be His name, whose glorious Kingdom is for ever and ever (repeated three times), And this by The Lord He is God! (repeated seven times). Then the Shdfdr is sounded and the great Day of Atonement is over {Ne'tlah, being finished about sundown). In connexion with the ceremony just described it is interesting to note that many Jews attend Synagogue on this day arrayed in the shroud (sargonas) in which they will be buried. It should also be noted that the congregation wear the Talifh or praying-shawl at the Kol Nidre service. Ex- in this instance the Talith is never worn at the evening service save by the minister, or by a mourner who says Kaddish. The Lessons for the Day are the following : (i) from the Pentateuch (Torah) : Lev. i6 (account of the ceremonial of the Day of Atonement), and Num. 29'"^^ (the sacri- fices of the Day). (2) From the Prophets (Haftarah) : Isa. 57^*-58^* (on the true fast). These are read at Morning Prayer {Shacharith). At Afternoon Prayer (Minchah) Lev. 18 (on forbidden marriages), and the Book of Jonah (on the efficacy of repentance) and Micah 7I8-20 are read. IV. The Fasts. Fasting ^ is referred to in the Bible sometimes as a sign 1 Hebrew tsUrn : the phrase " afiElict the soul " (Hebrew inndh nefesh) = to fast : hence is derived the later Hebrew word ta'dnUh lit. affliction (i.e., fasting). 404 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP of mourning, sometimes as an act of humiliation in the face of impending danger. It may be of a purely private and voluntary character, or a fixed public institution. Fast-days of the latter kind are comparatively rare in the Jewish sacred calendar. The only fast-day prescribed in the Law is the Day of Atonement. After the Return from Babylon four other regular fast-days were instituted in memory of various sad events connected with the destruction of Jerusalem and the exile. These are aUuded to in Zech. 8^^ as " the fast of the fourth month, and the fast of the fifth, and the fast of the seventh, and the fast of the tenth." Of these " the fast of the tenth " = Tebeth lo, and commemorates the beginning of the siege of Jerusalem ; " the fast of the fourth month " = Tammuz 17, and com- memorates the breach made in the walls ; " the fast of the fifth " = Ab 9 (" The Black Fast "), commemorating the destruction of the First and Second Temples ; and "the fast of the seventh " = Tisri 3, called " The Fast of Gedahah " ; it commemorates the assassination of the Jewish Viceroy of that name who had been left behind in Jerusalem by Nebuchadnezzar (cf. Jer. 41). These fasts are observed in orthodox synagogues, which conform to Rabbinical law, by the reading of special lessons. Ex. 32^^"^* and 34^~^" are read both in the morning and afternoon services ; in the afternoon Is. 55*-56^ is read as the Haftarah (prophetic lesson) on all fasts. As has already been mentioned, all these fasts begin at daybreak and last till evening. The fast on the 9th of Ab calls for special remark. Like the Day of Atonement it is observed strictly for twenty- four hours (from evening until evening). The lessons for this day are in the morning Deut. 42S-40 a^jj jgj-. 8i3_g23. in the afternoon Exdd. 32^^"^* and 341"!'' with Is. 558-56* as Haftarah (as on other fasts). At the morn- ing service talith and tefilUn (phylacteries) are not wom,^ 1 They are, however, put on for the afternoon service. " THE FAST OF ESTHER " 405 as a sign of sorrow ; and during the day the book of Lamentations and the Book of Job are read, and various elegies called Kinoth ("lamentations ") are recited. The day is fraught with sad and painful memories for the Jewish race. The following events are traditionally associ- ated with it : the decree that the Jews who went out of Egypt should not enter Palestine ; the destruction of the Temple for the first and second time ; the capture of Bethar (Bar Kokba's stronghold), and the plowing of Jerusalem with a plowshare (after the suppression of Bar Kokba's revolt). The three weeks intervening between the 17th of Tammuz and the 9th of Ab are observed by many pious Jews as a sort of Lenten period (in some cases only the ten days immediately preceding 9th of Ab are so observed). They abstain from meat and pleasures of various sorts. The giving of charity on fast days was much encouraged. Besides the above the " Fast of Esther " (commemor- ating Esther's fasting mentioned in Est. 9^1 ; cf. 4^' 1*) is kept by some as an additional fast on Adar 13 (or in a leap year on the 13th of Adar Sheni).' The " Fast of the First -bom," kept by the first -bom on the eve of the Pass- over, must also be mentioned in this connexion. It com- memorates the miraculous deliverance of the first-born of the Israelites in Egypt, when those of the Egyptians were slain. The custom of fasting on the day of one's marriage has already been mentioned ; the anniversary of the death of a father or mother (" Jahrzeit ") is similarly observed. Some pious Jews fast every Monday and Thursday in memory of the destruction of the Temple, the burning of the Torah, and the desecration of God's name (cf. S. Luke 18^^, " I fast twice in the week ").^ The Monday, Thursday, and Monday following the feasts of Passover and Tabernacles are recognized ^ This used to be observed by certain Jews on three days, viz., on the first and second Mondays, and the Thursday following Purim. ^ Cf. The Teaching of the Twelve Apostles, VIII, i: "But let not your fasts be with the hypocrites (i.e. the Jews) ; for they fast on the second day of the week and on the fifth ; but ye shall fast the fourth day and the preparation (i.e. Friday)." 406 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP fast-days in many Jewish communities. Their original intention was to atone for any sins committed during the holidays. To these may be added (the day before the new moon, called " Uttle yom kippur," which is specially observed by some congregations. Finally, special fast- days, observed with much solemn cceremonial, have from time to time been imposed by the synagogue on the community in face of any threatening danger or calamity. Such fasts were always held on Mondays, and Thursdays. Private fasting has always prevailed to some extent among the Jews, though discouraged by the Rabbis. Of the fixed fast-days the Day of Atonement alone can fall on the Sabbath. If any of the others should happen to coincide with the Sabbath its celebration is postponed till the following day. Private or pubhc occasional fasts are not allowable in the month of Nisan, during the holidays, on new moons, or on the minor festivals. CHAPTER XXI. Some Modern Religious Rites and Customs among THE Jews, and their Origin. Circumcision — Redemption of the First-born — The Dietary Laws— Kapparath-Schlag — Peyoth — Phylacteries — Praying - Shawl — Swaying the Body — The Marriage Chuppah — The Door-post Symbol. Many of the religious customs of the Jews, a number of which are kept up even at the present day among the orthodox, offer fascinating subjects of study to the archaeologist, as weU as to the student of folk-lore. But our main reason in drawing attention to some of these here is to present an object-lesson in the antiquity of the Jewish religion. In these customs we have an unique example of a modem religious community in touch with a remote antiquity ; and the study of them affords a very interesting insight into what is to the majority of mankind, aU the world over, one of the most important factors in the rationale of religion, namely, its visible expression. While we may wonder at the in- congruity of modem civilized communities keeping up customs which, in some instances at all events, are ex- pressive of ideas proper to primitive man, it is only fair to remember that among those who practise these customs there is probably not a soul who realizes their original signification ; " it is the property of religious customs, which have become traditional, to perpetuate themselves even when they no longer answer to contemporaneous ideas." ^ What has been said does not apply to all the customs and rites which are to be considered, and even in respect to those to which it does apply, it is well 1 Reville, Prolegomena of the History of Religions, p. 132. 407 408 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP to remember that the same might with justice be urged in the case of some forms of Christian behef and practice ; but it is in Judaism that we find the most conspicuous survivals. I. Circumcision. In accordance with the command given in Gen. 171", every Jewish male is circumcized, and the rite is regarded as the sign of a covenant made with God. The origin of circumcision, therefore, is believed by Jews to be found in a command given by God to Abraham. But while the Old Testament itself offers conflicting testimony on this point (compare together Gen. J710-12. Ex. 425-2*; Jos. 56), and the idea itself is revolting, the fact of the very wide prevalence of the rite is sufficient to show that its origin must be due to something very different ; it was practised by the ancient Arabs — the great Arabian peninsulg. is the primeval home of the Semite, and therefore circumcision must have been practised many centuries, perhaps milleniums, before the time of Abraham — by native African tribes, by the aborigines of Australia, by the Pol5mesians, and by many Central American races ; its extreme antiquity is further witnessed to by the Old Testament in that we are here told that the rite was performed with a flint (Ex. 4^5 ; Jos. 5^). What its real origin was is stiU a matter of controversy among scholars, for it is very difficult to get at the back of the mind of primitive man. There are five theories : that it was a tribal mark, that it was of the nature of an offering to the deity, that hygienic motives lay at the root of it, that it was done to secure life in the world to come, and that it was a necessary preliminary to marriage. This variety of theory shows how complicated the problem is, for each theory is supported by scholarly and very weighty arguments. The main point, however; about the custom among the Jews is that it is a religious observance, and herein REDEMPTION OF THE FIRST-BORN 409 it is, at all events at the present day, almost unique. ^ In accordance with the command given in Gen. 1712, the child is circumcized on the eighth day after birth (cf. Luke 1^9, 2^1; Acts f ; Gal. 4*; Phil. 3*), and it is usual to give a name at the same time (cf. Luke 2^^).^ At the beginning of the Christian Era the ceremony was performed in the house, later on the child was brought to the Synagogue for the purpose, nowadays the earlier custom is in vogue, and the minister and the Mohel (the certificated official who performs the rite) come to the home.* According to Rabbinical teaching Circumcision sawc^i^es, and it is this sanctification which differentiates the Jews from the rest of the world in the sight of God ; it is said that if a Gentile kept the whole of the Law, but was not circumcized it would profit him nothing {Debarim rabbah, c. i). The term "Covenant People" is apphed because the Jews have observed the sign of the covenant. The fact of having been circumcized is believed to be meritorious per se in the sight of God. II. Redemption of the First-born. In'accordance with the command given in Exodus 13", All the first-born of man among thy sons shalt thou redeem, it has always been the custom among the Jews to " redeem " the first-bom child, provided that the first-bom is a son ; that is to say, if the first-bom child is a daughter, and the second a son, then there is no need to redeem him ; the command only applies in cases where a mother's first child is a boy. This ceremony, which takes place in the S5magogue, is technically known as Pidyon ha-ben, " Redemption of the (first-bom) son " ; * 1 See Ploss, Das Kind in Branch und Sitte der Volker, i, pp. 299 f . « Girls receive names on the day of birth. » See Singer, pp. 304-307. ' See Luke 2"^"^*' "'• ". For the practice, among modern Arabs, of " redeeming " their children, see Curtiss, Primitive Semitic Religion To-day, pp. 194-204. 410 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP and it has to be performed thirty days after birth, this being the command contained in Num. i8 1* ; the price of redemption is five selainp or shekels, equivalent to fifteen shillings of our money ; this payment is Ukewise commanded in the Old Testament (Num. 3*', iS^^). In the Synagogue-service the father of the child, after having made the declaration that the child is his first-born son and having acknowledged the obligation to redeem him, places before the Cohen (" Priest ") the redemption- money ; whereupon the Cohen asks : " Which wouldst thou rather, give me thy first-bom son, the first-bom of his mother, or redeem him for five selaim, which thou art bound to give according to the Law ? " The father replies : " I desire rather to redeem my son, and here thou hast the value of his redemption, which I am bound to give according to the Law." When the Cohen takes the redemption-money, he holds it over the head of the child, and says : " This is instead of that, this in com- mutation for that, this in remission for that " ; and after having pronounced a Benediction, while placing his hand on the child's head, the service is brought to an end.' When one inquires into the meaning of this service, there are several questions that suggest themselves : Why, and from whom, or what, has the child to be redeemed ? Why is it only the first-horn male-child that has to be redeemed ? Why are female children not redeemed ? To answer these questions adequately would take too long here ; we can only deal with them very briefly. The whole idea of this " redemption," or " buying back again," is the mitigation of an extremely barbarous, but very ancient, custom, which was at one time universal among the Semites, namely|the offering- up, as a sacrifice to the deity, of the first-bom son ; if it be asked why this was done, the answer will be seen in the following extract : 1 Singer, pp. 308, 309. ORIGIN OF THE RITE 411 One of the fundamental ideas with regard to Jehovah in early Israel was that of His being owner of the land, and consequently lord also of all that the land brought forth and of all that lived upon it (Lev. 25^^ ; Ps. 50"""). Closely connected with this idea was a further one to the effect that the land was held in tenure ; Jehovah was the landowner, His people the tenants ; but their tenancy depended solely on the Will of Jehovah (Deut. 2o3«, etc.).^ As lord of the land and giver of all that it produced, tribute was due to Him ; this tribute took the form of the offering of first-fruits.^ Not only, how- ever, was the land Jehovah's possession, but the people who lived upon it, and upon its produce, were hkewise His ; this would follow naturally by virtue of Jehovah's overlordship. Therefore, just as Jehovah, being owner of the land, received the first-fruits of its produce as tribute due to Him, so, being also owner of the people, did He receive the first-bom as, in the same way, a tribute due to Him. This is not definitely stated in the Bible, but the notices of child-sacrifice lead us to infer that at some early period the rite of the sacrifice of the first-bom was performed, and the analogy of the offering up of the firstlings of the flock points to a similar usage with regard to man (Exod. 13^, iz^^, 3420) ; moreover, the prevalence of the practice among ethnologicaUy alHed races makes it in a high degree probable that originally the descendants of Abram sacrificed their first-bom as a tribute to the Deity. Some examples of Semitic peoples offering up their first-bom sons are : the Moabites (2 Kings 3") ; the early Arabs (see WeUhausen, Reste arabischen Heidenthums, pp. 115, 116) ; 1 This Old Testament conception is illustrated in the Gospels by the parable of the Wicked Husbandmen (Matt. 22*' ff. and parallel passages ; cf. also Mark 13'*). ' It will, of course, be understood that this was adapted to agricultural life from the earlier nomadic life with its flocks and herds (cf., Nowack, Hebrdische Archdologie, ii, pp. 147 fi). 412 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP the Canaanites (this is shown abundantly by the recent excavations on the site of ancient Gezer by the " Palestine Exploration Fund," see Quarterly Statement for the years 1903 a. passim), the Phoenicians (Rawlinson, History of Phoenicia, ch. xi).i Thus the first-bom son was regarded as the property of Jehovah, from Whom he had to be " redeemed," or bought. The reason why only this one child was to be redeemed goes back to the ancient ideas of the first being the best, and the representative of the rest. The reason why first-bom girls need not be redeemed is because, in Rehgion, fe- males do not count ; see further on the point § ix of this Chapter. III. The Dietary Laws. In accordance with the long lists, in Lev. 11, Deut. 14, of " unclean " animals which the Israehtes were forbidden to eat, it has been a religious custom among orthodox Jews in all ages to abstain from the use of certain foods ; and the laws which embody the prohibitions are called the " Dietary Laws." The Rabbis explained these commands to abstain from " unclean " food in the following way : " These commands were given with the highest of all objects — for the sake of the purity which obedience to them imparts to the moral Hfe " ; ^ or again, " The ideal Jew does not say, ' I have no desire to eat swine's flesh, no desire to indulge any sensual cravings ; I desire, but I will conquer the desire for the sake of my Father which is in Heaven.' For to keep aloof from sin is the true separateness,* and only to such as painfully wrestle with temptation cometh the Kingdom 1 Oesterley in Hastings Diet, of Christ and the Gospels, i, 597, and compare the same writer's art. in the Proceedings of the Soc- of Bibl. Archaeology, xxiv, pp. 253 ff. ' Bereshith Rabbah, c. xliv, quoted by M. Joseph, Judaism as Creed and Life, p. 184. -" ' The idea of " separateness " in Hebrew connotes that of " sanctification." THE DIETARY LAWS 413 of God." ' Later on, Maimonides taught that they were intended as a training in self-mastery ; that they habituate men to curb carnal desires ; that they rebuke the temper that makes sensual pleasure an aim in Ufe. More cautiously, Nachmanides said that these ordinances of the Pentateuch, though their purpose may not be explicitly set forth, are " meant for the good of man " ; they are either " to keep us aloof from something hurtful, or to educate us in goodness," ^ according to a modem teacher. Another authoritative Jewish teacher says : " The Dietary Laws. . . may help to maintain Jewish separateness ; they may preserve the idea of Israel's consecration ; they may exert a powerful influence upon personal purity. They are even more than this — they are vital objects. The consciousness of being an elect people, and the power of setting an example to the world of personal holiness, are ahke essential to the fulfilment of our Divinely-appointed errand. Every law that strengthens these qualities merits respect and obedience. It is a law which still fulfils a great purpose. It is a Hving law, and therefore a law that deserves to live." * These are the reasons given fdr observing the " Dietary Laws " ; the original reason was, however, a stronger one, and this may perhaps be explained best in the following way. There were two sets of ideas in the antique world of thought — both of which come from a common ancestry, most probably — which have to be taken into consideration in this connexion. In the first place Totemism ; it is quite impossible to deal here with this subject, it must suffice to say that this refers to the belief that different clans are descended from different animals (sometimes also from plants) ; the particular animal from which a clan was believed to be descended was therefore " taboo " to all the members 1 M. Joseph, op. cit. p. 184. ' Schechter, Studies in Judaism, p. 151. ' M. Joseph, op. cit., p. 185. 414 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP of that clan ; they would not harm it, much less kill it or eat it^, because, according to the ideas of the times, they would be damaging the hfe of the clan if they did so, and aU the members of the clan would suffer in con- sequence ; the animal in question was the " Totem "- animal. The fundamental principle of " Totemism " is blood-relationship between an animal species and a tribe or clan ; the latter was then called after the former. Animal names for tribes in the Old Testament are not unknown, e.g., the Calebites = " Dogs" (And Efhah, Caleb's concubine, bare Haran, i Chron. 2**, see Josh. 14^* ; I Sam. 30", etc.) ; we know from other sources that the dog was holy to the Harranians, who offered sacrificial gifts to it (cf. Is. 66*) ; again, we read of the proper name Achbor = " Mouse," in Gen. 36*^, and others. Numbers of parallels are to be found all over the world among savage tribes, in which there can be no shadow of doubt that the animal-name of the tribe denotes descent from such animal ; " that the names are mere accidents or mere metaphors is an assumption which can seem plausible only to those who do not know savage ways of thought." * It is therefore, in part, due to unconscious remnants of Totemistic conceptions that the prohibitions, referred to above, find their place in the Old Testament. But, though connected with this, there is probably a more immediate cause. All gods and goddesses in ancient times had animals who were " holy " to them; the origin, of this is probably to be sought, in part, in the theory of deified Totems ; but whether this was so or not is immaterial for our present purpose ; the fact remains that certain animals were " holy " to certain gods or goddesses ; thus the hare was " holy " to Astarte (Ashtoreth), * the pig was " holy " to Attis, » Excepting on very special occasions. • Robertson Smith, Kinship . . ., p. 237. ? See The Churchman, " Why was the hare considered unclean among the Israelites ? " Dec, 1903, pp. 146 ff. THE "SHECHITAH" 415 fish were " holy " to Atargatis, and so on ; and to eat of the " holy " animal was to profess allegiance to its deity. So that, to express it quite briefly, the pro- hibitions contained in Lev. ii, Deut 14 were — apart from aU original significations — in reality put forth in the interests of Jehovah-worship to the exclusion of heathen cults. And this reason was an all-sufficient one ; for that the prohibitions were sorely needed, will be clear to any one who realizes how prone, according to the witness of the Old Testament, the Israehtes were to take part in alien cults. The " Dietary Laws " will thus be seen to have a very long history behind them. In connexion with this subject mention may be made of what is called the Shechitah, i.e., the ritual slaughtering of animals which are used for food. The Shochet {" slaugh- terer ") is required to pass a severe examination in all the laws and usages of his calling before he can exercise his functions — even after having entered upon his duties he is required to keep himself au fait by reviewing the laws of Shechitah at least once a month. A special knife (Challaph) is used for slaughtering which has to be at least twice as long as the width of the throat of the animal about to be slaughtered. A prayer is said before the animal is killed : " Blessed art Thou. . . who sanctified us with His commandments and com- manded us concerning slaughtering." The act of slaughtering according to the law consists in severing the windpipe ; and the underlying idea of the whole process is seen from the fact that some of the blood which has been shed has to be covered with earth (cf . Lev. 17^*) and the following words have to be pronounced : " Blessed art Thou. . . Who has sanctified us with His command- ments and commanded us to cover blood with earth." The real purpose is to remove the blood, in accordance with the command given in Lev. 726,27^ ^^^^ yg shall eat no manner of blood, whether it he of fowl or of beast. . . ; the reason for this is given in Lev. 17^^'"; 416 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP The life of the flesh is in the blood , . . it is the blood that maketh atonement by reason of the life. . . For as to the life of all flesh, the blood thereof is all one with the life thereof. . . for the life of all flesh is the blood thereof. So that the reason why it was forbidden to taste blood was because by doing so the hfe of the animal would be absorbed by the eater, and this would mean the par- taking of the nature of the animal ; for the same reason " things strangled " were forbidden, because there was no possibility of the blood flowing away (cf. Acts 15^" ^', 21^^). That is, very briefly, the origii^ and raison d'etre of the Shechitah. IV. " Kapparath-Schlag." This name illustrates what is aptly termed the "Jar- gon " of the vast majority of the Jews at the present day ; " Kapparath " (correctly " Kapparah ") signifies a " means of atonement," from the Hebre\y root meaning " to cover," i.e., sin (cf. Yom Kiffur, " day of Atone- ment ") ; " Schlag " is the ordinary German word for a " blow." The expression is employed in reference to an animal used as " a sort of vicarious sacrifice on the day previous to the Day of Atonement. As a rule, a cock is taken by a male, and a hen by a female person ; and after the recitation of Ps. 107^'"^" and Job 33^^"^*, the fowl is swung round the head three times while the right hand is put upon the animal's head. At the same time the following is thrice said in Hebrew : ' This be my substitute, my vicarious offering, my atonement. This cock [or hen] shaU meet death, but I shall find a long and pleasant life of peace.' After this the animal is slaughtered and given to the poor, or, what is deemed better, is eaten by the owners while the value of it is given to the poor." ^ Whenever possible a white fowl is used, because of the words in Is. i**, > JE, vii, 435. " PEYOTH " 417 Though your sins be as scarlet, they shall be as white as snow. . . ; sometimes a ram is slaughtered instead, in reference to the ram caught in a thicket (Gen. 22^^). The ceremony is interesting as being the solitary remnant among modem European Jews of their ancient sacrificial system ; the cock is the modem counterpart of the scapegoat. V. " Peyoth." Among some of the ultra-orthodox Jews, especially in Poland, it is customary for the men to wear hair- ringlets {Peyoth, often pronounced pyus) ; these are long curls which hang down at each ear. This is done in accordance with the command in Lev. 19^', Ye shall not round the corners of your heads, neither shalt thou mar the corners of thy beard; cf. Jer. 9^* (v. 25 in Heb.). No reason is given by modem Jews for this custom other than the Biblical prohibition ; but this latter is to be explained as a reference to a widespread heathen rite, according to which it was customary to lay one's hair upon the tomb as a sign of union with the departed. In antiquity the hair was always regarded as pre-eminently part of oneself, so that to offer hair was the surrogate for offering oneself. That in the passage Lev. 19^' it is a question of doing something in honour of the dead is clear from the context, which goes on to say. Ye shall not make any cuttings in your flesh for the dead, nor print any marks upon you. It is well known that hair offerings to the dead were common among the Semites as well as among other peoples ; thus Arab women laid their hair on the tombs of the dead,' Achilles laid his hair in the hand of the dead Patroclus.^ But it is equally certain that hair was cut off and brought as an offering to heathen ^ Wellhausen, Reste. . . p. 182. Robertson Smith, Religion of the Semites, p. 325. * Ibid, note, cf. Lagrange, Etudes sur les religions Semitiques, p. 278. 28— (3417) 418 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP deities ; Ephrem Syrus, in commenting on Lev. ig^', says, for example, that " it was the custom of the heathen to let their hair grow for a certain time, and then on a fixed day to shave the beard in a temple or beside a sacred fountain." It is no doubt in reference to something of this kind that we read in Ezek. 4^°, Neither shall they shave their heads, nor suffer their locks to grow long ; they shall only poll their heads. There are thus two distinct rites in connexion with hair offerings referred to in the Old Testament. The modem " Peyoth " would seem to trace their origin to the prohibition to cut off the " comers " of the beard for the purpose of bringing them as offerings to the dead ; there is no vestige in the modem custom of anything that would point to the other alternative. VI. Phylacteries (" re;2//w ") . This Greek word, meaning " guards," is the equivalent for either the Hebrew word Tefillah, " prayer," or more probably, for the same word in Aramaic,^ where, however, it signifies " ornament " ; it was used to translate the Hebrew word for " frontlets " [Totdfoth). These Tefillin are worn in accordance with the Jewish interpretation of the words in Deut. 6^ : And thou shalt hind them (i.e. the words of God) for a sign upon thine hand, and they shall he for frontlets hetween thine eyes (cf. Deut. 11^'; Exod. 138'^*). This literal interpretation, however, has not always been accepted without protest in Rabbinical circles, many Rabbis holding that the general law only was expressed in the Bible, the application and elaboration of it being entirely matters of tradition and inference.2 But in spite of this, " there are more laws — ascribed to oral dehvery by God to Moses — clustering about the institution of Tefillin than about 1 It is used in the Targums as the equivalent of " Phylactery." » Sanhedrin 88'' ; see JE, x, 21, " TEFILLIN " 419 any other institution of Judaism." ^ There are two kinds of TefiUin ; the Hand- or Arm-TefiUah (technically known as Shel Yad or Shel Zeroa'), and the Head-Tefillah (technically known as Shel Rosh) ; they each consist of a httle black square box" made of the skin of a " clean " animal ; fastened to each box underneath is a piece of thick leather, this is sewn to the box with threads made from the veins of " clean " animals ; to each box there are also fixed long straps of leather, likewise made from the skins of " clean " animals, whereby it is attached to the arm or head. Each box contains the following passages : Exod. i3i-io,ii-i« ; Deut. 6*"*, iii*"2i; these are written in Hebrew (Leshon ha-Kodesh = " the Holy Tongue ") upon parchment made from the skin of a " clean " animal ; in the case of the Hand-Tefillah, which consists of only one compartment, aU four passages are written on a single piece of parch- ment, while for the Head-TefiUah which has four compartments, four pieces of parchment are required, upon each of which one of the Scripture passages is written. A peculiarity about the Head-Tefillah is that on the right and left sides of the box the Hebrew letter " shin " (w) is inscribed, on the right side with three strokes or prongs, on the left with four, to correspond with the four httle pieces of parchment inside ; this letter is the first of the Hebrew Skaddai ( = "Almighty "), the second (t) and third (y) letters of this word are formed by the strap which fixes the little box to the head. The technical term used for putting on the TefiUin is to " lay " them, and minute directions have to be observed when this is done ; the Hand- or Arm-Tefillah is laid first, it is fixed on the inner part of the left arm just above the elbow, the arm must be bare when this is done, and the Tefillah is fastened to it by a strap which has ' Sanhedrin SS*" ; see JE, x, 22. » The size of each box is two fingers' breadth each way. 420 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP to be wound round it seven times, as well as three times round the middle finger of the left hand. The Head- Tefiilah is laid in the middle of the forehead, the strap going round the head, and the ends of the strap falling down over the shoulders in front. Prayers are said during the la3dng and during the taking off of the TefilUn ; they are worn during the daily morning service, but not on Sabbaths or Holy days, because these are themselves "signs," which makes it unnecessary to wear them, for they are also " signs " (cf. Exod. 13*' ^'). Originally they were worn all day. Only men, and boys from the age of thirteen years onwards, wear Tefillin ; they are forbidden to women. Every Jew has a little bag in which the Tefillin are kept, sometimes the bag is beautifully decorated with embroidery. TefilUn have been worn since the third century B.C., possibly earlier still ; the writer of the Letter of Aristeas, and Josephus both imply that the custom was introduced by Moses, they must therefore have beheved them to be very ancient.'^ Of the origin of the Tefillin there can be little doubt ; the Totaphoth (for which Tefillin is used in Talmudic literature) were amulets worn as safeguards against demons ^ ; the name Phylacteries (cf. Matt. 23^) implies a similar idea. . The belief in the ubiquity of demons, which has been universal up to within quite recent times, required special safeguards, of which Tefillin were an example. There are some special reasons for this opinion, which cannot, however, be dealt with here in detail ; but students of Demonology will appreciate the significance of two things, in particular, about the Tefillin ; firstly, the knotted straps (see further section vii of this Chapter), and secondly, the 1 Letter of Aristeas 159. Antiq. IV, viii, 13. " See the art. " The Demonology of the Old Testament," in the Expositor, June, 1907. " FRINGES " 421 inscribed Hebrew letter on the Head-Tefillah ; it is important to notice that this is on the Tefillah on which it can be seen — which would not be the case if inscribed on the Arm-Tefillah — for anything that was thought likely to attract the look of a demon and thus draw off his attention from the person himself, was considered good, especially when, as in this case, that which was intended to attract the demon's attentioo was the name Shaddai, formed by the inscribed letter and the twisted leather bands — the " Almighty," under whose protection the wearer was. It is, indeed, not improbable that this inscribed letter was the original cause of the name " Phylactery." Things of an analagous character were worn by other peoples.* VII. Praying-Shawl (TalIth) and Fringes (Tsitsith). When orthodox Jews say their prayers they wear a silken shawl with " fringes " attached to the four comers. This is done in obedience to the command given in Deut. 22^^, Thou shalt make thee fringes upon the four corners of thy vesture wherewith thou coverest thyself. The word " fringes " means reaUy " twisted cords," what we should describe as tassels ; in Num. 15^*"*'*, this commandment is explained in the words : It (i.e., the " fringe " or " tassel ") shall be unto you for a fringe {" tsitsith ") that ye may look upon it, and remember all the commandments of the Lord, and do them. The original form was probably a tassel hanging at each end of the four comers of the outer garment, to which it was attached by a blue cord, in obedience to the words of Num. 15**, that they put upon the fringe of each border a cord of blue.^ The garment itself was a large piece of linen or wool covering the whole body, the loose end of which 1 See, e.g., the art. in the Expositor referred to above. » Cf. Matt. 23 s and other passages. 422 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP hung over the left shoulder ; i it probably resembled the long cloak which the Bedouin Arabs wear at the present day. The name of the modern form of this gar- ment, Talith is a corruption of the Greek o-toXj? ( = stole) ; its present shape and size have undergone modification, for in course of time, and owing in great measure to persecution, it was found necessary to conceal the tassels attached to it ; for these, as we have seen, hung to the outer garment ; therefore a new method was devised whereby the " fringes " could be hidden, and yet the demands of the Law be fulfilled. The " fringes " were attached to a smaller garment, but large enough to cover the breast and the back, it has a hole in the centre for the head to pass through ; this was worn under the ordinary clothing, and therefore could not be seen. This garment, which is still worn by aU orthodox Jews, is called 'Arba' Kanfoth, " Four Comers," in reference to the four comers mentioned in Deut. 22^^ ; it is known also as the " Little Talith " to distinguish it from the ordinary or " Large Talith." The Talith proper — the lineal descendant of the ancient " garment with fringes " — is used only in the Synagogue, where it is wom over the head, and is called the " Praying Shawl " ; the fringes or " Tsitsith " are now attached to it again, as there is no occasion to keep them concealed any more ; but the custom of wearing them on the " Little Tallith " is kept up stiU, so that both garments have them nowadays. A prayer is said before putting on each. While the ordinary Talith originated by adopting an everyday garment to a specifically religious use, some- what after the manner of the Christian stole, the origin of the Tsitsith or twisted cord is the same as that of the " Phylacteries." Chief among the symbolic acts whereby. ' The tassel attached to this comer was, doubtless, the " hem " or " border" of the garment touched by the woman with the issue of blood. Matt. 9", cf. 14^?. SWAYING THE BODY 423 in antiquity, it was sought to counteract demoniacal activity, was the tying and untying of a knot ; this, on the principle of imitative magic, represented that a man who had been " bound " ^ by a demon was by the symboUc act " unbound " or released ; and thus, by the process of counteraction by synthesis, was developed the idea that anything twisted or knotted was in the nature of an amulet, and exercised a deterrent effect upon demons. VIII. Swaying the Body. It has been the custom in time past, as it still is among many oriental Jews and among those of eastern Europe, to sway the body whilst stud5dng, and especially whilst praying. Very diverse reasons have been given for this strange custom, the quaintest of which is assuredly that which explains it as a visible and literal carrying out of the Psalmist's words, All my bones shall say, Lord who is like unto Thee (Ps. 35^"), i.e., an act of praise on the part of the bones ! It is more reasonable to trace the origin of the custom to the species of frenzy which seized the ancient Nabi {" Prophet ") when he felt the spirit of the Lord coming upon him ; the modem " Dancing Dervishes " offer, in reality, an analogous phenomenon. Dancing has always been a religious act in days gone by, as it is among many savage tribes to-day ; ^ among the Israelites we have instances in i Sam. 30^*, where the word for dancing means Hterally " to keep the feast," and in 2 Sam. 6^*, where we read of David dancing before the Lord " with all his might." * This swajang of the body is, therefore, as we conceive, a faint remnant of the religious dance. 1 Cf. Luke 131', . . . whom Satan had bound, lo, these eighteen years. . . . » See, e.g., Reville, op. cit., p. 123. Jevons, Introduction to the History of Religion, p. 174. » Cf. also the " Torch-Dance " in the Temple at the end of the first day of the Feast of Tabernacles, see Chap, xix, § iii. 424 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP IX. The Marriage-Chuppah. From the point of view of folk-lore this is one of the most interesting religious customs among the Jews. The modem Chuppah is a canopy of cloth supported by poles, under which the bride and bridegroom stand for the wedding ceremony. In days gone by it was in the form of a bower, made of roses and myrtles. This custom must have a very long history behind it ; we can do no more here than point to a few of a very large number of parallels. Among the Hindoos the bridal pair stand within a "marriage-bower" ; this custom was also common in Spain at one time. In Abyssinia a bower of green branches is erected in the courtyard, in which "the bride and groom sit in state on opposite sides, each surrounded by friends." At Egyptian weddings " the bride is attended by several girls who cluster round her under the same canopy." ^ The idea underlsdng this custom is the same all the world over ; it is a remnant of the curious conception that a bride — and therefore also the bridegroom who is about to be united to her * — is " dangerous " ; she was regarded with an undefined fear, owing to the ideas which early man had with regard to all women.* Another marriage custom, the meaning of which is more obvious, is the spreading of the Talith over the bridal couple ; this is symboUc of union, and can be paralleled by similar rites in aU parts of the world. Thus, at marriages amongst the Jews in Jerusalem, it is customary to throw a white garment over the pair as an indication that they now belong to one another ; all present exclaim : " May it be a good sign." * A like custom is seen among the Hovas. In Tahiti, in the ' Crawley, The Mystic Rose, pp. 336 f. ' Originally the bride was concealed from the bridegroom during the marriage ceremony ; cf the modem bridal veil. ' See further on this subject, Crawley, op. cit., passim. * Featherman, Social History of the Races of Mankind, v, p. 140. " ME2UZAH " 425 south-east of Borneo, in North Nias, and among the Battas of Sumatra, the pair are enveloped in a cloth/ One other marriage-custom may be noted here, viz., the breaking of a glass ; this is said to be a " sign of mourning, even at the height of human fehcity," ' for Zion. A more rational explanation is that given of a Hke ceremony at weddings in Morocco ; the priest hands to the couple a glass of wine after blessing it, and each drink of it. The glass is then smashed on the ground by the groom, " with a covert meaning that he wishes that they may never be parted until the glass again becomes perfect." ' In Poland at Jewish weddings the pair drink wine which has been blessed by the Rabbi, after which the glass is broken. The real idea is probably that the drinking together from the glass S5niibonzes union, and the glass is broken in order to keep others from making a magical use of it ; for, according to antique ideas, any object touched by a person becomes, in a sense, part of himself ; and if the object is harmed, then, by imitative magic, the person himself is harmed too. * It will be seen, therefore, that some of the Jewish marriage customs go back, in their origin, to a hoary antiquity. X. The Door-Post Symbol (Mezuzah). This consists of a piece of parchment made of the skin of a " clean " animal, on which are written parts of the Shema', viz., Deut. 6*"*, ii""^^, in twenty-two lines. This little piece of parchment is roUed together and enclosed in a glass, metal or wooden tube, and fixed on the right-hand " door-post " (Mezuzah) of the house. Not infrequently, in the case of the very orthodox, it is fixed at the entrance to every room in a house. A small ' Crawley, op. cit., p. 174. ^ JE, viii, 341. " Crawley, op. cit., p. 383. * The rite acquired other (but still early) associations: cf. pp. 287 f. above. 426 SYNAGOGUE RELIGION AND WORSHIP opening is left in the centre of the case, where the letter " ^zr," the first letter of Shaddai ("Almighty"), or else the whole word, written on the back of the scroll, is visible.^ The Mezuzah is put up slanting, pointing towards the house or room ; and when it is fastened to its place the following words are pronounced : " Blessed art Thou O Lord our God, King of the world, Who hast sanc- tified us by Thy commandments and hast commanded us to fasten the mezuzah." Strictly orthodox Jews touch the Mezuzah, and kiss the hand that has done so, when- ever they enter and leave the room or house ; the spot touched is where the name Shaddai appears, and the words : " May God keep my going out and my coming in from henceforth and for evermore," are uttered. This custom is based upon a literal interpretation of Deut. 6', And thou shalt write them (i.e., the command- ments of the Lord) upon the door-posts of thy house and upon thy gates. The Mezuzah was originally a safeguard against the approach of demons ; the Mohammedans have a similar custom of inscribing verses from the Koran on their doors and at the entrances to their houses, with a hke object ; the same prevailed among the ancient Eg5^tians. The Rabbis in Talmudic times attributed a protective power to the Mezuzah, especially that of warding off evil spirits.^ The rehgious customs here referred to are far from exhausting the list that could be given ; but enough has been said to show what an extraordinary Hnk with the distant past is afforded by»the popular visible ex- pressions of their reUgion as practised by the majority of the Jews at the present day. I Cf. the same custom with regard to the Head-Tephillah, mentioned above, i" JE, viii., 532. General Index and Glossary [Pages printed in black type indicate passages in which the subject in question is dealt with in extenso.] Ab beth din (Vice-President of the Sanhedrin), 54 Ab, Fast of, 404 ff. Abba Arika, 63 Abbahu R., 63 Abinu Malkenu (" Our Father our King"). 387 Ablutions among the Israelites the Prototype of Baptism, 260 , Instances of in the O.T., 261 ft. Aboth de Rabbi Nathan, 68 Achikar, 31 Adam and Eve, Life of, 40 Adam's Sin, 240 'Adon, -Olam (Hymn), 312 Adonai, 161 " Advent Season," Jewish, 381 Aggada. (See Haggadah) Aggadath Bereshith (Midrash), 90 Ahabah (Liturgical), 337 f. Akiba, 5, 20, 32, 56, 83, 291 Alenu-prayer, 213 Alexandrine and Jewish Philo- sophy Concerning the Resur- rection, 226 Canon, 29 View of the Hereafter, 228 Alfasi, 71 All Souls' Day, 390 " AUowed " Books, 32 Almemar (" Reading-dais "), 276, 310 'Am ha-aretz (" People of the land "), 7 'Am segullah (" Peculiar Peo- ple "), 164 Amidah-prayer, 214, 227, 315, 349 ff., 386 Amoraim (" Interpreters "), 61fi. Amos, Teaching of, 12 £f. Amulet, 423 Angels, Guardian, 224 Anti-apocalyptic Tendency, 42 Aphikoman ("Dessert"), 361 Apocalyptic Literature, 7 , Popular in Charac- ter, 211 Movement, 211 Writers, 7, 216 Apocrypha, S8 ff. not accepted by Official Judaism, 32 Apostates, Jewish, 226 Aquila, 46 Arab Invasion, Ancient, 15 of the West, 21 Arabia the Primeval Home of the Semitic Race, 14 ff. Arabs, 14 Aramaic Prayer, 357 'Arba Kanfoth ("Four Corners"), 422 Aristeas, Letter of, 35 Ark of the Law, 286, 310 Arm-TefiUah, 419 'Aron (" Ark " of the Covenant), 310 'Asarah yeme tesubhah (" Ten Days of Penitence "), 381 Asher ben Jechiel, R., 71 Ashi, R., 64 Ashkenazim, 9, 97 ff . Asmoneans, Feast of, 375 Astarte (Ashtoreth), 414 Atargatis, 415 Atonement, 244-248, 253, 256, 416 , Day of, 247, 251 f., 391- 403, 416 Attis, 414 Authorship, Ancient Ideas of, 35 427 428 GENERAL INDEX AND GLOSSARY B Baal Berith (" Master of the Covenant"), 268 Kore ("Master Reader"), 314 Babylonia, Centre of Jewish Population, 8 Babylonian Talmud, 61-73 Bachya ben Joseph, 106, 156 Baptism, Jewish Doctrine of, 25S364 Among the Essenes, 263 . Antecedents of in O.T., 256 Pre-Christian, 255 , whether Sacramental or not, 257 ft, 260 , Witnesses at, 256 Baraitha (" External " ; Early Compilation of the Oral Law), 53, 60 f. Bar-Kokba (" Son of a Star "), 5, 8, 405 Bar-Mitzvah (" Son of Com- mandment"), 281 f., 315, 353 Baxuch, Apocalypse of, 39 , Book of, 31 Bath-Kol (" Daughter- voice "), 189 ff. Beast, Number of the, 219 Bedika Chamets (" Search for leaven "), 357 Bema, 309 f. Bemidbar Rabbah (Midrash), 85 Berakhah (" Blessing "), 333 f. Berakhoth (" Blessings " ; Mish- nah tractate), 57 Bereshith Rabbah (Midrash), 81 , Extract from, 82 Berith Milah (" Covenant of Circumcision "), 268 Beth Chayyim (" House of Life," i.e., Cemetery), 305 f. Din (" House of Judg- ment," i.e., the Rabbi- nical court), 313, 401 ha-keneseth (" House of the Assembly," i.e., Syn- agogue), 309 Ha-Midrash (" House of Study "), 282 ff., 312 Biqqur Cholim (" Visitation of the Sick "), 303 Birkath Erusin (" Blessing of Betrothal"). 285 Bi'ur-qhEimets (" Removal of Leaven "), 357 Black Feast, The (9th of Ab), 404 Blood, Significance of, 415 f. B'nei Israel, 130 " Bread of the Presence," 230 " Breslau School," 131 Burial, 306 f. Burial Societies, 304 f. Calendar, The, 318 ff. Canon, 41 Canonicity, 28 Chad Gadya (" One Only Kid "), 364 f. Chakam (" Learned "), 313 Chalitzah (" Removal " of Shoe), 294 f. Challaph (" Knife," used for Slaughtering), 415 Chamets (" Leaven "), 357 Chanukkah (Feast of " Dedica- tion "), 29, 374-378 lights, 375 f. Characteristics of Jews, indige- nous, 17 £E. , acquired, 22 ff. Chassidim (" Pious "), 100, 129 f. 216 Chathan Bereshith (" Bride- groom of Genesis "), 353, 374 Torah (" Bridegroom of the Law"), 353,374 Chazzan (Professional Reader), 281, 314, 353 Cheder (" Room ":=the Hebrew School), 277 ff. Chevrah (Small Synagogue), 312 Kadishah (" The Holy Guild "), 304 Chinnuk (" Consecration "), 312 Chiyya, R., 62 f. "Choboth Halebaboth," 106, 156 Christian Doctrine of Sin not understood without the Jew- ish, 229 Christianity, Preparation for, 7 " Chronicles " (Book of), mi- drashic features in, 76 GENERAL INDEX AND GLOSSARY 429 Chuppah ("Canopy"), 285 f., 306, 424 f. Circumcision, 255 f., 408 f. , a badge, 258 , Covenant of, 268 . Sacramental in Character, 258 . Never Sacramental among the Jews, 258 of a Sanctifying Nature, 409 , Service of, 269 Cock, Sacrifice of, 416 Cohen, Cohanim (" Priest," " Priests "), 305, 313, 352, 374, 410 Commemoration of the Dead, 227 Confession, 247 f., 252 Confirmation, Christian Rite of, 282 of Jewish Girls, 368 Conversion of the Heathen, 220 Cosmopolitanism of the Jews, 24 Covenant People, 255, 409 Creed of Maimonides, 225 of the Jews, 152 Customs, Religious, 407 ff. , a Link with the Past, 426 Cyrus, 2, 197 Dancing Dervishes, 423 Daniel, Additions to, 30 , Book of, 30, 32, 42, 45 Dayyanim (Rabbinical " Judges "), 313 Dead, Prayers for the, 339 ff. Death and Mourning, 303-308 Debarim Rabbah (Midrash), 85 Dedication, Feast of, 29, 374-878 " Defiling the Hands," 28 DemonolOgy, 420 Demons, 423, 426 Derek 'eretz (Minor Treatise), 69 suta ( „ „ ), 69 Desertion of wife, 296 f. Deutero-Isaiah, 2, 31, 221 Development, Doctrine of, 52 Dietary Laws, The, 412-416 , Reasons of, 412 fi. Differences between Jewish and Christian Theologians, 158 Dispersion, The, 6, 111-114 Divorce, 289-297 Laws, 291 ft. Door-post Symbol, 425 ff. Dowry, 284 Ebel Rabbati (Tractate), 69 Ecclesiastes, Book of, 28 Ecclesiasticus, Book of, 29, 32, 42 Education of the Jew, 265 ff. Egyptians, 18, 426 " Eighteen Blessings," 215, 222, 333 335 Ekah Rabbati (Midrash), 83 , Extract from, 83 Eleazer ben Pedath, 63 Eliezer ben Hyrkanus, 55, 61, 90, 300 ha-Kappar, R., 224 Elijah in the Messianic Era, 222 , " The Throne of," 268 Elohim, 154, 161 "Emmoth we-Deoth," 106 'En Kelohenu (Hymn), 312 Enoch Identified with Metatron, 175 . Book of, 1, 34, 38, 42 , The Secrets of, 38 , The Slavonic, 38 Ephrem Syrus on Hair- Offerings among the Heathen, 418 Era, The Jewish, 326 , The Messianic, 208 f., 221, 223 ff. 'Ereb Shabbath (" Eve of the Sabbath"), 319 Eschatology, 211-228 Eschatological Drama, The, 216- 228 Esdras, Book of, 30, 32 Essenes, 123-127 , Baptism among the, 263 f. , Doctrines of the, 125 f. Essenism, Relation of to early Christianity, 126 f. Esther (Book of), Additions to, 31 , Fast of, 405 Ethrog ("Citron"), 372 Exclusiveness of the Jews, 24 " Exclusivists," 168 Exile, The, 1 ff. , Results of the, 2 ff. 430 GENERAL INDEX AND GLOSSARY Expiatory Sacrifices, why re- quired, 231 " External " Books, 32 Ezekiel, Book of, 29 Ezra, 2, 53, 1 19 Falashas, 130 Fall, Jewish Teaching on the, 240 Fasts, The, 403-406 , The Dates of the, 323 S. Festivals, The Dates of the, 323 ff. First-born, Redemption of the, 409 ff. , Service for, 410 , Sacrifice of the, 411 , Origin of, 410 ff. Forgiveness, 234 ff., 253 " Fragment "-Targum, 47 Free-will, 237 Froom ("Pious"), 266 Future Life, The, 224 Gabbai (" Treasurer " of the Synagogue), 315 Gamaliel the Elder, R., 55, 59 II, R., 55, 214 Gaon (" Excellency "), 101 Gehenna, 224, 226 Gemara, 51, 60, 64 f. Genizah (Synagogue lumber- room), 28 ff. Gershom, R., 289 Get (" Bill of Divorcement "), 293 f. Geullah (" Redemption "), 338 Gevatter (" God-father "), 268 Gezeroth (" Decrees "), 53 Ghetto (" Jewish Quarter"), 13 Gifts to God, why Ofiered, 230 Gilyonim (?) (" Apocalypses "), 42 Glass, Breaking of at Weddings, 286, 287, 425 God, Jewish Conception of, 163- 168 and the To rah, 163 , Kingdom of, 160, 212-216 . Name of, 160 . Nature and Attributes of 158 ff. —, PersonaHty of, 153 fi. God, Righteousness and Holi- ness of, 160 . Transcendence of, 161 f. , Relation of, to Israel and the World, 163 ff. , Sovereignty of, 213 , Unity of, 152 ff. Goel ("Redeemer"), 208 — - — 'acheron (" Latter Re- deemer "), 208 Gog and Magog, 218-221 Golgotha, 40 Good Deeds, 244 ff., 249 ff. Grace, 260 , Prevenient, 235 Great Synagogue, Men of the, 53 — '■ , Tradition of the, 54f. Greek-speaking Jews, 6 Guardian-angels, 224 H Habdalah (" Distinction," i.e., between the Sabbath and other days), 346 ff. Haftarah (Prophetic Lesson), 45, 352, 378 Hagbahah (" Elevation," i.e., of the Scroll of the Law), 353 Haggadah (" Narration "), 52 f., 60, 75 ff., 92 f. (The Passover Home Ser- vice), 359-366 Haggadic Collections, 73 Midrash, 81 ff. Hagiographa, Targum to, 49 Hai, R., 101 Hair-Offerings, 417 ff. Halakah, Halakoth (Traditional Laws of Ritual and Practice), 20, 52, 53, 58, 60, 65 f., 75 ff. Halakic Midrashim, The, 78 ff. — , Example of, 80 Hallel, 359 f., 364, 372 Hand-TefiUah, 419 Harvest Festival, 370 Hasmoneans, 5 Hattarath Hora'a (The Rabbi- nical Diploma), 313 Hazkarath neshamoth (" Memo- rial for the Dead "), 373 Head-TefiUah, 419 Heaven, Kingdom of, 160 Hebrew, Use of, 280 ff. Hekal ("Temple"), 310 GENERAL INDEX AND GLOSSARY 431 Hell, 226 Hellenistic Judaism, 112 Spirit, 220 Hem of Garment, 422 Herodian Period, 54 HiUel, 48, 55, 58, 59 . " House " of, 55 , " School" of, 291, 350 Holy Spirit, The, 184-191 Holy WeUs, 261 Home, the Centre of Religion, 266 , the Jewish, 302 Hosha'anoth (" Hosannas "), 371 f. Hoshaiah, R., 62 Hosha'na Rabba (Festival), 323, 370 Huna, R., 63 Hyksos, 18 Hypostases, 194 I " Ikkarim (" Principles "), 107 Illumination, Feast of, 29 Immersion, Total, 256 Immigration of Early Semites, 15 f. Impurity, 231 Individual Responsibility, 253 Intermediate Agencies between God and Men, 169-195 State, 225 S. Isaiah, Ascension of, 36 , Martyrdom of, 36 Isaiah The Prophet, Teaching of, 13 Ishmael, R., Rules of, 55 ben EUsha, R., 56, 271 Israel and the Holy Land, 221 , Ingathering of, 221 J Jahwe, in the Hebrew Bible, 161 Jamnia, Academy of, 55 Jehovah-worship, 415 Jehudah Hallevi, 109, 156 Jeremiah, Book of, 31 , Epistle of, 31 Jerusalem, destruction of, 5 in the Messianic Age, 222 , Targuin, 48 ff. Jew, What is a ? 17, 265 fi. Jews of Arabia, 100 , Chinese, 130 of the Dispersion, 111-114 , Countries of Settle- ment of, 112 f. , Intellectual level of, 273 f . , PoUsh, 16 . Racial Characteristics of, 17 ff. , Types of, 266 fi. Jewish Apostates, Torment of in Gehenna, 226 Colonies in Palestine, 12 Dispersion, More Liberal Elements of absorbed by Christianity, 8 History, Importance of, 9 Population of Galilee, 16 Religion, Study of, 266 Jochanan bar Nappacha, 62 ben Zakkai, 55, 79, 96, 221, 299 John the Baptist, 7 Jonathan ben Uzziel, 48 Jose of Galilee, R., 56 Joseph Karo, R., 72 Joshua ben Hananiah, 271 Jubilees, Book of, 36, 42, 77 Judah ben Jecheskel, 63 ha-Nasi, 8, 56, 58, 95 Judaism, Alexandrine, 7 , Later Sources of, 105 ff. , Palestinian, 1, 7 Judgment, Day of, 385, 388 , Last, 218, 224 f. Judith, Book of, 31 f. Justification, 248 f. K Kabbalah (" Tradition "), 27 Kabbalistic Teaching, 129 Kaddish (Liturgical), 215, 301, 307, 316, 339-341 Kallah (Tractate), 69 Kapparath-Schlag (" Atonement blow"), 416 Karaites, The, 100, 127 f. Karaite Liturgy, 104 Keneseth Israel (" Congregation of Israel"), 165 Kethubah (" Written " Agree- ment, -i.e.. Marriage Settle- ment), 284 ff., 291 432 GENERAL INDEX AND GLOSSARY Kethubim (" Writings " i.e. the third division of the Hebrew Canon), 27 Kiddush ("Hallowing"), 286, 346-351, 369, 373, 386 cup, 348 f., 360 Kiddushin (" Sanctifications "), 284 Kimchi, 49 Kingdom of God, 160, 212-216 , Rabbinical Concep- tion of, 216 — , Apocalyptic Con- ception of, 219 Kinoth (" Lamentations "), 405 Kodashim (Mishnah " Order "), 57 Kodesh ("Sanctuary"), 310 Kol Nidre (" All vows "), 401 Kosher-House, 302 "Kuzari," 109, 156 L Lashon ha-kodesh (" The Holy Tongue," i.e., Hebrew), 419 Lavadores (" Washers "), 304 Law. See Torah Leap- Year, 321 Leaven, The Search for, 356 f. Leprosy, Cleansing from, 262 Leviathan, Feasting upon, 226, 370 Levites, 313 Lex talionis, 60 Lights, Feast of, 29, 375 " Little Genesis," 36 Liturgical Forms, Structure of, 330 f. Liturgy and Sacrifice, 332 f. , The Jewish, 97 ff. " Living " Water, 256, 261 Logos, 181 f. Lord's Prayer, Parallels to the, 387 Lulab (" Palm-branch "), 370 ff. M Maarib ("Evening Prayer"), 315, 317 Maccabaean Period, 53 Revolt, 5 Maccabees, Books of, 29 ff., 37 Maccabaeus, Judas, 29 Machzor (Festival Prayer-book), 101 Machzor Vitry, 102 287 128, Magen David (" Shield of David"), 311 Magic, 259, 425 Maimonides, 13, 71 f., 101 f., 105 ff., 157, 337 , Creed of, 225 , on Marriage, 284 Makom (" Space," a name of God), 162 Malakh ha-Maveth (" Angel of Death"), 303 Malkiyyoth (" Kingdoms "), 388 " Manasses, Prayer of," 31 Mar Ukba, 249 Marduk, 390 Marriage, 284-289 — — -bower, 424 Service, Solemnity at Mass, 352 Masseketh (Tractate), 57 Massorah (" Tradition "), 311 Matsah ("Unleavened Cake"), 361 Mazzal tob (" Good Luck "), 286 Mediation, Christian Doctrine of, 169 MegiUoth (" Scrolls "), 27, 49 Meir, R., 56, 58 Mekilta (Name of Midrash), 78 Memra (" Word " of God), 46, 178184 Mendelssohn, 13 Messiah, 36, 196-210 in Apocrypha, 197-200 , Belief in among Modern Jews, 205 -, Conditions of Appearance, 209 , Death of, 225 , Days of, 209 in Pseudepigrapha, 200- 205 and Satan, 224 and the Torah, 210 Woes or " Birth-Pangs " of, 217 f. Messianic Age, in Apocalj^ptic Writings, 217 f. , Fehcity of, 223 ff. , Prophecy directed against Rome in, 219 and against Jeru- salem, 222 GENBRAl mDEX AND GtoSSARY 433 Messianic Era, 197 i., 200 f. 209 f., 215 Hope, 34 Kingdom to be established oh Earth, 224 Period, 221 Metatron, 170-178 Methurgeman (" Interpreter "), 45 Mezuzah (" Door-post " Symbol). 425 f. Middoth (" Exegetical Rules "), 57 Midrash, 58, 74-97 ha-Gadol, 92 Haggadah, 74 ff. Halakah, 74 fE. Koheleth, 84 Megillath Esther, 84 Ruth, 84 Tehillin (" Psalms "), 91, 218, 223 Midrashic Collections, 90 fi. Elements in the N.T., 93 ff. Literature, Illustrations of, 92 ff. Midrashim, Importance for Study of the N.T., 79 Mikra (" Reading "), 57 Millennium, 217 Minchah (Afternoon Prayer), 315, 317 Minhag, Minhagim (" Custom ") 53, 320 Minyan (" Quorum "), 312, 314, Mishnah, 8, 11, 51, 66-61, 154 , Language of, 57 f. . Character of, 58 , Redaction of, 58 Tosefta (Earliest Compila- tion of the Oral Law), 53 "Mishneh Torah " (Work by Maimonides on the Codifica- tion of Talmudic law), 72 Mithraism, 258 Mitzvah, Mitzvoth (" Command- ment "), 250, 269 Meed (Mishnah), 57f. Mohammedans, 426 Mohel (Certified Official who performs the Rite of Circum- cision), 268, 409 Molad (" Birth," i.e., of the month), 319 1, 323 Monogamy, 290 29— (2417^ Months, Names of the Jewish, 321 " More Nebuchim " (" Guide to the Perplexed," Work by Maimonides), 107, 157 Moses, 12, 52, 54 -, Five Books of, 26 , Apocalypse of, 36, 40 , Assumption of, 38 , Testament of, 38 f. Mourning, 303 f. Musaf (" Additional " Prayer), 315, 317 1, 370 N Nabi (" Prophet "), 423 Nachmanides, 110 Name, 194 Naming of Child, 269 Girls, 270 Nashim (Mishnah), 57 ^ Nasi (" Prince "), 54 Nations, Fate of, 219 Nehemiah, 6 , Book of, 45 Ne'ilah (" Concluding " Service), 315 Ner Tamid (" Perpetual Lamp"), 310, 375 Nero, 219 New Testament, 6 New Year's Eve, 390 Nezikin (Mishnah), 57 North, Quarter whence Evil comes, 288 Obadiah of Bertinoro, R., 71 '01am ha-bah (" The World to come"), 217 ha-zeh (" This World "), 217 Omer, Counting of the, 366 f. Onkelos, Targum of, 45 ff. . haggadic Elements in, 46 Optimism of the Jews, 21 Oral Law, 50, 57 Tradition, The, 50 ff., 149 ff. Ordinance of Valladolid, 23 Oriental Character of the Jew, 16 434 GENERAL iNDfiX AND GLOfeSARV Origen, 62 Original Sin, 235 ff., 242 not Believed Jews, 240 by Paganism, 259 Palestinian Judaism, 29 Talmud, 61-73 Targum, 47 Pantheistic Ideas, 155 Parables in Midrashic Litera- ture, 95 £f. Paradise, 225 f. Parashah (" Section "), 352 Parnas (" President " of the Synagogue), 315 Box (" President's " pew), 315 Pasken (" To decide," i.e., dis- putes, according to Rabbinical law), 313 Passover, the Festival of, 355- 366 , Preparation of, 356 fi. . Synagogue Services, 365 ff , Home Service. (See Seder) Paul, St., 7 Pekah, 5 Pentecost (" Feast of Weeks "), 366-368 Perek ("Chapter"), 57 ha-Shalom (Tractate), 69 Persecution, Results of, 21 Perseverance of the Jews, 22 Persian Jews, 45 Personality of God, 153 f. Peshat (" Simple "), 74 Peshitta (Syriac Vulgate), 49, 74 Pesikta (Mishnah), 86 , Extract from, 87 , Rabbati (Tractate), 88 Peyoth (" Hair Ringlets "), 417 Pharisaic Orthodoxy, 7 View of the Hereafter, 228 Pharisees, The, 5.«41, 60, H4-118 , Doctrinal Beliefs of, 1 16 ff. , Exclusiveness of, 118 : Meaning of Name, 117 , Psalms of the, 37 Philo, 181 f. Phylacteries, 418-421 , Laws Concerning, 54 Pidyon ha-ben (" Redemption of the First-born "), 270, 409 ff. Pirke de R. Eliezer, 90 Polygamy Abolished, 289 Polytheism, 10, 152 Prayer-Book, The Jewish, 227, 327-343 . Compilations of, 101 f. . Printed Editions of, 102 f. Prayer, Ordering of the Daily Morning, 342 f. Prayers, Arrangement of, 341 ff. for the Dead, 339 fE. , General Character of, 327 ff. Praying-shawl, 421 Preparation of the Sabbath, 319 Preservation of the Jewish Race, 266 Prevenient Grace, 235 Primeval Ocean, The, 219 Primitive Man, 259 Prophets, 12 f., 26 f. Proselytes, 255 Proverbs, Book of, 28, 32 Pseudepigrapha, 33 ff. , Rejected by Pharisaic Judaism, 41 f. Pseudo-Messiahs, 218 Pumbeditha, School at, 63 f. Punishment, Everlasting, 225 Purgatory of Fire, 225 Purification, 256 f. Purim, Feast of, 378-380 Katan ("Little Purim"), 378 R "Rab," 63 Rabbah bar Huna, 63 "Rabbah," 63 "Rabbana," 64 Rabbenu Chananel. 70 "Rabbi," 56, 58, 61 Rabbi, Title of, 62 Rabbis of Jerusalem, 7 Rabbinical Literature, 8 Orthodoxy, 8 Schools, 8, 51, 61 "Rabina," 64 Rachatz (" To Wash "), 256 Racial Purity of Jews, 17 Rashi, 49, 59, 66, 70, 336 Reconciliation, 237, 253 Redemption of the First-born, 409 ff. GENERAL INDEX AND GLOSSARY 435 Reform Jews, 130 fi. Movement, The, 14 Ritual, The, 104 Religious Belief, Influence of environment upon, 10 fE. Religiousness of the Jews, 18 f. Semites, 18 f. Rema (" Word "), 181 Remission of Sins, 237 Rending of Garment, 304 Repentance, 234, 237 f., 245 f., 253, 283 Resurrection, 224 Resuth ("Personalitv"), 154 Rings, Betrothal, 289 Ritual Washing, 263 Rosh Chodesh (" Head of the month"), 323 Rosh Hoshanah (" New Year's Day "), 305, 320, 382-392 Saadjah ben Joseph, 106, 156 Saadya, Gaon, 101 Sabbath, The, 4, 344-354 , The Eternal, 209 , Eve Hymn, 345 , Hallowing of the, 345 S. Rest, 353 f. Sabbatical Millennium, 217 Saborai (" Explainers "), 64 Sacramental Rites during the Early Centuries of the Christ- ian Era, 258 f. Sacrifice and Liturgy, 332 f. . Modern Jewish Attitude towards, 331 f. of Expiation, 230 f. of Homage, 230 f. of Propitiation, 230 f. , why offered, 230 Sacrificial Feast, 231 System in Old Testament, 231 Sadducees, The, 5, 61, 120-123 , Doctrines of, 122 f. , Meaning of Name, 120 Sadducaean View of the Here- after, 228 Samaritans, The, 100 , Liturgy of the, 104 Schism, 5 Sammael, 240 •' Sanctity of the Day," 386 Sanctify oneself, To, 263 Sandek (" God-father "), 268 Sanhedrin, 54 f. Sargonas (White Shroud), 305 Satan, 240, 388 and the Messiah, 224 Scapegoat, Modern Jewish, Counterpart of, 417 Schola, Shool (" Synagogue "), 272 Scribes, 53, 118-120 Seder, Sedarim (" Order "), 57 Seder (Home Service of the Passover), 276, 305, 358-366 ■ Services, Details of, 360 ff. — — TefiUoth, 101 Sefardim, 97 ff. Sefer Torah (" Book of the Law"), 310, 351 Began (Synagogue Warden), 282. 315 Selaim (" Shekels "), 410 Self-assertiveness of Jews, 23 Selichoth (Litanies of " Forgive- ness "), 341, 381 f. Semikath yadaim (" Laying on of hands "), 62 Semites, Characteristics of, 18 ff. , Purest Strain of, 14 Semitic Religion, 10 ff. " Separateness " of Jews, 6 Septuagint, 7 Shabuoth (" Weeks," Feast of), 367 f. Shacharith (" Morning Prayer"), 315 Shadchan (Marriage-Broker), 289 Shaddai ("Almighty"), 419, 421, 426 Shammai, 58 ff. , " House of," 55 , " School of," 291, 350 Shammash (Beadle, or Sexton), 315 Shechita ('"Slaughtering" Board), 415 Shekhina, 46, 191-194 Shel Rosh (" Head "-TefiUah), 419 Yad (" Hand "-TefiUah), 419 Zeroa' ("Arm " -TefiUah), 419 Sheliach Tsibbur (" Messenger of the Congregation "), 314 436 GENERAL INDEX AND GLOSSARY Shema' (" Hear "), 152 &., 167, 214, 275, 835-339, 425 Shemini 'Atsereth (" Eighth Day Festival "), 368 Shemoneh 'Esreh (" Eighteen Blessings "), 222 f., 330, 833- 335 Shemoth Rabbah (Midrash), 83 Sheol, 225 Shew-Bread, 230 Shir ha-Shirim Rabbah (Mid- rash), 83 Shiva' (The " Seven " Days of Mourning), 307 Shochet (" Slaughterer "), 415 Shofar (" Ram's-horn "), 373, 381, 383 S.. 388 flf. Shofaroth (" Horn-blowings "), 388 Shomer habboker (" Watchman of the Morning "), 382 ShiUchan ("Desk"), 314 "Shulchan Aruk " (Work by R. Joseph Karo), 72, 75 Siddur, 101 of Yemenite Jews, 104 Sidra (" Section "), 281, 352 Sifra (Mi 197 Zech. 3» 197 6" 197 8" 4, 326, 404 10«-" 221 10" 378 14 223 142 ff- 219 14« " 217 14«-ii 219 14» 167 14" f- 220 Mal. 2", " 297 2 (4) EsDR. 1 199 2" «■ 153 423 224 42S-31 237 5 218 6 218, 226 68i» 219 6'» 180 7" ff- 239 72* 222 726-3« 225 8'5 237 12" 219 1282 200 I31-" 200 133 220 IS"'" 200 132«-29 220 14" 41 14" 41 16 199 TOB. 13" 221 13" '■ 222 PAGE 14" 222 145 198,221,222 14« 220 14«. ' 198 WiSD. 1*-' 188 22', 21 235 5» 160 91 180 11' 153 11" 188 1121 153 1122-26 166 12" 236 12" . . 160 I31-' 166 18* 138 18", " 180 1922 164 ECCLUS. 2" 238 5^ « 237 79 238 10" 166 12" 238 15"2o 236 16" 242 17>" 166 17" 164 1725, 26 238 21« 238 21" 242 241-23 136 252* 236 331-" 164 33". " 236 34' 153 36" 221 36"-22 164 37» 242 3824 ff- 119 40 ff 399 42" 180 471-" 197 47" 164 5022 164 Bar. 1* 136 1" 160 2» 160 2", " 153 PACE 22* 153 3 31 3* 153 41 138 Pr. of Man. 237 I Macc. 2" 198 4 29 4". 21 160 42« 375 4*» 161 12*»-*6 237 14*-" 198 148 199 14", 12 199 14". " 199 14*1 199 II Macc. 8" 165 Bk. of Enoch. Iff 218 1-36 38 18 160 5 223 10 223 10« 160 10"-" 223 1021 220 158 160 258 160 37-71 . . 38, 201 382 202 458-6 202 461 202 488 202 48*, 5 220 48« 202 60"f- 226 62" 219 85 239 85.90 201 8970 71_ 76_ 77 176 90 223 902" 219 91-100 217 98* 239 99* ff- 218 104"-" 41 442 INDEX OF REFERENCES PAGE Bk. of Jub, 1" 223 1" ff 223 1»« 223 42' 175 2011-" 218 21» 160 23 223 23«» 221 25"i« 188 506 221 Pss. OF Sol. 10" 160 11 222 17 37, 222 17* « 203 17'» 221 18 37 Sib. Orac. 3»'i 112 3"" «■• 202 5«* ft 202 Apoc. Bar. 4" 222 27-29 223 28>, ' 218 29» 202 32* 222 36-60 202 39, 40 223 59» 202 72, 73 223 72* 220 Asc. Is. 6-11 36 9»i 176 Mart. Is. 5" 187 Test. Patr. Jud. 20 . . . 188 „ 24 . . . 204 Levi 8 . . . 203 „ 18 . . . 204 III Macc. 2' «■ 160 PAGE Letter ofAris. 44 239 121, 122. .. 114 Matth. 11 164 1" 95 2 220 2« 16 18 23 95 3" .'...'..'. 237 3"-" 190 5' 244 5", ". 147, 149 5" 147 5''» 148 5" 293 6^ 249 6", " 244 7« 146 7" 147 7^' 20 99-" 118 9" 246 9" 147 9"> 422 105, 6 146 11" 148 126 147 14" 334 143« 422 15" 115 15» 147 15" 146 IS"' 146 158' 334 16" 161 172 194 176 190 17>°, " 208 18'i» 193 19"« 291 19" 147 19»* 245 19^8 219 201-1" 97 20ii« 143 2210-1" 96 2223 ff- 411 22" 120 22" 94 23"» 117 23' 147 23', « 148 236 . . 420, 421 PAGE 236,"," ..117 23" 147 23^3, a* 148 24« 208 24«-2» .... 218 248 _ 217 24" 202 24" 39 24'i . . 208, 222 25112 96 25"-*« 221 272« 40 27" 210 Mk. 2"-" 118 2i« 120 2" 246 2" 117 218-22 147 22* 117 3i-« 117 38» 246 6" 208 71-23 • 20 73 115 73,* 117 7»:i3 148 828 208 91-11 190 9' 190 911 208 10", 12 293 1223-25 140 1228 fl. 335 122» 154 138 208 13» 217 13i*-2» 219 133* 411 1522 40 Lk. 1,2 7 13» 194 13» 268 1" 409 1«8 208 221 409 222-24 27 28 ^QQ 232 .'...'... 220 2*2 276 2" 148 321, 22 190 PAGE 5" 120 52''-32 118 53» 120 532 245 6" 293 6" 244 730 120 98 208 9" 208 986 190 1028 120 102« 147 1133, 39.... 117 ll'"-" .... 117 1112 U 52 148 11«, ".... 120 123» 96 1313 423 16" . . 147, 148 16" 147 1629 147 188 208 18i»-i* 117 1812 405 183» 209 2120 ff. 218 2126 218 22*3 187 2421 208 JN 11-3 .. 182, 184 11-8 180 1» 80 113 161 11* 194 119-84 190 38 182 33* 190 41* 139 518 208 537 38 190 632 S3 140 635 48 61 . . . 139 6", 6« 140 668 .. . 139 140 726 205 736 6 73' 373 738 139 7*» 118 812 ... 140 372 8" 140 922 385 1023 375 INDEX OF REFERENCES 443 PAGE 10'2 325 11=' 142 1228'0 ]90 12'2 385 1323-25 362 151 ,40 ISii . . . 142, 182 17* 149 19" 319 19" 40 20» 319 Acts. 1" 354 2»" 112 2" 316 2»8 256 31 316 5" 121 53* 55, 120 539 55 78 409 730 39 93 194 93' 190 10' 316 10» 316 10", " 190 103» 316 1339 142 155 118 152». 29 416 1723 114 199 272 21=5 416 233 . .. 116, 122 23» 120 266 . .. 117, 118 2736 334 Rom. ps 246 132 246 2* 248 219 ff. 272 32» 144 323 24 250 42 250 5"" 93 520 250 5=8 144 6" 144 623 239 7« 144 83 ... . 144, 182 8« 188 83« 182 9^^ ff. .... 144 I Cor. 713 10* 1 1 29, 30 232, 155» 15" II Cor. J 20 122 ! .' ! ! ! ; ; 136 93 257 161 224 209 193 Gal. 113 . 213 fl. _ 2"' . . 221 311 n. 313 . . 515-17 32" . . 324 23 161 144 250 250 144 208 145 165 143 PAGE 4* 409 46 208 42» . . . 145, 165 42« 222 Eph. 2», ' 142 28-1" 250 2" 149 43« 188 52232 145 523 165 531-'^' 165 6131' 203 Phil. 2« 208 2' 182 33 117, 404 43 389 Col. 113 182 I Thess. 413 224 I Tim. 1" 236 II Tim. 31-9 . . ^ 208 Hebr. 3 368 4", 13 182 723 182 8« ff. 145 11» 182 FAGR 113' jgy 1222 222 I Pet. l"-2» 208 12" 205 121 185 II Pet. 3» 217 JUDE. 9 177 9,16,18... 39 Rev. 3« 389 6 218 9 218 10* 190 121 ff 218 1213 ff 219 13 219 133 289 1313 219 1413 190 14" 219 161* 219 17 219 173 389 18 219 191" 188 19i"f. 219 20*3 223 20'-i» 219 213 194 2119-21 222 212« ff .... 220 222 220 THE END 1417 Prmied iy Str Isame Pitman &" SnK, Ltd., Bicth.